AMAZONIA
James Rollins
To John Petty and Rick Hourigan friends and co-conspirators
Special
thanks to all those who helped in the research of this novel, especially Leslie
Taylor of Raintree Nutrition, Inc., for the use of her wonderful plant diagrams
in this book and for her valuable knowledge of the medicinal applications of
rainforest botanicals. I would also be remiss not to acknowledge two resources
of utmost value: Redmond O'Hanlon's In Trouble Again: A Journey Between the
Orinoco and the Amazon and the book that inspired my own, Dr. Mark Plotkin's
Tales of a Shaman's Apprentice. For more specific help, I most heartily thank
my friends and family who helped shape the manuscript into its present form:
Chris Crowe, Michael Gallowglas, Lee Garrett, Dennis Grayson, Susan Tunis, Penny
Hill, Debbie Nelson, Dave Meek, Jane O'Riva, Chris "The Little"
Smith, Judy and Steve Prey, and Caroline Williams. For help with the French
language, my Canadian friend Dianne Daigle; for assistance on the Internet,
Steve Winter; and for her arduous moral support, Carolyn McCray. For the maps
used here, I must acknowledge their source: The CIA World Factbook 2000.
Finally, the three folks who remain my best critics and most loyal supporters:
my editor, Lyssa Keusch; my agent, Russ Galen; and my publicist, Jim Davis.
Last and most important, I must stress that any and all errors of fact or
detail fall squarely on my own shoulders.
Prologues
JULY
25, 6:24 /pM.
AN
AMERINDIAN MISSIONARY VILLAGE
AMAZDNAS,
BRAZIL
Padre
Garcia Luiz Batista was struggling with his hoe, tilling weeds from the
mission's garden, when the stranger stumbled from the jungle. The figure wore a
tattered pair of black denim pants and nothing else. Bare-chested and shoeless,
the man fell to his knees among rows of sprouting cassava plants. His skin,
burnt a deep mocha, was tattooed with blue and crimson dyes.
Mistaking
the fellow for one of the local Yanomamo Indians, Padre Batista pushed back his
wide-brimmed straw hat and greeted the fellow in the Indians' native tongue.
"Eou, shori," he said. "Welcome, friend, to the mission of
Wauwai:"
The
stranger lifted his face, and Garcia instantly knew his mistake. The fellow's
eyes were the deepest blue, a color unnatural among the Amazonian tribes. He
also bore a straggled growth of dark beard.
Clearly
not an Indian, but a white man.
"Bemvindo,"
he offered in Portuguese, believing now that the fellow must be one of the
ubiquitous peasants from the coastal cities who ventured into the Amazon rain
forest to stake a claim and build a better life for themselves. "Be
welcome here, my friend:"
The
poor soul had clearly been in the jungle a long time. His skin was stretched
over bone, each rib visible. His black hair was tangled, and his body bore cuts
and oozing sores. Flies flocked about him, buzzing and feeding on his wounds.
When
the stranger tried to speak, his parched lips cracked and fresh blood dribbled
down his chin. He half crawled toward Garcia, an arm raised in supplication.
His words, though, were garbled, unintelligible, a beastly sound.
Garcia's
first impulse was to retreat from the man, but his calling to God would not let
him. The Good Samaritan did not refuse the wayward traveler. He bent and helped
the man to his feet. The fellow was so wasted he weighed no more than a child
in his arms. Even through his own shirt, the padre could feel the heat of the
man's skin as he burned with fever.
"Come,
let us get you inside out of the sun:" Garcia guided the man toward the
mission's church, its whitewashed steeple poking toward the blue sky. Beyond
the building, a ragtag mix of palm-thatched huts and wooden homes spread across
the cleared jungle floor.
The
mission of Wauwai had been established only five years earlier, but already the
village had swelled to nearly eighty inhabitants, a mix of various indigenous
tribes. Some of the homes were on stilts, as was typical of the Apalai Indians,
while others built solely of palm thatch were home to the Waiwai and Tirios
tribes. But the greatest number of the mission's dwellers were Yanomamo, marked
by their large communal roundhouse.
Garcia
waved his free arm to one of the Yanomamo tribesmen at the garden's edge, a
fellow named Henaowe. The short Indian, the padre's assistant, was dressed in
pants and a buttoned, long-sleeved shirt. He hurried forward.
"Help
me get this man into my house:"
Henaowe
nodded vigorously and crossed to the man's other side. With the feverish man
slung between them, they passed through the garden gate and around the church
to the clapboard building jutting from its south face. The missionaries'
residence was the only home with a gas generator. It powered the church's
lights, a refrigerator, and the village's only air conditioner. Sometimes
Garcia wondered if the success of his mission was not based solely on the wonders
of the church's cool interior, rather than any heartfelt belief in salvation
through Christ.
Once
they reached the residence, Henaowe ducked forward and yanked the rear door
open. They manhandled the stranger through the dining room to a back room. It
was one of the domiciles of the mission's acolytes, but it was now unoccupied.
Two days ago, the younger missionaries had all left on an evangelical journey
to a neighboring village. The small room was little more than a dark cell, but
it was at least cool and sheltered from the sun.
Garcia
nodded for Henaowe to light the room's lantern. They had not bothered to run
the electricity to the smaller rooms. Cockroaches and spiders skittered from
the flame's glow.
Together
they hauled the man to the single bed. "Help me get him out of his
clothes. I must clean and treat his wounds:"
Henaowe
nodded and reached for the buttons to the man's pants, then froze. A gasp
escaped the Indian. He jumped back as if from a scorpion.
"Weti
kete?" Garcia asked. "What is it?"
Henaowe's
eyes had grown huge with horror. He pointed to the man's bare chest and spoke
rapidly in his native tongue.
Garcia's
brow wrinkled. "What about the tattoo?" The blue and red dyes were
mostly geometric shapes: crimson circles, vibrant squiggles, and jagged
triangles. But in the center and radiating out was a serpentine spiral of red,
like blood swirling down a drain. A single blue handprint lay at its center,
just above the man's navel.
"Shawara!"
Henaowe exclaimed, backing toward the door.
Evil
spirits.
Garcia
glanced back to his assistant. He had thought the tribesman had grown past
these superstitious beliefs. "Enough," he said harshly. "It's
only paint. It's not the devil's work. Now come help me:"
Henaowe
merely shook in terror and would approach no closer.
Frowning,
Garcia returned his attention to his patient as the man groaned. His eyes were
glassy with fever and delirium. He thrashed weakly on the sheets. Garcia
checked the man's forehead. It burned. He swung back to Henaowe. "At least
fetch the first-aid kit for me and the penicillin in the fridge:"
With
clear relief, the Indian dashed away.
Garcia
sighed. Having lived in the Amazonian rain forest for a decade, he had out of
necessity learned basic medical skills: setting splints, cleaning and applying
salves to wounds, treating fevers. He could even perform simple operations,
like suturing wounds and helping with difficult births. As the padre of the
mission, he was not only the primary guardian of their souls, but also counselor,
chief, and doctor.
Garcia
removed the man's soiled clothes and set them aside. As his eyes roved over the
man's exposed skin, he could clearly see how sorely the unforgiving jungle had
ravaged his body. Maggots crawled in his deep wounds. Scaly fungal infections
had eaten away the man's toenails, and a scar on his heel marked an old
snakebite.
As he
worked, the padre wondered who this man was. What was his story? Did he have
family out there somewhere? But all attempts to speak to the man were met only with
a garbled, delirious response.
Many
of the peasants who tried to eke out a living met hard ends at the hands of
hostile Indians, thieves, drug traffickers, or even jungle predators. But the
most common demise of these settlers was disease. In the remote wilds of the
rain forest, medical attention could be weeks away. A simple flu could bring
death.
The
scuff of feet on wood drew Garcia's attention back to the door. Henaowe had
returned, burdened with the medical kit and a pail of clean water. But he was
not alone. At Henaowe's side stood Kamala, a short, white-haired shapori, the
tribal shaman. Henaowe must have run off to fetch the ancient medicine man.
"Haya,"
Garcia greeted the fellow. "Grandfather:" It was the typical way to
acknowledge a Yanomamo elder.
Kamala
did not say a word. He simply strode into the room and crossed to the bed. As
he stared down at the man, his eyes narrowed. He turned to Henaowe and waved
for the Indian to place the bucket and medical kit down. The shaman then lifted
his arms over the bedridden stranger and began to chant. Garcia was fluent in
many indigenous dialects, but he could not make out a single word.
Once
done, Kamala turned to the padre and spoke in fluent Portuguese. "This
nabe has been touched by the shawara, dangerous spirits of the deep forest. He
will die this night. His body must be burned before sunrise:" With these
words, Kamala turned to leave.
"Wait!
Tell me what this symbol means:"
Turning
back with a scowl, Kamala said, "It is the mark of the Ban-ali tribe.
Blood Jaguars. He belongs to them. None must give help to a ban-yi, the slave
of the jaguar. It is death:" The shaman made a gesture to ward against
evil spirits, blowing across his fingertips, then left with Henaowe in tow.
Alone
in the dim room, Garcia felt a chill in the air that didn't come from the
air-conditioning. He had heard whispers of the Ban-ali, one of the mythic ghost
tribes of the deep forest. A frightening people who mated with jaguars and
possessed unspeakable powers.
Garcia
kissed his crucifix and cast aside these fanciful superstitions. Turning to the
bucket and medicines, he soaked a sponge in the tepid water and brought it to
the wasted man's lips.
"Drink,"
he whispered. In the jungle, dehydration, more than any-thing, was often the
factor between life and death. He squeezed the sponge and dribbled water across
the man's cracked lips.
Like a
babe suckling at his mother's teat, the stranger responded to the water. He
slurped the trickle, gasping and half choking. Garcia helped raise the man's
head so he could drink more easily. After a few minutes, the delirium faded
somewhat from the man's eyes. He scrabbled for the sponge, responding to the
life-giving water, but Garcia pulled it away. It was unhealthy to drink too
quickly after such severe dehydration.
"Rest,
senhor," he urged the stranger. "Let me clean your wounds and get
some antibiotics into you:'
The
man did not seem to understand. He struggled to sit up, reaching for the
sponge, crying out eerily. As Garcia pushed him by the shoulders to the pillow,
the man gasped out, and the padre finally understood why the man could not
speak.
He had
no tongue. It had been cut away.
Grimacing,
Garcia prepared a syringe of ampicillin and prayed to God for the souls of the
monsters that could do this to another man. The medicine was past its
expiration date, but it was the best he could get out here. He injected the
antibiotic into the man's left buttock, then began to work on his wounds with
sponge and salve.
The
stranger lapsed between lucidity and delirium. Whenever he was conscious, the
man struggled mindlessly for his piled clothes, as if he intended to dress and
continue his jungle trek. But Garcia would always push his arms back down and
cover him again with blankets.
As the
sun set and night swept over the forests, Garcia sat with the Bible in hand and
prayed for the man. But in his heart, the padre knew his prayers would not be
answered. Kamala, the shaman, was correct in his assessment. The man would not
last the night.
As a
precaution, in case the man was a child of Christ, he had per-formed the
sacrament of Last Rites an hour earlier. The fellow had stirred as he marked
his forehead with oil, but he did not wake. His brow burned feverishly. The
antibiotics had failed to break through the blood infections.
Resolved
that the man would die, Garcia maintained his vigil. It was the least he could
do for the poor soul. But as midnight neared and the jungle awoke with the
whining sounds of locusts and the croaking of myriad frogs, Garcia slipped to
sleep in his chair, the Bible in his lap.
He
woke hours later at a strangled cry from the man. Believing his patient was
gasping his last breath, Garcia struggled up, knocking his Bible to the floor.
As he bent to pick it up, he found the man staring back at him. His eyes were
glassy, but the delirium had faded. The stranger lifted a trembling hand. He
pointed again to his discarded clothes.
"You
can't leave," Garcia said.
The
man closed his eyes a moment, shook his head, then with a pleading look, he
again pointed to his pants.
Garcia
finally relented. How could he refuse this last feverish request Standing, he
crossed to the foot of the bed and retrieved the rumpled pair of pants. He
handed them to the dying man.
The
stranger grabbed them up and immediately began pawing along the length of one
leg of his garment, following the inner seam. Finally, he stopped and fingered
a section of the cotton denim.
With
shaking arms, he held the pants out to Garcia.
The
padre thought the stranger was slipping back into delirium. In fact, the poor
man's breathing had become more ragged and coarse. But Garcia humored his
nonsensical actions. He took the pants and felt where the man indicated.
To his
surprise, he found something stiffer than denim under his fingers, something
hidden under the seam. A secret pocket.
Curious,
the padre fished out a pair of scissors from the first-aid kit. Off to the
side, the man sank down to his pillow with a sigh, clearly content that his
message had finally been understood.
Using
the scissors, Garcia trimmed through the seam's threads and opened the secret
pocket. Reaching inside, he tugged out a small bronze coin and held it up to
the lamp. A name was engraved on the coin.
"Gerald
Wallace Clark," he read aloud. Was this the stranger? "Is this you,
senhor?"
He
glanced back to the bed.
"Sweet
Jesus in heaven," the padre mumbled.
Atop
the cot, the man stared blindly toward the ceiling, mouth lolled open, chest
unmoving. He had let go the ghost, a stranger no longer.
"Rest
in peace, Senhor Clark."
Padre
Batista again raised the bronze coin to the lantern and flipped it over. As he
saw the words inscribed on the opposite side, his mouth grew dry with dread.
United States Army Special Forces.
AUGUST
1, 10:45 A.M.
CIA
HEADQUARTERS
LANGLEY
VIRGINIA
George
Fielding had been surprised by the call. As deputy director of Central
Intelligence, he had often been summoned to urgent meetings by various division
heads, but to get a priority one call from Marshall O'Brien, the head of the
Directorate Environmental Center, was unusual. The DEC had been established
back in 1997, a division of the intelligence community dedicated to
environmental issues. So far in his tenure, the DEC had never raised a priority
call. Such a response was reserved for matters of immediate national security.
What could have rattled the Old Bird-as Marshall O'Brien had been nicknamed-to
place such an alert?
Fielding
strode rapidly down the hall that connected the original headquarters building
to the new headquarters. The newer facility had been built in the late
eighties. It housed many of the burgeoning divisions of the service, including
the DEC.
As he
walked, he glanced at the framed paintings lining the long passageway, a
gallery of the former directors of the CIA, going back all the way to Major
General Donovan, who served as director of the Office of Strategic Services,
the World War II-era counterpart of the CIA. Fielding's own boss would be added
to this wall one day, and if George played his cards smartly, he himself might
assume the directorship.
With
this thought in mind, he entered the New Headquarters Building and followed the
halls to the DEC's suite of offices. Once through the main door, he was
instantly greeted by a secretary.
She
stood as he entered. "Deputy Director, Mr. O'Brien is waiting for you in
his office." The secretary crossed to a set of mahogany doors, knocked
perfunctorily, then pushed open the door, holding it wide for him.
"Thank
you:"
Inside,
a deep, rumbling voice greeted him. "Deputy Director Fielding, I
appreciate you coming in person." Marshall O'Brien stood up from his
chair. He was a towering man with silver-gray hair. He dwarfed the large
executive desk. He waved to a chair. "Please take a seat. I know your time
is valuable, and I won't waste it:"
Always
to the point, Fielding thought. Four years ago, there had been talk that
Marshall O'Brien might assume the directorship of the CIA. In fact, the man had
been deputy director before Fielding, but he had bristled too many senators
with his no-nonsense attitude and burned even more bridges with his rigid sense
of right and wrong. That wasn't how politics were played in Washington. So
instead, O'Brien had been demoted to a token figurehead here at the Environmental
Center. The old man's urgent call was probably his way of scraping some bit of
importance from his position, trying to stay in the game.
"What's
this all about?" Fielding asked as he sat down.
O'Brien
settled to his own seat and opened a gray folder atop his desk.
Someone's
dossier, Fielding noted.
The
old man cleared his throat. "Two days ago, an American's body was reported
to the Consular Agency in Manaus, Brazil. The deceased was identified by his
Special Forces challenge coin from his old unit:"
Fielding
frowned. Challenge coins were carried by many divisions of the military. They
were more a tradition than a true means of identification. A unit member,
active or not, caught without his coin was duty--bound to buy a round of drinks
for his mates. "What does this have to do with us?"
"The
man was not only ex-Special Forces. He was one of my operatives. Agent Gerald
Clark:"
Fielding
blinked in surprise.
O'Brien
continued, "Agent Clark had been sent undercover with a research team to
investigate complaints of environmental damage from gold-mining operations and
to gather data on the transshipment of Bolivian and Colombian cocaine through
the Amazon basin:"
Fielding
straightened in his seat. "And was he murdered? Is that what this is all
about?"
"No.
Six days ago, Agent Clark appeared at a missionary village deep in the remote
jungle, half dead from fever and exposure. The head of the mission attempted to
care for him, but he died within a few hours:"
"A
tragedy indeed, but how is this a matter of national security?"
"Because
Agent Clark has been missing for four years:" O'Brien passed him a faxed
newspaper article.
Confused,
Fielding accepted the article. "Four years?"
EXPEDITION VANISHES IN AMAZONIAN JUNGLE
Associated Press
MANAUS, BRAZIL, MARCH 20- The continuing search for
millionaire industrialist Dr. Carl Rand and his international team of 30
researchers and guides has been called off after three months of intense
searching. The team, a joint venture between the U.S. National Cancer Institute
and the Brazilian Indian Foundation, vanished into the rain forests without
leaving a single clue as to their fate.
The expedition's yearlong goal had been to conduct a
census on the true number of Indians and tribes living in the Amazon forests.
However, three months after leaving the jungle city of Manaus, their daily
progress reports, radioed in from the field, ended abruptly. All attempts to
contact the team have failed. Rescue helicopters and ground search teams were
sent to their last known location, but no one was found. Two weeks later, one
last, frantic message was received: "Send help . . . can't last much
longer. Oh, God, they're all around us:" Then the team was swallowed into
the vast jungle.
Now, after a three-month search involving an international
team and much publicity, Commander Ferdinand Gonzales, the rescue team's
leader, has declared the expedition and its members "lost and likely
dead:" All searches have been called off.
The current consensus of the investigators is that the
team either was overwhelmed by a hostile tribe or had stumbled upon a hidden
base of drug traffickers. Either way, any hope for rescue dies today as the
search teams are called home. It should be noted that each year scores of
researchers, explorers, and missionaries disappear into the Amazon forest,
never to be seen again.
"My
God:"
O'Brien
retrieved the article from the stunned man's fingers and continued, "After
disappearing, no further contact was ever made by the research team or our
operative. Agent Clark was classified as deceased."
"But
are we sure this is the same man?"
O'Brien
nodded. "Dental records and fingerprints match those on file:"
Fielding
shook his head, the initial shock ebbing. "As tragic as all this is and as
messy as the paperwork will be, I still don't see why it's a matter of national
security."
"I
would normally agree, except for one additional oddity." O'Brien shuffled
through the dossier's ream of papers and pulled out two photo-graphs. He handed
over the first one. "This was taken just a few days before he departed on
his mission:"
Fielding
glanced at the grainy photo of a man dressed in Levi's, a Hawaiian shirt, and a
safari hat. The man wore a large grin and was hoisting a tropical drink in
hand. "Agent Clark?"
"Yes,
the photo was taken by one of the researchers during a going-away party."
O'Brien passed him the second photograph. "And this was taken at the
morgue in Manaus, where the body now resides:'
Fielding
took the glossy with a twinge of queasiness. He had no desire to look at
photographs of dead people, but he had no choice. The corpse in this photograph
was naked, laid out on a stainless steel table, an emaciated skeleton wrapped
in skin. Strange tattoos marked his flesh. Still, Fielding recognized the man's
facial features. It was Agent Clark-but with one notable difference. He
retrieved the first photograph and compared the two.
O'Brien
must have noted the blood draining from his face and spoke up. "Two years
prior to his disappearance, Agent Clark took a sniper's bullet to his left arm
during a forced recon mission in Iraq. Gangrene set in before he could reach a
U.S. camp. The limb had to be amputated at the shoulder, ending his career with
the army's Special Forces."
"But
the body in the morgue has both arms:'
"Exactly.
The fingerprints from the corpse's arm match those on file prior to the
shooting. It would seem Agent Clark went into the Amazon with one arm and came
back with two:"
"But
that's impossible. What the hell happened out there?"
Marshall
O'Brien studied Fielding with his hawkish eyes, demonstrating why he had earned
his nickname, the Old Bird. Fielding felt like a mouse before an eagle. The old
man's voice deepened. "That's what I intend to find out:"
ACT ONE - The Mission
CURARE
FAMILY: Menispermaceae
GENUS: Chondrodendron
SPECIES: Tomentosum
COMMON NAME: Curate
PARTS USED: Leaf Root
PROPERTIES/ACTIONS: Diuretic, Febrifuge,
Muscle Relaxant, Tonic, Poison
CHAPTER ONE
Snakes
Oil
AUGUST
6, 10:1 1 A.M.
AMAZON
JUNGLE, BRAZIL
The
anaconda held the small Indian girl wrapped in its heavy coils, dragging her
toward the river.
Nathan
Rand was on his way back to the Yanomamo village after an early morning of
gathering medicinal plants when he heard her screams. He dropped his specimen
bag and ran to her aid. As he sprinted, he shrugged his short-barreled shotgun
from his shoulder. When alone in the jungle, one always carried a weapon.
He
pushed through a fringe of dense foliage and spotted the snake and girl. The
anaconda, one of the largest he had ever seen, at least forty feet in length,
lay half in the water and half stretched out on the muddy beach. Its black
scales shone wetly. It must have been lurking under the surface when the girl
had come to collect water from the river. It was not unusual for the giant
snakes to prey upon animals who came to the river to drink: wild peccary,
capybara rodents, forest deer. But the great snakes seldom at-tacked humans.
Still,
during the past decade of working as a ethnobotanist in the jungles of the
Amazon basin, Nathan had learned one important rule: if a beast were hungry
enough, all rules were broken. It was an eat-or-be-eaten world under the
endless green bower.
Nathan
squinted through his gun's sight. He recognized the girl. "Oh, God,
Tama!" She was the chieftain's nine-year-old niece, a smiling, happy child
who had given him a bouquet of jungle flowers as a gift upon his arrival in the
village a month ago. Afterward she kept pulling at the hairs on his arm, a
rarity among the smooth-skinned Yanomamo, and nick-named him Jako Basho,
"Brother Monkey."
Biting
his lip, he searched through his weapon's sight. He had no clean shot, not with
the child wrapped in the muscular coils of the predator.
"Damn
it!" He tossed his shotgun aside and reached to the machete at his belt.
Unhitching the weapon, Nathan lunged forward-but as he neared, the snake rolled
and pulled the girl under the black waters of the river. Her screams ended and
bubbles followed her course.
Without
thinking, Nathan dove in after her.
Of all
the environments of the Amazon, none were more dangerous than its waterways.
Under its placid surfaces lay countless hazards. Schools of bone-scouring
piranhas hunted its depths, while stingrays lay buried in the mud and electric
eels roosted amid roots and sunken logs. But worst of all were the river's true
man-killers, the black caimans-giant crocodilian reptiles. With all its
dangers, the Indians of the Amazon knew better than to venture into unknown
waters.
But
Nathan Rand was no Indian.
Holding
his breath, he searched through the muddy waters and spotted the surge of coils
ahead. A pale limb waved. With a kick of his legs, he reached out to the small
hand, snatching it up in his large grip. Small fingers clutched his in
desperation.
Tama
was still conscious!
He
used her arm to pull himself closer to the snake. In his other hand, he drew
the machete back, kicking to hold his place, squeezing Tama's hand.
Then
the dark waters swirled, and he found himself staring into the red eyes of the
giant snake. It had sensed the challenge to its meal. Its black maw opened and
struck at him.
Nate
ducked aside, fighting to maintain his grip on the girl.
The
anaconda's jaws snapped like a vice onto his arm. Though its bite was
nonpoisonous, the pressure threatened to crush Nate's wrist. Ignoring the pain
and his own mounting panic, he brought his other arm around, aiming for the
snake's eyes with his machete.
At the
last moment, the giant anaconda rolled in the water, throwing Nate to the silty
bottom and pinning him. Nate felt the air squeezed from his lungs as four
hundred pounds of scaled muscle trapped him. He struggled and fought, but he
found no purchase in the slick river mud.
The
girl's fingers were torn from his grip as the coils churned her away from him.
No . .
. Tama!
He
abandoned his machete and pushed with his hands against the weight of the
snake's bulk. His shoulders sank into the soft muck of the riverbed, but still
he pushed. For every coil he shoved aside, another would take its place. His
arms weakened, and his lungs screamed for air.
Nathan
Rand knew in this moment that he was doomed-and he was not particularly
surprised. He knew it would happen one day. It was his destiny, the curse of
his family. During the past twenty years, both his parents had been consumed by
the Amazon forest. When he was eleven, his mother had succumbed to an unknown
jungle fever, dying in a small missionary hospital. Then, four years ago, his
father had simply vanished into the rain forest, disappearing without
witnesses.
As Nate
remembered the heartbreak of losing his father, rage flamed through his chest.
Cursed or not, he refused to follow in his father's foot-steps. He would not
allow himself simply to be swallowed by the jungle. But more important, he
would not lose Tama!
Screaming
out the last of the trapped air in his chest, Nathan shoved the anaconda's bulk
off his legs. Freed for a moment, he swung his feet under him, sinking into the
mud up to his ankles, and shoved straight up.
His
head burst from the river, and he gulped a breath of fresh air, then was
dragged by his arm back under the dark water.
This
time, Nathan did not fight the strength of the snake. Holding the clamped wrist
to his chest, he twisted into the coils, managing to get a choke hold around
the neck of the snake with his other arm. With the beast trapped, Nate dug his
left thumb into the snake's nearest eye.
The
snake writhed, tossing Nate momentarily out of the water, then slamming him
back down. He held tight.
C'mon,
you bastard, let up!
He bent
his trapped wrist enough to drive his other thumb into the snake's remaining
eye. He pushed hard on both sides, praying his basic training in reptile
physiology proved true. Pressure on the eyes of a snake should trigger a gag
reflex via the optic nerve.
He
pressed harder, his heartbeat thudding in his ears.
Suddenly
the pressure on his wrist released, and Nathan found himself flung away with
such force that he half sailed out of the river and hit the riverbank with his
shoulder. He twisted around and saw a pale form float to the surface of the
river, facedown in midstream.
Tama!
As he
had hoped, the visceral reflex of the snake had released both prisoners. Nathan
shoved into the river and grabbed the child by the arm, pulling her slack form
to him. He slung her over a shoulder and climbed quickly to the shore.
He
spread her soaked body on the bank. She was not breathing. Her lips were
purple. He checked her pulse. It was there but weak.
Nathan
glanced around futilely for help. With no one around, it would be up to him to
revive the girl. He had been trained in first aid and CPR before venturing into
the jungle, but Nathan was no doctor. He knelt, rolled the girl on her stomach,
and pumped her back. A small amount of water sloshed from her nose and mouth.
Satisfied,
he rolled Tama back around and began mouth-to-mouth.
At
this moment, one of the Yanomamo tribesfolk, a middle-aged woman, stepped from
the jungle's edge. She was small, as were all the Indians, no more than five
feet in height. Her black hair was sheared in the usual bowl cut and her ears
were pierced with feathers and bits of bamboo. Her dark eyes grew huge at the
sight of the white man bent over the small child.
Nathan
knew how it must look. He straightened up from his crouch just as Tama suddenly
regained consciousness, coughing out gouts of river water and thrashing and
crying in horror and fright. The panicked child beat at him with tiny fists,
still in the nightmare of the snake attack.
"Hush,
you're safe," he said in the Yanomamo dialect, trying to snare her hands
in his grip. He turned to the woman, meaning to explain, but the small Indian
dropped her basket and vanished into the thick fringe at the river's edge,
whooping with alarm. Nathan knew the call. It was raised whenever a villager
was under attack.
"Great,
just great:" Nathan closed his eyes and sighed.
When
he had first come to this particular village four weeks ago, intending to
record the medicinal wisdom of the tribe's old shaman, he had been instructed
by the chief to stay away from the Indian women. In the past, there had been
occasions when strangers had taken advantage of the tribe's womenfolk. Nathan
had honored this request, even though some of the women had been more than
willing to share his hammock. His six-foot-plus frame, blue eyes, and
sandy-colored hair were a novelty to the women of this isolated tribe.
In the
distance, the fleeing woman's distress call was answered by others, many
others. The name Yanomamo translated roughly as "the fierce people:"
The tribes were considered some of the most savage warriors. The huyas, or
young men of the village, were always contesting some point of honor or
claiming some curse had been set upon them, anything to war-rant a brawl with a
neighboring tribe or another tribesman. They were known to wipe out entire
villages for so slight an insult as calling someone a derogatory name.
Nathan
stared down into the face of the young girl. And what would these huyas make of
this? A white man attacking one of their children, the chieftain's niece.
At his
side, Tama had slowed her panic, swooning back into a fitful slumber. Her
breathing remained regular, but when he checked her fore-head, it was warm from
a growing fever. He also spotted a darkening bruise on her right side. He fingered
the injury-two broken ribs from the crushing embrace of the anaconda. He sat
back on his heels, biting his lower lip. If she was to survive, she would need
immediate treatment.
Bending,
he gently scooped her into his arms. The closest hospital was ten miles
downstream in the small town of Sao Gabriel. He would have to get her there.
But
there was only one problem-the Yanomamo. There was no way he could flee with
the girl and expect to get away. This was Indian territory, and though he knew
the terrain well, he was no native. There was a proverb spoken throughout the
Amazon: Na boesi, ingi Babe ala sani. In their jungle, the Indian know
everything. The Yanomamo were superb hunters, skilled with bow, blowgun, spear,
and club.
There
was no way he could escape.
Stepping
away from the river, he retrieved his discarded shotgun from the brush and
slung it over his shoulder. Lifting the girl higher in his arms, Nathan set off
toward the village. He would have to make them listen to him, both for his sake
and Tama's.
Ahead,
the Indian village that he had called home for the past month had gone deathly
quiet. Nathan winced as he walked. Even the constant twitter of birds and
hooting call of monkeys had grown silent.
Holding
his breath, he turned a corner in the trail and found a wall of Indians
blocking his way, arrows nocked and drawn, spears raised. He sensed more than
heard movement behind him. He glanced over his shoulder and saw more Indians
already in position, faces daubed with crimson.
Nate
had only one hope to rescue the girl and himself, an act he was loath to do,
but he had no choice.
"Nabrushi
yi yi!" he called out forcefully. "I demand trial by combat!"
AUGUST
6, 1 1:38 A.M.
OUTSIDE
SAO GABRIEL DA COCHOERIA
Manuel
Azevedo knew he was being hunted. He heard the jaguar's coughing grunt coming
from the forest fringes as he ran along the trail. Exhausted, soaked in sweat,
he stumbled down the steep trail from the summit of the Mount of the Sacred
Way. Ahead, a break in the foliage opened a view upon Sao Gabriel. The township
lay nestled in the curve of the Rio Negro, the northern tributary of the great
Amazon River.
So
close . . . perhaps close enough . . .
Manny
slid to a stop and faced back up the trail. He strained for any sign of the
jaguar's approach: the snap of a twig, the rustle of leaves. But no telltale
sign revealed the jungle cat's whereabouts. Even its hunting cough had gone
silent. It knew it had run its prey to exhaustion. Now it crept in for the
kill.
Manny
cocked his head. The buzz of locusts and distant trill of birds were the only
sounds. A rivulet of sweat dribbled down his neck. He tensed, ears straining.
His fingers instinctively went to the knife on his belt. His other hand settled
on the strap of his short whip.
Manny
searched the dappled jungle floor around him. Chokes of ropy vines and leafy
bushes clogged the path to both sides. Where would it come from?
Shadows
shifted.
He
spun on a heel, crouching. He tried to see through the dense foliage. Nothing.
Farther
down the trail, a section of shadow lurched toward him, a sleek mirage of
dappled fur, black on orange. It had been standing only ten feet away, lying
low to the ground, haunches bunched under it. The cat was a large juvenile
male, two years old.
Sensing
it had been spotted, it whipped its tail back and forth with savage strokes,
rattling the leaves.
Manny
crouched, ready for the attack.
With a
deep growl, the great cat leaped at him, fangs bared.
Manny
grunted as its weight struck him like a crashing boulder. The pair went rolling
down the trail. The wind was knocked out of Manny's thin frame as he tumbled.
The world dissolved down to flashes of green, splashes of sunlight, and a blur
of fur and teeth.
Claws
pierced his khakis as the great cat wrapped Manny in its grip. A pocket ripped
away. Fangs clamped onto his shoulder. Though the jaguar had the second
strongest jaws of any land animal, its teeth did no more than press into his
flesh.
The
pair finally came to a stop several yards down the trail where it leveled off.
Manny found himself pinned under the jaguar. He stared into the fiery eyes of
his adversary as it gnawed at his shirt and growled.
"Are
you done, Tor-tor?" He gasped. He had named the great cat after the Arawak
Indian word for ghost. Though presently, with the jaguar's bulk seated on his
chest, the name did not seem particularly apt.
At the
sound of its master's voice, the jaguar let loose his shirt and stared back at
him. Then a hot, coarse tongue swiped the sweat from Manny's forehead.
"I
love you, too. Now get your furry butt off me:"
Claws
retracted, and Manny sat up. He checked the condition of his clothes and
sighed. Training the young jaguar to hunt was quickly laying waste his
wardrobe.
Standing
up, Manny groaned and worked a kink from his back. At thirty-two, he was
getting too old to play this game.
The
cat rolled to its paws and stretched. Then, with a swish of the tail, it began
to sniff at the air.
With a
small laugh, Manny cuffed the jaguar on the side of its head. "We're done
hunting for today. It's getting late. And I have a stack of reports still
waiting for me back at the office:"
Tor-tor
rumbled grumpily, but followed.
Two
years back, Manny had rescued the orphaned jaguar cub when it was only a few
days old. Its mother had been killed by poachers for her pelt, a treasure that
still brought a tidy sum on the black market. At current estimate, the
population of wild jaguars was down to fifteen thousand, spread thin across the
vast jungles of the Amazon basin. Conservation efforts did little to dissuade
peasants who eked out a subsistence-level existence from hunting them for
profit. A hungry belly made one shortsighted to efforts of wildlife
preservation.
Manny
knew this too well himself. Half Indian, he had been an orphan on the streets
of Barcellos, along the banks of the Amazon River. He had lived hand to mouth,
begging for coins from passing tourist boats and stealing when his palm came up
empty. Eventually he was taken in by a Salesian missionary and worked his way
up to a degree in biology at the University of Sao Paulo, his scholarship
sponsored by the Brazilian Indian foundation, FUNAI. As payback for his
scholarship, he worked with local Indian tribes: protecting their interests,
preserving their ways of life, helping them claim their own lands legally. And
at thirty, he found himself posted here in Sao Gabriel, heading the local FUNAI
office.
It was
during his investigation of poachers encroaching on Yanomamo lands that Manny
discovered Tor-tor, an orphan like himself. The cub's right hind leg had been
fractured where he had been kicked by one of the poachers. Manny could not
abandon the tiny creature. So he had collected the mewling and hissing cub in a
blanket and slowly nursed the foundling back to health.
Manny
watched Tor-tor pace ahead of him. He could still see the slight tweak to his
gait from his injured leg. In less than a year, Tor-tor would be sexually
mature. The cat's feral nature would begin to shine, and it would
be
time to loose him into the jungle. But before that happened Manny wanted
Tor-tor to be able to fend for himself. The jungle was no place for the
uninitiated.
Ahead,
the trail curved through the last of the jungled slopes of tile Mount of the
Sacred Way. The city of Sao Gabriel spread open before him, a mix of hovels and
utilitarian cement-block structures bustled up against the Negro River. A few
new hotels and buildings dotted the landscape, built within the last half
decade to accommodate the growing flood of tourists to the region. And in the
distance lay a new commercial airstrip. Its tarmac was a black scar through the
surrounding jungle. It seemed even in the remote wilds there was no stopping
progress.
Manny
wiped his damp forehead, then stumbled into Tor-tor when the cat suddenly stopped.
The jaguar growled deep in its throat, a warning.
"What's
the matter?" Then he heard it, too.
Echoing
across the blanket of jungle, a deep thump-thumping grew in volume. It seemed
to be coming from all around them. Manny's eyes narrowed. He recognized the
sound, though it was seldom heard out here. A helicopter. Most travelers to Sao
Gabriel came by riverboat or by small prop planes. The distances were generally
too vast to accommodate helicopters. Even the local Brazilian army base had
only a single bird, used for rescue and evacuation missions.
As
Manny listened and the noise grew in volume, he realized some-thing else. It
was more than just one helicopter.
He
searched the skies but saw nothing.
Suddenly
Tor-tor tensed and dashed into the surrounding brush.
A
company of three helicopters flashed overhead, sweeping past the Mount of the
Sacred Way and circling toward the small township like a swarm of wasps.
Camouflaged wasps.
The
bulky choppers-UH-1 Hueys-were clearly military.
Craning
up, Manny watched a fourth helicopter pass directly above him. But unlike its
brethren, this one was sleek and black. It whispered over the jungle. Manny
recognized its characteristic shape and enclosed tail rotor from his short
stint in the military. It was an RAH-66 Comanche, a reconnaissance and attack
helicopter.
The
slender craft passed close enough for Manny to discern the tiny American flag
on its side. Above him, the jungle canopy rattled with its rotor wash. Monkeys
fled, screaming in fright, and a flock of scarlet macaws broke like a streak of
fire across the blue sky.
Then
this helicopter was gone, too. It descended toward the open fields around the
Brazilian army base, circling to join the other three.
Frowning,
Manny whistled for Tor-tor. The huge cat slunk from its hiding place, eyes
searching all around.
"It's
all right," he assured the jaguar.
The
thump-thumping noise died away as the helicopters settled to the fields.
He
crossed to Tor-tor and rested one hand on the great cat's shoulder, which
trembled under his touch. The jaguar's nervousness flowed into him.
Manny
headed downhill, settling a palm on the knobbed handle of the bullwhip hitched
to his belt. "What the hell is the United States military doing here in
Sao Gabriel?"
Nathan
stood, stripped to his boxers, in the middle of the village's central plaza.
Around him lay the Yanomamo shabano, or roundhouse, a circular structure half a
football field wide with the central roof cut away to expose the sky. Women and
older men lay sprawled in hammocks under the banana leaf roof, while the
younger men, the huyas, bore spears and bows, ensuring Nathan did not try to
flee.
Earlier,
as he had been led at spearpoint back to camp, he had tried to explain about
the attack by the anaconda, baring the bite marks on his wrist as proof. But no
one would listen. Even the village chieftain, who had taken the child from his
arms, had waved his words away as if they offended him.
Nathan
knew that his voice would not be heard by those around him until the trial was
over. It was the Yanomamo way. He had demanded com-bat as a way to buy time,
and now no one would listen until the battle was over. Only if the gods granted
him victory would he be heard.
Nathan
stood barefoot in the dirt. Off to the side, a group of huyas argued over who
would accept his challenge and what weapons would be used in the battle. The
traditional duel was usually waged with nabrushi, slender, eight-foot-long
wooden clubs that the combatants used to beat each other. But in more serious duels,
deadly weapons were used, such as machetes or spears.
Across
the plaza, the throng parted. A single Indian stepped forth. He was tall for a
tribesman, almost as tall as Nathan, and wiry with muscle. It was Tama's
father, Takaho, the chieftain's brother. He wore nothing but a braided string
around his waist into which was tucked the foreskin of his penis, the typical
garb of Yanomamo men. Across his chest were slash lines drawn in ash, while
under a monkey-tail headband his face had been painted crimson. His lower lip
bulged with a large tuck of tobacco, giving him a belligerent look.
He
held out a hand, and one of the huyas hurried forward and placed a long ax in
his palm. The ax's haft was carved of purple snakewood and ended in a pikelike
steel head. It was a wicked-looking tool and one of the most savage dueling
weapons.
Nate
found a similar ax thrust into his own hands.
Across
the way, he watched another huya hurry forward and hold out a clay pot full of
an oily liquid. Takaho dipped his axhead into the pot.
Nate
recognized the mixture. He had assisted the shaman in preparing this batch of
woorari, in English curare, a deadly paralyzing nerve poison prepared from a
liana vine of the moonseed family. The drug was used in hunting monkeys, but
today it was intended for a more sinister purpose.
Nathan
glanced around. No one came forth to offer a similar pot to anoint his blade.
It seemed the battle was not to be exactly even.
The
village chief raised a bow over his head and sounded the call for the duel to
begin.
Takaho
strode across the plaza, wielding the ax with practiced skill.
Nathan
lifted his own ax. How could he win here? A single scratch meant death. And if
he did win, what would be gained? He had come here to save Tama, and to do
that, he would have to slay her father.
Bracing
himself, he lifted the ax across his chest. He met the angry eyes of his
opponent. "I didn't hurt your daughter!" he called out fiercely.
Takaho's
eyes narrowed. He had heard Nate's words, but mistrust shone in his eyes.
Takaho glanced to where Tama was being ministered to by the village shaman. The
lanky elder was bowed over the girl, waving a smoking bundle of dried grass
while chanting. Nathan could smell the bitter incense, an acrid form of
smelling salts derived from hempweed. But the girl did not move.
Takaho
faced Nate. With a roar, the Indian lunged forward, swinging his ax toward
Nate's head.
Trained
as a wrestler in his youth, Nate knew how to move. He dropped under the ax and
rolled to the side, sweeping wide with his own weapon and knocking his
opponent's legs out from under him.
Takaho
fell hard to the packed dirt, smacking his shoulder and knocking loose his
monkey-tail headband. But he was otherwise unharmed. Nate had struck with the
blunt side of his ax, refusing to go for a maiming blow.
With
the man down, Nate leaped at him, meaning to pin the Indian under his larger
frame. If 1 could just immobilize him .
But
Takaho rolled away with the speed of a cat, then swung again with a savage
backstroke of his ax.
Nate
reared away from the weapon's deadly arc. The poisoned blade whistled past the
tip of his nose and slammed into the dirt between his hands. Relieved at the
close call, Nathan was a second too late in dodging the foot kicked at his
head. Ears ringing from the blow, he tumbled across the dirt. His own ax
bounced out of his stunned hand and skittered into the crowd of onlookers.
Spitting
out blood from his split lip, Nathan stood quickly.
Takaho
was already on his feet.
As the
Indian tugged his embedded ax from the dirt, Nathan noticed the shaman over his
shoulder. The elder was now exhaling smoke across Tama's lips, a way of chasing
off bad spirits before death.
Around
him, the other huyas were now chanting for the kill.
Takaho
lifted his ax with a grunt and turned to Nate. The Indian's face was a crimson
mask of rage. He rushed at Nate, his ax whirling in a blur before him.
Without
a weapon, Nate retreated. So this is how 1 die . . .
Nate
found himself backed against a wall of spears held by other Indians. There was
no escape. Takaho slowed for the kill, the ax high over his head.
Nathan
felt the prick of spearheads in his bare back as he instinctively leaned away.
Takaho
swung his weapon down with the strength of both shoulders.
"Yulo!"
The sharp cry burst through the chanting huyas. "Stop!"
Nathan
cringed from the blow that never came. He glanced up. The ax trembled about an
inch from his face. A dribble of poison dripped onto his cheek.
The
shaman, the one who had called out, pushed past other tribesmen into the
central plaza. "Your daughter wakes!" He pointed to Nate. "She
speaks of a giant snake and of her rescue by the white man."
All
faces turned to where Tama was sipping weakly at a gourd of water held by a
tribeswoman.
Nathan
stared up into Takaho's eyes as the Indian faced him again. Takaho's hard
expression melted with relief. He pulled away his weapon, then dropped it to
the dirt. An empty hand clamped onto Nate's shoulder, and Takaho pulled him to
his chest. "Jako," he said, hugging him tight. "Brother:"
And
just like that, it was over.
The
chieftain pushed forward, puffing out his chest. "You battled the great
susuri, the anaconda, and pulled our tribe's daughter from its belly." He
removed a long feather from his ear and tucked it into Nate's hair. It was the
tail feather of a harpy eagle, a treasured prize. "You are no longer a
nabe, an outsider. You are now juko, brother to my brother. You are now
Yanomamo:"
A
great cheer rose all around the shabono.
Nathan
knew this was an honor above all honors, but he still had a pressing concern.
"My sister," he said, pointing toward Tama. It was taboo to refer to
a Yanomamo by his or her given name. Familial designations, real or not, were
used instead. Tama moaned softly where she lay. "My sister is still sick.
She has suffered injuries that the healers in Sao Gabriel can help mend. I ask
that you allow me to take her to the town's hospital:"
The
village shaman stepped forward. Nathan feared he would argue that his own
medicine could heal the girl. As a whole, shamans were a prideful group. But
instead, the Indian elder agreed, placing a hand on Nate's shoulder. "Our
little sister was saved from the susuri by our new jako. We should heed the
gods in choosing him as her rescuer. I can do no more for her."
Nathan
wiped the poison from his cheek, careful to keep it away from any open cuts,
and thanked the elder. The shaman had done more than enough already. His
natural medicines had been able to revive the girl in time to save him. Nathan
turned next to Takaho. "I would ask to borrow your canoe for the journey."
"All
that is mine is yours," Takaho said. "I will go with you to Sao
Gabriel."
Nathan
nodded. "We should hurry"
In
short order, Tama was loaded on a stretcher of bamboo and palm fronds and
placed in the canoe. Takaho, now dressed in a tank top and a pair of Nike
shorts, waved Nathan to the bow of the dugout canoe, then shoved away from the
shore with his oar and into the main current of the Negro River. The river led
all the way to Sao Gabriel.
They
made the ten-mile journey in silence. Nathan checked on Tama frequently and
recognized the worry in her father's eyes. The girl had slipped back into a
stupor, trembling, moaning softly now and then. Na-than wrapped a blanket around
her small form.
Takaho
wended the small canoe with skill through small rapids and around tangles of
fallen trees. He seemed to have an uncanny skill at finding the swiftest
currents.
As the
canoe sped downriver, they passed a group of Indians from a neighboring village
fishing in the river with spears. He watched a woman sprinkle a dark powder
into the waters from an upstream canoe. Nate knew what she was doing. It was
crushed ayaeya vine. As it flowed down-stream, the dissolved powder would stun
fish, floating them to the surface where they were speared and collected by the
men. It was an ancient fishing method used throughout the Amazon.
But
how long would such traditions last? A generation or two? Then this art would
be lost forever.
Nathan
settled into his seat, knowing there were certain battles he could never win.
For good or bad, civilization would continue its march through the jungle.
As
they continued along, Nate stared out at the walls of dense foliage that framed
both banks. All around him, life buzzed, chirped, squawked, hooted, and
grunted.
On
either side, packs of red howler monkeys yelled in chorus and bounced
aggressively atop their branches. Along the shallows, white-feathered bitterns
with long orange beaks speared fish, while the plated snouts of caimans marked
nesting grounds of the Amazonian crocodiles. Closer still, in the air around
them, clouds of gnats and stinging flies harangued every inch of exposed skin.
Here
the jungle ruled in all its forms. It seemed endless, impenetrable, full of
mystery. It was one of the last regions of the planet that had yet to be fully
explored. There were vast stretches never walked by man. It was this mystery
and wonder that had attracted Nathan's parents to spend their lives here,
eventually infecting their only son with their love of the great forest.
Nathan
watched the jungle pass around him, noting the emerging signs of civilization,
and knew that they neared Sao Gabriel. Small clearings made by peasant farmers
began to appear, dotting the banks of the river. From the shore, children waved
and called as the canoe whisked past. Even the noises of the jungle grew muted,
driven away by the noisome ruckus of the modern world: the grumble of diesel
tractors in the fields, the whine of motor boats that sped past the canoe, the
tinny music of a radio blaring from a homestead.
Then,
from around a bend in the river, the jungle ended abruptly. The small city of
Sao Gabriel appeared like some cancer that had eaten away the belly of the
forest. Near the river, the city was a ramshackle mix of rot-ting wooden shacks
and cement government buildings. Away from the water, homes both small and
large climbed the nearby hills. Closer at hand, the wharves and jetties were
crowded with tourist boats and primer-scarred river barges.
Nathan
turned to direct Takaho toward a section of open riverbank. He found the Indian
staring in horror at the city, his oar clutched tightly to his chest.
"It
fills the world," he mumbled.
Nathan
glanced back to the small township. It had been two weeks since his last supply
run to Sao Gabriel, and the noise and bustle were a rude shock to him. What
must it be like for someone who had never left the jungle?
Nathan
nodded to a spot to beach the canoe. "There is nothing here that a great
warrior need fear. We must get your daughter to the hospital:"
Takaho
nodded, clearly swallowing back his shock. His face again settled into a stoic
expression, but his eyes continued to flit around the wonders of this other
world. He guided the canoe as directed, then helped Nathan haul out the
stretcher on which Tama's limp form lay.
As she
was shifted, the girl moaned, and her eyelids fluttered, eyes rolling white.
She had paled significantly during the ride here.
"We
must hurry."
Together,
the two carried the girl through the waterfront region, earning the gawking
stares of the townies and a few blinding flashes from camera-wielding tourists.
Though Takaho wore "civilized" clothes, his monkey-tail headband, the
sprouts of feathers in his ears, and his bowl-shaped haircut marked this fellow
as one of the Amazon's indigenous tribespeople.
Luckily,
the small single-story hospital was just past the waterfront region. The only
way one could tell it was a hospital was the flaking red cross painted above
the threshold, but Nathan had been here before, consulting with the doctor on
staff, a fellow from Manaus. They were soon off the streets and guiding their
stretcher through the door. The hospital reeked of ammonia and bleach, but it
was deliciously air-conditioned. The cool air struck Nate like a wet towel to
the face.
He
crossed to the nurse's station and spoke rapidly. The pudgy woman's brow
wrinkled with a lack of understanding until Nathan realized he had been
speaking in the Yanomamo dialect. He switched quickly to Portuguese. "The
girl has been attacked by an anaconda. She's suffered a few broken ribs, but I
think her internal injuries might be more severe:"
"Come
this way." The nurse waved them toward a set of double doors. She eyed
Takaho with clear suspicion.
"He's
her father:'
The
nurse nodded. "Dr. Rodriguez is out on a house call, but I can ring him
for an emergency."
"Ring
him," Nathan said.
"Maybe
I can help," a voice said behind him.
Nathan
turned.
A
tall, slender woman with long auburn hair rose from the wooden folding chairs
in the waiting room. She had been partially hidden behind a pile of wooden
crates emblazoned with the red cross. Approaching with calm assurance, she
studied them all intently.
Nathan
stood straighter.
"My
name is Kelly O'Brien' " she said in fluent Portuguese, but Nate heard a
trace of a Boston accent. She pulled out identification with the familiar
medical caduceus stamped on it. "I'm an American doctor."
"Dr.
O'Brien' " he said, switching to English, "I could certainly use your
help. The girl here was attacked-"
Atop
the stretcher, Tama's back suddenly arched. Her heels began to beat at the palm
fronds, then her thrashing spread through the rest of her body.
"She's
seizing!" the woman said. "Get her into the ward!"
The
pudgy nurse led the way, holding the door wide for the stretcher.
Kelly
O'Brien rushed alongside the girl as the two men swung the stretcher toward one
of the four beds in the tiny emergency ward. Snatching a pair of surgical
gloves, the tall doctor barked to the nurse, "I need ten milligrams of
diazepam!"
The
nurse nodded and dashed to a drug cabinet. In seconds, a syringe of
amber-colored fluid was slapped into Kelly's gloved hand. The doctor already
had a rubber tourniquet in place. "Hold her down;" she ordered Nate
and Takaho.
By
now, a nurse and a large orderly had arrived as the quiet hospital awakened to
the emergency.
"Get
ready with an IV line and a bag of LRS," Kelly said sharply. Her fingers
palpated a decent vein in the girl's thin arm. With obvious competence, Kelly
inserted the needle and slowly injected the drug.
"It's
Valium," she said as she worked. "It should calm the seizure long
enough to find out what's wrong with her."
Her
words proved instantly true. Tama's convulsions calmed. Her limbs stopped
thrashing and relaxed to the bed. Only her eyelids and the corner of her lips
still twitched. Kelly was examining her pupils with a penlight.
The
orderly nudged Nate aside as he worked on Tama's other arm, preparing a
catheter and IV line.
Nate
glanced over the orderly's shoulder and saw the fear and panic in her father's
eyes.
"What
happened to her?" the doctor asked as she continued examining the girl.
Nathan
described the attack. "She's been slipping in and out of consciousness
most of the time. The village shaman was able to revive her for a short time:"
"She's
sustained a pair of cracked ribs and associated hematomas, but I can't account
for the seizure or stupor. Did she have any seizures en route here?"
No.
"Any
familial history of epilepsy?"
Nate
turned to Takaho and repeated the question in Yanomamo.
Takaho
nodded. "Ah-de-me-nah gunti."
Nate
frowned.
"What
did he say?" Kelly asked.
"Ah-de-me-nah
means electric eel. Gunti is disease or sickness."
"Electric
eel disease?"
Nate
nodded. "That's what he said. But it makes no sense. A victim of an
electric eel attack will often convulse, but it's an immediate reaction. And
Tama hasn't been in any water for hours. I don't know . . . maybe `electric eel
disease' is the Yanomamo term for epilepsy."
"Has
she been treated for it? On medication?"
Nate
got the answer from Takaho. "The village shaman has been treating her once
a week with the smoke of the hempweed vine:"
Kelly
sighed in exasperation. "So in other words, she's been unmedicated. No
wonder the stress of the near drowning triggered such a severe attack. Why
don't you take her father out to the waiting room? I'll see if I can get these
seizures to cease with stronger meds:"
Nate
glanced to the bed. 'lama's form lay quiet. "Do you think she'll have
more?"
Kelly
glanced into his eyes. "She's still having them:" She pointed to the
persistent facial twitches. "She's in status epilepticus, a continual
seizure. Most patients who suffer from such prolonged attacks will appear
stuporous, moaning, uncoordinated. The full grand mal events like a moment ago
will be interspersed. If we can't stop it, she'll die:"
Nate
stared at the little girl. "You mean she's been seizing this entire time?"
"From
what you describe, more or less:"
"But
the village shaman was able to draw her out of the stupor for a short
time:"
"I
find that hard to believe:" Kelly returned her attention to the girl.
"He wouldn't have medication strong enough to break this cycle:"
Nate
remembered the girl sipping at the gourd. "But he did. Don't discount
tribal shamans as mere witch doctors. I've worked for years with them. And
considering what they have to work with, they're quite sophisticated:"
"Well,
wise or not, we've stronger medications here. Real medicine." She nodded
again to the father. "Why don't you take her father out to the waiting
room?" Kelly turned back to the orderly and nurses, dismissing him.
Nate
bristled, but obeyed. For centuries, the value of shamanism had been scorned by
practitioners of Western medicine. Nate coaxed Takaho out of the ward and into
the waiting room. He guided the Indian to a chair and instructed him to stay,
then headed for the door.
He
slammed his way out into the heat of the Amazon. Whether the American doctor
believed him or not, he had seen the shaman revive the girl. If there was one
man who might have an answer for Tama's mysterious illness, he knew where to
find him.
Half
running, he raced through the afternoon heat toward the southern outskirts of
the city. In about ten blocks, he was skirting the edge of the Brazilian army
camp. The normally sleepy base buzzed with activity. Nate noted the four
helicopters with United States markings in the open field. Locals lined the
base's fences, pointing toward the novelty of the foreign military craft and
chattering excitedly.
He
ignored the oddity and hurried to a cement-block building set amid a row of
dilapidated wooden structures. The letters FuNm were painted on the wall facing
the street. It was the local office for the Brazilian Indian Foundation and
represented the sole source of aid, education, and legal representation for the
local tribes, the Baniwa and Yanomamo. The small building housed both offices
and a homeless shelter for Indians who had come in search of the white man's
prosperity.
FUNAI
also had its own medical counselor, a longtime friend of the family and his own
father's mentor here in the jungles of the Amazon.
Nate
pushed through the anteroom and hurried down a hall and up a set of stairs. He
prayed his friend was in his office. As he neared the open door, he heard the
strands of Mozart's Fifth Violin Concerto flowing out.
Thank
God!
Knocking
on the door's frame, Nate announced himself. "Professor Kouwe?"
Behind
a small desk, a mocha-skinned Indian glanced up from a pile of papers. In his
mid-fifties, he had shoulder-length black hair that was graying at the temples,
and he now wore wire-rimmed glasses when reading. He took off those glasses and
smiled broadly when he recognized Nate.
"Nathan!"
Resh Kouwe stood and came around the desk to give him a hug that rivaled the
coils of the anaconda he had fought. For his compact frame, the man was as
strong as an ox. Formerly a shaman of the Tirios tribe of southern Venezuela,
Kouwe had met Nate's father three decades ago, and the two had become fast
friends. Kouwe had eventually left the jungle with his father's help and was
schooled at Oxford, earning a dual degree in linguistics and paleoanthropology.
He was also one of the pre-eminent experts in the botanical lore of the region.
"My boy, I can't believe you're here! Did Manny contact you?"
Nathan
frowned as he was released from the bear hug. "No, what do you mean?"
"He's
looking for you. He stopped by about an hour ago to see if knew which village
you were conducting your current research in."
"Why?"
Nathan's brow wrinkled.
"He
didn't say, but he did have one of those Tellux corporate honchos with him:'
Nathan
rolled his eyes. Tellux Pharmaceuticals was the multinational corporation that
had been financing his investigative research into the practices of the
region's tribal shamans.
Kouwe
recognized his sour expression. "It was you who made the pact with the
devil."
"Like
I had any choice after my father died:"
Kouwe
frowned. "You should not have given up on yourself so quickly. You were
always-"
"Listen,"
Nathan said, cutting him off. He didn't want to be reminded of that black
period in his life. He had made his own bed and would have
to lie
in it. "I've got a different problem than Tellux." He quickly
explained about Tama and her illness. "I'm worried about her treatment. I
thought you could consult with the doctor:"
Kouwe
grabbed a fishing tackle box from a shelf. "Foolish, foolish,
foolish," he said, and headed for the door.
Nathan
followed him down the stairs and out into the street. He had to hurry to keep
up with the older man. Soon the two were pushing through the hospital's front
doors.
Takaho
leaped to his feet at the reappearance of Nathan. "Jako . . .
Brother."
Nathan
waved him back down. "I've brought someone who might be able to help your
daughter."
Kouwe
did not wait. He was already shoving into the ward beyond the doors. Nathan
hurried after him.
What
he found in the next room was chaos. The slender American doctor, her face
drenched with sweat, was bent over Tama, who was again in a full grand mal
seizure. Nurses were scurrying to and fro at her orders.
Kelly
glanced over the girl's convulsing body. "We're losing her," she
said, her eyes frightened.
"Maybe
I can help," Kouwe said. "What medications has she been given?"
Kelly
ran down a quick list, wiping strands of hair from her damp forehead.
Nodding,
Kouwe opened his tackle box and grabbed a small pouch from one of the many tiny
compartments. "I need a straw."
A
nurse obeyed him as quickly as she had Dr. O'Brien. Nathan could guess that
this was not the first visit Professor Kouwe had made to the hospital here.
There was no one wiser on indigenous diseases and their cures.
"What
are you doing?" Kelly asked, her face red. Her loose auburn hair had been
pulled back in a ponytail.
"You've
been working under a false assumption," he said calmly as he packed the
plastic straw with his powder. "The convulsive nature of electric eel
disease is not a manifestation of a CNS disturbance, like epilepsy. It's due to
a hereditary chemical imbalance in the cerebral spinal fluid. The disease is
unique to a handful of Yanomamo tribes:"
"A
hereditary metabolic disorder?"
"Exactly,
like favism among certain Mediterranean families or `cold-fat disease' among
the Maroon tribes of Venezuela."
Kouwe
crossed to the girl and waved to Nathan. "Hold her still:"
Nathan
crossed and held Tama's head to the pillow.
The
shaman positioned one end of the straw into the girl's nostril, then blew the
straw's powdery content up her nose.
Dr.
O'Brien hovered behind him. "Are you the hospital's clinician? Dr.
Rodriguez?"
"No,
my dear;" Kouwe said, straightening. "I'm the local witch
doctor:"
Kelly
looked at him with an expression of disbelief and horror, but before she could
object, the girl's thrashing began to calm, first slowly, then more rapidly.
Kouwe
checked Tama's eyelids. The sick pallor to her skin was already improving.
"I've found the absorption of certain drugs through the sinus membranes is
almost as effective as intravenous administration:"
Kelly
looked on in amazement. "It's working:"
Kouwe
passed the pouch to one of the nurses. "Is Dr. Rodriguez on his way in?"
"I
called him earlier, Professor," a nurse answered, glancing at her
wristwatch. "He should be here in ten minutes."
"Make
sure the girl gets half a straw of the powder every three hours for the next
twenty-four, then once daily. That should stabilize her so her other injuries
can be addressed satisfactorily."
"Yes,
Professor."
On the
bed, Tama slowly blinked open her eyes. She stared at the strangers around her,
confusion and fright clear in her face, then her eyes found Nathan's.
"Jako Basho," she said weakly.
"Yes,
Brother Monkey is here," he said in Yanomamo, patting her hand.
"You're safe. Your papa is here, too:"
One of
the nurses fetched Takaho. When he saw his daughter awake and speaking, he fell
to his knees. His stoic demeanor shattered, and he wept with relief.
a
hanging flap. His characteristic bullwhip was wound at his waist.
Nathan
returned Manny's smile and crossed to him. They hugged briefly, patting each
other on the back. Then Nathan flicked the torn bit of his khaki shirt.
"Playing with Tor-tor again, I see:"
Manny
grinned. "The monster's gained ten kilos since the last time you saw
him:"
Nathan
laughed. "Great. Like he wasn't big enough already." Noting that the
Rangers had stopped and were staring at the pair, as were Kelly O'Brien and her
brother, Nathan nodded to the military party and leaned closer. "So what's
all this about? Where are they heading?"
Manny
glanced at the group. By now, a large crowd of onlookers had gathered to gawk
at the line of stiff Army Rangers. "It seems the U.S. government is
financing a recon team for a deep-jungle expedition."
"Why?
Are they after drug traffickers?"
By
now, Kelly O'Brien had stepped back toward them.
Manny
acknowledged her with a nod, then waved a hand to Nathan. "May I introduce
you to Dr. Rand? Dr. Nathan Rand." "She'll be fine from here,"
Nate assured him.
Kouwe
collected his fishing tackle box and retreated from the room. Nathan and Dr.
O'Brien followed.
"What
was in that powder?" the auburn-haired doctor asked.
"Desiccated
ku-nah-ne-mah vine:"
Nate
answered the doctor's confused expression. "Climbing hemp-weed. The same
plant the tribal shaman burned to revive the girl back at the village. Just
like I told you before:"
Kelly
blushed. "I guess I owe you an apology. I didn't think . . . I mean I
couldn't imagine.. :"
Kouwe
patted her on her elbow. "Western ethnocentrism is a common rudeness out
here. It's nothing to be embarrassed about:" He winked at her. "Just
outgrown."
Nate
did not feel as courteous. "Next time," he said harshly, "listen
with a more open mind:"
She
bit her lip and turned away.
Nathan
instantly felt like a cad. His worry and fear throughout the day had worn his
patience thin. The doctor had only been trying her best. Knowing he shouldn't
have been so hard on her, he opened his mouth to apologize.
But
before he could speak, the front door swung open and a tall red-headed man
dressed in khakis and a beat-up Red Sox baseball cap stepped into the lobby. He
spotted the doctor. "Kelly, if you've finished delivering the supplies, we
need to be under way. We've a boat that's willing to take us upriver.
"Yes;"
she said. "I'm all done here:"
She
then glanced at Nathan and Kouwe. "Thank you:"
Nathan
recognized the similarities between this newcomer and the young doctor: the
splash of freckles, the same crinkle around the eyes, even their voices had the
same Boston lilt. Her brother, he guessed.
Nathan
followed them out of the hospital and into the street. But what he found there
caused him to take an involuntary step backward, bumping into Professor Kouwe.
Aligned
across the road was a group of ten soldiers in full gear, including M-16s with
collapsible butt stocks, holstered pistols, and heavy packs. Nate recognized
the shoulder insignia common to them all. Army Rangers. One spoke into a radio
and waved the group forward toward the water-front. The pair of Americans
joined the departing group.
"Wait!"
someone called from beyond the line of Rangers.
The
military wall parted, and a familiar face appeared. It was Manny
Azevedo.
The stocky black-haired man broke through the ranks. He wore scuffed trousers
and the pocket of his shirt had been ripped to
"It
seems we've already met," Kelly said with an embarrassed smile. "But
he never offered his name:'
Nathan
sensed something unspoken pass between Kelly and Manny. "What's going
on?" he asked. "What are you searching for upriver?"
She
stared him straight in the eyes. Her eyes were the most striking shade of
emerald. "We came to find you, Dr. Rand."
CHAPTER TWO
Debriefing
AUGUST 6,
9:15 PM.
SAO GABRIEL
DA CCICHCIERIA
Nate
crossed the street from Manny's offices at FUNAI and headed toward the
Brazilian army base. He was accompanied by the Brazilian biologist and
Professor Kouwe. The professor had just returned from the hospital. Nate was
relieved to hear that Tama was recuperating well.
Freshly
showered and shaved, his clothes laundered, Nathan Rand felt nothing like the
man who had arrived here only hours before with the girl. It was as if he had
scraped and scrubbed the jungle from his body along with the dirt and sweat. In
a few hours, he went from a newly anointed member of the Yanomamo tribe back to
an American citizen. It was amazing the transformational power of Irish Spring
deodorant soap. He sniffed at the residual smell.
"After
being so long in the jungle, it's nauseating, isn't it?" Professor Kouwe
said, puffing on a pipe. "When I first left my home in the Venezuelan
jungle, it was the bombardment upon my senses-the smells, the noises, the
furious motion of civilization-that took the longest to acclimatize to:"
Nathan
dropped his arm. "It's strange how quickly you adapt to the simpler life
out in the wilds. But I can tell you one thing that makes all the hassles of
modern civilized life worth it."
"What's
that?" Manny asked.
"Toilet
paper," Nathan said.
Kouwe
snorted with laughter. "Why do you think I left the jungle?"
They
crossed toward the gate of the illuminated base. The meeting was scheduled to
start in another ten minutes. Maybe then he'd have some answers.
As
they walked, Nathan glanced over the quiet city and studied this little bastion
of civilization. Over the river, a full moon hung, reflected in the sleek
surface, blurred by an evening mist spreading into the city. Only at night does
the jungle reclaim Sao Gabriel. After the sun sets, the noises of the city die
down, replaced by the echoing song of the nightjar in the surrounding trees,
accompanied by the chorus of honking frogs and the vibrato of locusts and
crickets. Even in the streets, the flutter of bats and whine of blood-hungry
mosquitoes replace the honk of cars and chatter of people. Only as one passes
an open cantina, where the tinkling laughter of late-night patrons flows forth,
does human life intrude.
Otherwise,
at night, the jungle rules.
Nathan
kept pace with Manny. "What could the U.S. government possibly need with
me?"
Manny
shook his head. "I'm not sure. But it somehow involves your financiers:"
"Tellux
Pharmaceuticals?"
"Right.
They arrived with several corporate types. Lawyers, by the look of them:"
Nate
scowled. "Aren't there always when Tellux is involved?"
Kouwe
spoke around the stem of his pipe. "You didn't have to sell Eco-tek to
them:"
Nate
sighed. "Professor . . :'
The
shaman raised his hands in submission. "Sorry. I know . . . sore
subject:"
Sore
wasn't the word Nathan would have used. Established twelve years ago, Eco-Tek
had been his father's brainchild. It was a niche pharmaceutical firm that had
sought to utilize shamanic knowledge as the means to discover new botanical
drugs. His father had wanted to preserve the wisdom of the vanishing medicine
men of the Amazon basin and to insure that these local tribes profited from
their own knowledge through intellectual property rights. Not only had it been
his father's dream and purpose in life, but also the culmination of a promise
to Nate's mother, Sarah.
While
working as a medical doctor for the Peace Corps, she had dedicated her life to
the indigenous people here, and her passion was contagious. Nate's father had
promised to continue on in her footsteps and, years later, Eco-Tek was the
result, a fusion of razor-sharp business models and non-profit advocacy.
But
now all that was left of his parents' legacy was gone, dismantled and swallowed
by Tellux.
"Looks
like we're getting an escort," Manny said, breaking through Nate's
thoughts.
At the
gate's guard station, two Rangers in tan berets stood stiffly behind a
nervous-looking Brazilian soldier.
Nathan
eyed their holstered sidearms warily and wondered again at the nature of this
meeting.
As
they reached the gates, the Brazilian guard checked their identifications. Then
one of the two Rangers stepped forward. "We're to take you to the
debriefing. If you'll please follow:" He turned sharply on his heel and
strode away.
Nathan
glanced to his friends, then proceeded through the gates. The second Ranger
took up a strategic position behind them. Ushered along by their escorts, with
a view of the four military helicopters resting on the camp's soccer field,
Nathan felt a distinct sense of dread in his belly.
None
of this seemed to concern Professor Kouwe. He simply puffed on his pipe and
strode casually after their armed escort. Manny also appeared more distracted
than alarmed.
They
were marched past the corrugated Quonset buts that served as barracks for the
Brazilian troops and led to a derelict timber-framed ware-house on the far side
with the few windows painted black.
The
Ranger in the lead opened the rusted door. Nathan was the first through.
Expecting to find a gloomy, spider-infested interior, he was surprised to find
the large warehouse brightly lit with halogen poles and over-head fluorescents,
The cement floor was crisscrossed with cables, some as thick around as his
wrist. From one of the three offices lining the back half of the warehouse, a
generator could be heard chugging away.
Nathan
gaped at the level of sophisticated hardware positioned throughout the room:
computers, radio equipment, televisions, and monitors.
Amid
all the organized chaos, a long conference table had been set up, strewn with
printouts, maps, graphs, even a pile of newspapers. Men and women in both
military garb and civilian clothes were busy throughout the room. Several were
poring over reams of paper at the table, including Kelly O'Brien.
What's
going on here? Nathan wondered.
"I'm
afraid there's no smoking inside," their escort said to Professor Kouwe,
indicating the lit pipe.
"Of
course:" Kouwe tapped out his pipe's bowl onto the threshold's dirt floor.
The Ranger used his boot heel to squash the burning tobacco. "Thank
you:"
From
across the way, one of the office doors opened and the tall red-headed man who
appeared to be Dr. O'Brien's brother stepped out. At his side was a man Nate
knew well enough to dislike immensely. He was dressed in a navy blue suit with
the jacket slung over one arm, a coat Nate was sure bore the Tellux logo. As
usual, his dark brown hair was oiled and combed into perfect place, as was his
smartly trimmed goatee. The smile he wore as he approached Nathan and his two
friends was just as oily.
On the
other hand, his redheaded companion crossed with an arm extended and a more
genuine expression of welcome. "Dr. Rand, thank you for coming. I think
you know Dr. Richard Zane."
"We've
met," Nathan said coldly, then shook the redhead's hand. The man had a
grip that could crush stone.
"I'm
Frank O'Brien, the head of operations here. You've already met my sister."
He nodded over to Kelly, who glanced up from the table. She lifted a hand in
greeting. "Now that you're all here we can get this meeting under
way."
Frank
guided Nate, Kouwe, and Manny toward the table, then waved an arm, signaling
the others to take their seats.
A
hard-faced man with a long pale scar across his throat settled him-self across
the table from Nathan. At his side sat one of the Rangers, his two silver bars
suggesting he was the captain of the military forces here.
At the
head of the table, Richard Zane sat between Kelly and Frank, who remained
standing. To the left was another Tellux employee, a small Asian woman in a
conservative blue pantsuit. Her eyes glinted with intelligence and seemed to
soak in everything around her. Nate caught her gaze. She gave him the faintest
of smiles and nodded her head.
Once
everyone else was settled, Frank cleared his throat. "First, Dr. Rand, let
me welcome you to the command center for Operation Amazonia, a joint operation
between the CIA's Environmental Center and Special Forces Command:" He
gave a short nod to the silver-barred captain. "We're also supported by
the Brazilian government and are assisted by Tellux Pharmaceutical's research
division."
Kelly
interrupted her brother, raising a hand. She clearly read the con-fusion on
Nathan's face. "Dr. Rand, I'm sure you've many questions. Fore-most being,
why you've been sought as a partner in this venture:"
Nathan
nodded.
Kelly
stood. "The main objective of Operation Amazonia is to discover the fate
of your father's lost expedition."
Nate's
jaw dropped and his vision blackened at the edges. He felt as it he'd just been
sucker-punched. He stammered for half a moment until he found his voice.
"But. . . but that was over four years ago:"
"We
understand that, but-"
"No!"
He found himself on his feet, his chair skittering across the cement behind
him. "They're dead. All dead!"
Professor
Kouwe reached to place a restraining hand on his elbow. "Nathan. . :"
He
shook his arm free. He remembered that call as if it were yesterday. He had
been finishing up his doctoral thesis at Harvard. He had taken the next plane
down to Brazil and joined the search for the vanished team. Memories flowed
through him as he stood in the warehouse-the blinding fear, the anger, the
frustration. After the searches were called off, he had refused to give up. He
couldn't! He had pleaded with Tellux Pharmaceuticals to help continue the
search privately. Tellux had been a co-sponsor, along with Eco-tek, in this
venture. The ten-year goal: to conduct a census of the current populations of
indigenous tribes and begin a systematic cataloging of their medicinal
knowledge before such information was lost forever. But Tellux had refused
Nate's request for assistance. The corporation had supported the conclusion
that the team either had been killed by a tribe of hostile Indians or had
stumbled upon a camp of drug traffickers.
Nate
had not. Over the next year, he spent millions continuing the search, beating
the bush for any sign, clue, inkling of what had become of his father. It was a
financial black hole into which he poured Eco-tek's assets, further
destabilizing his father's company. Eco-tek had already taken a devastating hit
on Wall Street, its stock value plummeting after the loss of its CEO in the
jungle. Eventually, the well ran dry. Tellux made a run for his father's
company in a hostile takeover bid. Nate was too wounded, tired, and heartsore
to fight. Eco-tek and its assets, including Nathan himself, became beholden to
the multinational corporation.
What
followed was an even blacker period of his life, a hazy blur of alcohol, drugs,
and disillusionment. It was only with the help of friends like Professor Kouwe
and Manny Azevedo that he had ever found himself again. In the jungles, he
found the pain was less severe. He discovered he could survive a day, then
another. He plodded his way as best he could, continuing his father's work with
the Indians, financed on a pittance from Tellux.
Until
now. "They're dead!" he repeated, sagging toward the table.
"After so long, there's no hope of ever discovering what happened to my
father:"
Nathan
felt Kelly's penetrating emerald eyes on him as she waited for him to compose
himself. Finally, she spoke. "Do you know Gerald Wallace Clark?"
Opening
his mouth to say no, Nathan suddenly recognized the name. He had been a member
of his father's team. Nathan licked his lips. "Yes. He was a former
soldier. He headed the expedition's five-man weapons team:"
Kelly
took a deep breath. "Twelve days ago, Gerald Wallace Clark walked out of
the jungle."
Nate's
eyes grew wide.
"Damn,"
Manny said beside him.
Professor
Kouwe had retrieved Nate's toppled chair and now helped guide him down to his
seat.
Kelly
continued, "Unfortunately, Gerald Clark died at a missionary settlement
before he could indicate where he had come from. The goal of our operation is
to backtrack this latest trail to find out what happened.
We
were hoping that as the son of Carl Rand, you'd be interested in cooperating
with our search:'
A
silence descended over the table.
Frank
cleared his throat, adding, "Dr. Rand, not only are you an expert on the
jungle and its indigenous tribes, but you also knew your father and his team
better than anyone. Such knowledge could prove an asset during this deep-jungle
search:"
Nathan
was still too stunned to speak or answer. Professor Kouwe was not. He spoke
calmly. "I can see why Tellux Pharmaceuticals is invested in this
matter:" Kouwe nodded to Richard Zane, who smiled back at the professor.
"They were never one to pass up a chance to profit from another's
tragedy."
Zane's
smile soured.
Kouwe
continued, now turning his attention to Frank and Kelly. "But why is this
matter of interest to the CIA's Environmental Center? And what's the rationale
for assigning an Army Ranger unit to the mission?" He turned to the
military man, raising a single eyebrow. "Would either of you two or the
captain here wish to elaborate?"
Frank's
brow wrinkled at the quick and piercing assessment from the professor. Kelly's
eyes sparked.
She
answered. "Besides being an ex-soldier and a weapons expert, Gerald Clark
was also a CIA operative. He was sent along with the expedition to gather
intelligence on the cocaine shipment routes through the rain forest
basin:"
Frank
glanced quickly at Kelly, as if this bit of information were given a bit too
freely.
She
ignored her brother and continued. "But any further elaboration will only
be given if Dr. Rand agrees to join our operation. Otherwise, additional
details will be restricted:"
Kouwe,
his eyes bright with warning, glanced to Nathan.
Nate
took a deep breath. "If there's any hope of finding out what happened to
my father, then I can't pass up this chance:" He turned to his two
friends. "You both know I can't:"
Nathan
stood and faced the table. "I'll go:"
Manny
shoved out of his chair. "Then I'm going with him:" He faced the
others and continued before anyone could object. "I've already talked to
my superiors in Brasilia. As chief representative of FUNAI here, I have the
power at my discretion to place any restrictions or qualifications on this
mission:"
Frank
nodded. "So we were informed an hour ago. It's your choice. Either way,
you'll have no objection from me. I read your file. Your back-ground as a
biologist could prove useful:"
Next,
Professor Kouwe stood up and placed a hand on Nate's shoulder. "Then
perhaps you could use an expert in linguistics also."
"I
appreciate your offer." Frank waved to the small Asian woman. "But we
do have that covered. Dr. Anna Fong is an anthropologist with a specialty in
indigenous tribes. She speaks a dozen different dialects:"
Nathan
scoffed, "No offense to Dr. Fong, but Professor Kouwe speaks over a
hundred and fifty. There is no better expert in the field."
Anna
spoke up, her voice soft and sweet. "Dr. Rand is most correct. Professor
Kouwe is world renowned for his knowledge of the Amazon's indigenous tribes. It
would be a privilege to have his cooperation:"
"And
it seems," Kelly added with a respectful nod toward the older man,
"the good professor is also a distinguished expert on botanical medicines
and jungle diseases:"
Kouwe
bowed his head in her direction.
Kelly
turned to her brother. "As the expedition's medical doctor, I wouldn't
mind having him along either."
Frank
shrugged. "What's one more?" He faced Nathan. "Is this
accept-able to you?"
Nathan
glanced to his right and left. "Of course:"
Frank
nodded and raised his voice. "Let's all get back to work then. Discovering
Dr. Rand here in the city has accelerated our schedule. We've a lot to
accomplish in order to be under way at the crack of dawn tomorrow." As the
others began to disperse, Frank turned to Nathan. "Now let's see if we
can't get a few more of your questions answered:'
He and
his sister led the way toward one of the back offices.
Nate
and his two friends followed.
Manny
glanced over his shoulder to the bustling room. "Just what the hell have
we volunteered for?"
"Something
amazing," Kelly answered from ahead, holding open the office door.
"Step inside and I'll show you:"
Nathan
clutched the photos of Agent Clark and passed them around to the others.
"And you're telling me this man actually grew his arm back?"
Frank
stepped around the desk and took a seat. "So it would seem. It's been
verified by fingerprints. The man's body was shipped today from the morgue in
Manaus back to the States. His remains are due to be examined tomorrow at a
private research facility sponsored by MEDEA."
"MEDEA?"
Manny asked. "Why does that name sound familiar?"
Kelly
answered from where she was studying topographic maps tacked on the wall.
"MEDEA's been active in rain forest conservation since its inception back
in 1992."
"What
is MEDEA?" Nathan asked, placing the photos on the desk.
"Back
in 1989, there were congressional hearings on whether or not the classified
data gathered by the CIA through its satellite surveillance systems might be
useful in studying and monitoring global environmental changes. As a result,
MEDEA was formed in 1992. The CIA recruited more than sixty researchers in
various environmental-related fields into a single organization to analyze
classified data in regard to environmental concerns."
"I
see," Nathan said.
Frank
spoke up, "Our mother was one of the original MEDEA founders, with a
background in medicine and hazardous-waste risks. She was hired by my father
when he was deputy director of the CIA. She'll be overseeing the autopsy of
Agent Clark:"
Manny
frowned. "Your father is the deputy director of the CIA?"
"Was,"
Frank said bitterly.
Kelly
turned from the maps. "He's now director of the CIA's Environ-mental
Center. A division that was founded by Al Gore in 1997 at the behest of MEDEA.
Frank works in this division, as well:"
"And
you?" Nathan asked. "Are you CIA, too?"
Kelly
waved away his question.
"She's
the youngest member of MEDEA," Frank said with a bit of pride in his
voice. "Quite the distinguished honor. It was why we were chosen to head
this operation. I represent the CIA. She represents MEDEA."
"Nothing
like keeping it all in the family," Kouwe said with a snort.
"The
fewer who know about the mission the better," Frank added.
"Then
how does Tellux Pharmaceuticals play a role in all this?" Nathan asked.
Kouwe
answered before either of the O'Brien siblings. "Isn't it obvious? Your
father's expedition was financed by Eco-tek and Tellux, which are now one and
the same. They own any proprietary intelligence gained from the expedition. If
the team discovered some compound out there with regenerative properties,
Tellux owns the majority rights to it:"
Nathan
glanced to Kelly, who stared at her toes.
Frank
simply nodded. "He's right. But even at Tellux, only a handful of people
know the true purpose of our mission here:"
Nate
shook his head. "Great, just great:" Kouwe placed a sympathetic hand
on his shoulder.
"All
that aside," Manny said, "what's our first step?"
"Let
me show you:" Kelly turned once again to the maps on the back wall. She
pointed to the centermost one. "I'm sure Dr. Rand is familiar with this
map:"
He
stared at it and did indeed recognize it like the lines on his own palm.
"It's the recorded route my father's team took four years ago:"
"Exactly;"
Kelly said, tracing her finger along the dotted course that led in haphazard
fashion from Manaus south along the Madeira River until it reached the town of
PBrto Velho, where it angled north into the heart of the Amazon basin. From
there, the team crisscrossed the area until they bridged into the
little-explored region between the southern and northern tributaries of the
Amazon. Her finger stopped at the small cross at the end
of the
line. "Here is where all radio contact with the team ceased. And where all
searches originated-both those sponsored by the Brazilian government and those
financed privately" She glanced significantly at Na-than. "What can
you tell us about the searches?"
Nate
circled around the desk to stare at the map. A familiar creeping despair edged
through the core of his being. "It was December, the height of the rainy
season," he whispered dully. "Two major storm systems had moved
through the region. It was one of the reasons no one was initially concerned.
But when an update from the team grew to be almost a week late and the storms
had abated, an alarm went up. At first, no one was really that worried. These
were people who had lived their lives in the jungle. What could go wrong? But
as search teams began tentatively looking, it was realized that all trace of
the expedition was gone, erased by the rains and the flooded forests. This
spot"-Nathan placed a finger on the black X-"was found to be
underwater when the first team arrived."
He
turned to the others. "Another week went by, then another. Nothing. No
clues, no further word . . . until one last frantic signal. `Send help . . .
can't last much longer. Oh, God, they're all around us: "Nate took a deep
breath. The memory of those words still haunted him deeply. "The signal
was so full of static that it was impossible to discern who even spoke. Maybe
it was this Agent Clark:" But in his heart, Nathan knew it had been his
father. He had listened over and over to that last message. The last words of
his father.
Nathan
stared at the photos and documents strewn across the desktop. "For the
next three months, the searchers swept throughout the region, but storms and
floods made any progress difficult. There was no telling in which direction my
father's team had headed: east, west, north, south:" He shrugged. "It
was impossible. We were searching a region larger than the state of Texas.
Eventually everyone gave up:"
"Except
you;" Kelly said softly.
Nathan
clenched a fist. "And a lot of good that did. No further contact was ever
heard:"
"Until
now," Kelly said. She gently drew him around and pointed to a small red
circle he had not noticed before. She pointed to it. It lay about two hundred
miles due south of Sao Gabriel, near the river of Jarura, a
branch
of the Solimoes, the mighty southern tributary of the Amazon. "This is the
mission of Wauwai, where Agent Clark died. This is where we're heading
tomorrow."
"And
what then?" Manny asked.
"We
follow Gerald Clark's trail. Unlike the earlier searches, we have an advantage:"
"What
is that?" Manny asked.
Nathan
spoke up, leaning close to the wall map. "We're at the end of the dry
season. There hasn't been a major storm through here in a month:" He
glanced over his shoulder. "We should be able to track his movements."
"Hence,
the urgency and speed of organizing this mission:" Frank stood. He leaned
one hand on the wall and nodded to the map. "We hope to follow any clues
before the wet season begins and the trail is washed away. We're also hoping
Agent Clark was sound enough in mind to leave some evidence of his route-marks
on a tree, piles of rock-some way to lead us back to where he had been held
these past four years:"
Frank
turned back to the desk and slid out a large folded sheet of sketch paper.
"In addition, we've employed Anna Fong so we can communicate with any
natives of the region: peasants, Indians, trappers, whoever. To see if anyone
has seen a man with these markings pass by" Frank unfolded and smoothed
the paper. A hand-sketched drawing was revealed. "This was tattooed across
Agent Clark's chest and abdomen. We hope that we'll find isolated folk who
might have seen a man with this marking:"
Professor
Kouwe flinched.
His
reaction did not go unnoticed by those in the room.
"What
is it?" Nathan asked.
Kouwe
pointed to the sketch paper. It delineated a complex serpentine pattern that
spiraled out from a single stylized handprint.
"This
is bad. Very bad:' Kouwe fumbled in his pocket and pulled out his pipe. He
lifted a questioning eye at Frank.
The
redheaded man nodded.
Kouwe
slipped out a pouch and tamped some locally grown tobacco into the pipe, then
lit it with a single match. Nathan noted his uncharacteristically trembling
fingers.
"What
is it?"
Kouwe
puffed on his pipe and spoke slowly. "It's the symbol for the Ban-all. The
Blood Jaguars:"
"You
know this tribe?" Kelly asked.
The
shaman blew out a long stream of smoke and sighed, then shook his head.
"No one knows this tribe. It is what's whispered among village elders,
stories passed from one generation to another. Myths of a tribe that mates with
jaguars and whose members can vanish into thin air. They bring death to all who
encounter them. It is said they are as old as the forest and that the very
jungle bends to their will:"
"But
I've never heard of them;" Nathan said, "and I've worked with tribes
throughout the Amazon:"
"And
Dr. Fong, the Tellux anthropologist," Frank said. "She didn't
recognize it either."
"I'm
not surprised. No matter how well you're accepted, a non-tribesman will always
be considered pananakiri, an alien to the Indians of the region. They would
never speak of the Ban-ali to you:"
Nate
couldn't help but feel a bit insulted. "But I-"
"No,
Nathan. I don't mean to slight your own work or abilities. But for many tribes,
names have power. Few will speak the name Ban-ali. They fear to draw the
attention of the Blood Jaguars:" Kouwe pointed to the drawing. "If
you take this symbol with you, it must be shown with care. Many Indians would
slay you for possessing such a paper. There is no greater taboo than allowing
that symbol into a village:"
Kelly
frowned. "Then it's doubtful Agent Clark passed through any villages:"
"If
he did, he wouldn't have walked out alive:"
Kelly
and Frank shared a concerned look, then the doctor turned to Nathan. "Your
father's expedition was cataloging Amazonian tribes. If he had heard of these
mysterious Ban-ali or had found some clue of their existence, perhaps he sought
them out:'
Manny
folded the sketched drawing. "And perhaps he found them:"
Kouwe
studied the glowing tip of his pipe. "Pray to God he did not:"
A
little later, with most of the details settled, Kelly watched the trio,
escorted by a Ranger, cross the room and exit the warehouse. Her brother Frank
was already at the portable satellite uplink to report the day's progress to
his superiors, including their father.
But
Kelly found her gaze following Nathan Rand. After their antagonistic exchange
in the hospital, she was still slightly put off by his demeanor. But he was
hardly the same oily-haired, foul-smelling wretch she had seen hauling the girl
on a stretcher. Shaved and in clean clothes, he was certainly handsome:
sandy-blond hair, dark complexion, steel-blue eyes. Even the way one eyebrow
would rise when he was intrigued was oddly charming.
"Kelly!"
her brother called. "There's someone who'd like to say hi:"
With a
tired sigh, Kelly joined her brother at the table. All around the room, final
preparations and equipment checks were being finished. She leaned both palms on
the table and stared into the laptop's screen. She saw two familiar faces, and
a warm smile crossed her face.
"Mother,
Jessie's not supposed to be up this late:" She glanced to her own
wristwatch and did a quick calculation. "It must be close to midnight."
"Actually
after midnight, hon:"
Kelly's
mother could have been her sister. Her hair was as deep an auburn as her own.
The only sign of her age was the slightly deeper crinkles at the corners of her
eyes and the small pair of glasses perched on her nose. She had been pregnant
with Kelly and Frank when she was only twenty-two, still in med school herself.
Giving birth to fraternal twins was enough of a family for the med student and
the young navy surveillance engineer. Kelly's mother and father never had any
more children.
But
that didn't stop Kelly from following in her mother's footsteps, getting
pregnant in her fourth year of medical school at Georgetown. Yet unlike her
mother, who remained married to the father of her children, Kelly divorced
Daniel Nickerson when she found him in bed with a fellow residency student. He
at least had enough decency not to contest Kelly' demand for custody of their
one-year-old daughter, Jessica.
Jessie,
now six years old, stood al her grandmother's shoulder, dressed in a yellow
flannel nightgown with Disney's Pocahontas on the front. Hey tousled red hair
looked as if she had just climbed out of bed. She waved a1 the screen.
"Hi, Mommy!"
"Hi,
sweetheart. Are you having a good time with Grandma an< Grandpa?"
She
nodded vigorously. "We went to Chuck E. Cheese's today!"
Kelly's
smile broadened. "That sounds like fun. I wish I could've beer there:"
"We
saved a piece of pizza for you:"
In the
background, her mother's eyes rolled with the exasperation of all grandparents
who've had encounters with the giant Chuck E. Cheese's rodent.
"Did
you see any lions, Mommy?"
This
earned a chuckle. "No, hon, there are no lions here. That's Africa.
"How
about gorillas?"
"No,
that's Africa, too-but we did see some monkeys:"
Jessica's
eyes grew round. "Can you catch one and bring one home? always wanted a
monkey."
"I
don't think the monkey would like that. He has his own mommy here:"
Her
mother placed an arm around Jessica. "And I think it's time we lei your
mommy get some sleep. She has to get up early like you do:'
Jessica's
face fell into a pout.
Kelly
leaned closer to the screen. "I love you, Jessie."
She
waved at the screen. "Bye, Mommy."
Her
mother smiled at her. "Be careful, hon. I wish I could be there:"
"You've
got enough work of your own. Did the . . . um . . :" Her eyes licked to
Jessie. ". . . package arrive safely?"
'Her
mother's face drifted to a more serious demeanor. "It cleared customs in
Miami about six o'clock, arrived here in Virgiia about ten, and was trucked to
the Instar Institute. In fact, your father's still over there, making sure all
is in order for tomorrow's examination".
Kelly
nodded, relieved Clark's body had arrived in the States safely.
"I
should get Jessie to bed, but I'll update you tomorrow night during the evening
uplink. You be careful out there:"
"Don't
worry. I've got a crack team of ten Army Rangers as body-guards. I'll be safer
than on the streets of downtown Washington:"
"Still,
you two watch each other's backs:"
Kelly
glanced to Frank, who was talking to Richard Zane. "We will."
Her
mother swept her a kiss. "I love you."
"Love
you too, Mom:' Then the screen went dead.
Kelly
closed the laptop, then slumped to a chair by the table, suddenly exhausted.
She stared at the others. Her gear was already packed and stored on the Huey.
Free from any responsibilities for the moment, her mind drifted back to the red
serpentine tattoo wrapped around a blue palm, the symbol of the Ban-ali, the
ghost tribe of the Amazon.
Two
questions nagged her: Did such a tribe exist, a tribe with these mythic powers?
And if so, would ten armed Rangers be enough?
CHAPTER THREE
The
Doctor and the Witch
AUGUST
6, 1 1:45 1?M.
CAYENNE,
FRENCH GUIANA
Louis
Favre was often described as a bastard and drunkard, but never to his face.
Never. The unfortunate sot who had dared now sat on his backside in the alley
behind the Hotel Seine, a great decaying colonial edifice that sat on a hill
overlooking the capital city of French Guiana.
A
moment ago, in the hotel's dark bar, the miscreant at his feet had been
hassling a fellow regular, a man in his eighties, a survivor of the dreaded
penal colony of Devil's Island. Louis had never spoken to the old man, but he
had heard his tale from the barkeep. As with many of the prisoners shipped here
from France, he had been doubly sentenced: for every year spent in the island
hellhole ten miles off the coast, the fellow was forced to spend an equal
number of years in French Guiana afterward. It was a way to ensure a French
presence in the colony. And as the government had hoped, most of these pitiable
souls ended up staying here. What life did they have back in France after so
long?
Louis
had often studied this fellow, a kindred soul, another exile. He would watch
the man sip his neat bourbons, reading the lines in his aged and despairing
face. He valued these quiet moments.
So
when the half-drunk Englishman had tripped and bumped into the old man's elbow,
knocking over his drink, and then simply tottered on past without the courtesy
of apology or acknowledgment, Louis Favre had gained his feet and confronted
the man.
"Piss
off, Frenchie," the young man had slurred in his face.
Louis
continued to block the man's exit from the bar. "You'll buy my dear friend
another drink, or we'll have it out, monsieur:"
"Bugger
off already, you drunk wanker:" The man attempted to shove past.
Louis
had sighed, then struck out with a fist, bashing the man's nose bloody, and
grabbed him by the lapels of his poor suit. Other patrons turned their
attention to their own drinks. Louis hauled the rude young man, still dazed
from the blow and a night of heavy drinking, through a back door into the
alley.
He set
to work on earning an apology from the man, not that he could really talk with
a mouthful of bloody teeth. By the time Louis was done kicking and beating the
man, he lay in a ruin of piss and blood in the alley's filth. He gave the man
one final savage kick, hearing a satisfying crack of ribs. With a nod, Louis
retrieved his white Panama hat from atop a rubbish bin and straightened his
linen suit. He stared at his shoes, ivory patent leather. Frowning, he plucked
out a pristine handkerchief and wiped the blood from the tip of his shoes. He
scowled at the Englishman. thought about kicking him one last time, but then
studied his newly polished shoes and decided better.
Positioning
his hat in place, he reentered the smoky bar and signaled the barman. He
pointed to the old gent. "Please refresh my friend's drink."
The
Spanish barkeep nodded and reached for a bottle of bourbon.
Louis
met his gaze and wagged a finger at him.
The
barman bit his lip at the faux pas. Louis always went for the best even when
buying drinks for friends. Duly admonished, the man reached for a bottle of
properly aged Glenlivet, the best in the house.
"Merci."
With matters rectified, Louis headed for the entrance to the hotel's lobby,
almost running into the concierge.
The
small-framed man bowed and apologized profusely. "Dr. Favre! I was just
coming to find you," he said breathlessly. "I have an overseas n
holding for your attention:" He passed Louis a folded note. "They
refused
to
leave a message and stressed the call was urgent."
Louis
unfolded the slip and read the name, printed neatly: - St. Savin Biochimique
Compagnie. A French drug company. He refolded the paper and tucked it into his
breast pocket. "I'll take the call:"
"There
is a private salon-"
"I
know where it is," Louis said. He had taken many of his business calls
down here.
With
the concierge in tow, Louis strode to the small cubicle beside the hotel's
front desk. He left the man at the door and sat in the small upholstered chair
that smelled of mold and a melange of old cologne and sweat. Louis settled to
the seat and picked up the phone's receiver. "Dr. Louis Favre," he
said crisply.
"Bonjour,
Dr. Favre," a voice spoke on the other end of the line. "We have a
request for your services:"
"If
you have this number, then I assume you know my pricing schedule:"
"We
do."
"And
may I ask what class of service you require?"
"Premiere."
The
single word caused Louis's fingers to tighten on the receiver. First class. It
meant a payment over six figures. "Location?"
"The
Brazilian rain forest:"
"And
the objective?"
The
man spoke rapidly. Louis listened without taking notes. Each number was fixed
in his mind, as was each name, especially one. Louis's eyes narrowed. He sat up
straighter. The man finished, "The U.S. team must be tracked and whatever
they discover must be obtained:'
"And
the other team?"
There
was no answer, just the static of the other line.
"I
understand and accept," Louis said. "I'll need to see half the fee in
my usual account by close of business tomorrow. Furthermore, any and all
details of the U.S. team and its resources should be faxed to my private line s
soon as possible." He gave the number quickly.
"It
will be done within the hour:"
"Tres
bon."
The
line clicked dead, the business settled.
Louis
slowly replaced the receiver in its cradle and sat back. The thoughts of the
money and the thousand details in setting up his own team were pushed back for
now. At this moment, one name shone like burning magnesium across his mind's
eye. His new employer had glossed over it, unaware of the significance. If he
had been, St. Savin's offer probably would have been considerably less. In
fact, Louis would have taken this job for the cost of a cheap bottle of wine.
He whispered the name now, tasting it on his tongue.
"Carl
Rand."
Seven
years ago, Louis Favre had been a biologist employed by the Base Biologique
Nationale de Recherches, the premier French science foundation. With a
specialty in rain forest ecosystems, Louis had worked throughout the world:
Australia, Borneo, Madagascar, the Congo. But for fifteen years, his specialty
had been the Amazon rain forest. He had journeyed throughout the region,
establishing an international reputation.
That
is, until he ran into the damnable Dr. Carl Rand.
The
American pharmaceutical entrepreneur had found Louis's methods of research to
be a bit suspect, after stumbling upon Louis's interrogation of a local shaman.
Dr. Rand had not believed cutting off the man's fingers, one by one, had been a
viable way of gleaning information from the stubborn Indian, and no amount of
money would convince the simpering American otherwise. Of course, the pile of
endangered black caiman carcasses and jaguar pelts found in the village had not
helped matters. Dr. Rand seemed incapable of understanding that supplementing
one's work with black market income was simply a lifestyle choice.
Unfortunately,
Carl and his Brazilian forces had outnumbered his own team. Louis Favre was
captured and incarcerated by the Brazilian army. Luckily, he had connections in
France and enough money to ply the palms of a few corrupt Brazilian officials
in order to slip away with no more than a slap on the wrist.
However,
it was the figurative slap to his face that had stung worse. The incident had
blackened his good name beyond repair. Penniless, was forced to flee Brazil for
French Guiana. There, always resourceful and with previous contacts in the
black market, he scrounged together a mercenary jungle force. During the past
five years, his group had protected drug shipments from Colombia. hunted down
various rare and endangered animals for private collectors, eliminated a
troublesome Brazilian government regulator for a gold-mining operation, even
wiped out a small peasant village whose inhabitants objected to a logging
company's intrusion onto their lands. It was good business all around.
And
now this latest offer: to track a U.S. military team through the jungle as they
searched for Carl Rand's lost expedition and steal whatever they discovered.
All in order to be the first one to obtain some regenerative compound believed
to have been discovered by Rand's group.
Such a
request was not unusual. In the past few years, the race for new rain forest
drugs had become more and more frantic, a multibillion- dollar industry. The
search for "green gold," the next new wonder drug, had spurred a new
"gold rush" here in the Amazon. And in the trackless depths of the
forest, where millions of dollars were cast into an economy of dirtpoor farmers
and unschooled Indians, betrayals and atrocities were committed daily. There
were no spying eyes and no one to tell tales. Each year, the jungle alone
consumed thousands from disease, from attack, from injuries. What were a few
more-a biologist, an ethnobotanist, a drug researcher?
It was
a financial free-for-all.
And
Louis Favre was about to join the game, championed by a French pharmaceutical
company. Smiling, he stood up. He had been delighted when he heard about Carl
Rand's disappearance four years ago. He had gotten drunk that night, toasting
the man's misfortune. Now he would pound the final nail in the bastard's coffin
by stealing whatever the man had discovered and laying more lives upon his
grave.
Unlocking
the salon's door, Louis stepped out.
"I
hope everything was satisfactory, Dr. Favre," the concierge called
politely from his desk.
"Most
satisfactory, Claude," he said with a nod. "Most satisfactory
indeed:" Louis crossed to the hotel's small elevator, an antique cell of
wrought iron and wood. 1t hardly fit two people. He pressed the button r the
sixth floor, where his apartment suite lay. He was anxious to share the news.
The
elevator clanked, groaned, and sighed its way up to his floor. Once the door
was open, Louis hurried down the narrow hall to the farthest room. Like a
handful of other guests who had taken up permanent residence in the Hotel
Seine, Louis had a suite of rooms: two bedrooms, a cramped kitchen, a broad
sitting room with doors that opened upon a wrought-iron balcony, and even a
small study lined with bookshelves. The suite was not elaborate, but it suited
his needs. The staff was discreet and well accustomed to the eccentricities of
the guests.
Louis
keyed open his door and pushed inside. Two things struck him immediately. First,
a familiar and arousing scent filled the room. It came from a pot on the small
gas stovetop, boiling ayahuasca leaves that produced the powerful
hallucinogenic tea, natem.
Second,
he heard the whine of the fax machine coming from the study. His new employers
were certainly efficient.
"Tshui!"
he called out.
He
expected no answer, but as was customary among the Shuar tribespeople, one
always announced one's presence when entering a dwelling. He noticed the door
to the bedroom slightly ajar.
With a
smile, he crossed to the study and watched another sheet of paper roll from the
machine and fall to the growing stack. The details of the upcoming mission.
"Tshui, I have marvelous news:"
Louis
retrieved the topmost printout from the faxed pile and glanced at it. It was a
list of those who would comprise the U.S. search team.
10:45
P.m. UPDATE from Base Station Alpha
I. Op.
AMAZONIA: Civilian Unit Members
(1)
Kelly O'Brien, M.D.-MEDEA
(2)
Francis J. O'Brien-Environmental Center, CIA
(3)
Olin Pasternak-Science and Technology Directorate, CIA
(4)
Richard Zane, Ph.D.-Tellux Pharmaceutical research head
(5)
Anna Fong, Ph.D.-Tellux Pharmaceutical employee
II.
Op. AMAZONIA: Mil. Support: 75th Army Ranger Unit
CAPTAIN:
Craig Waxman
STAFF
SERGEANT: Alberto Kostos
CORPORALS:
Brian Conger, James DeMartini, Rodney Graves, Thomas Graves, Dennis Jorgensen,
Kenneth Okamoto, Nolan Warczak a Samad Yamir
III.
Op. AMAZONIA: Locally Recruited
(1)
Manuel Azevedo-FUNAI, Brazilian national
(2)
Resh Kouwe, Ph.D.-FUNAI, Indigenous Peoples Representative
(3)
Nathan Rand, Ph.D.-Ethnobotanist, U.S. citizen
Louis
almost missed the last name on the list. He gripped the faxed printout tighter.
Nathan Rand, the son of Carl Rand. Of course, it made sense. The boy would not
let this team search for his father without accompanying them. He closed his
eyes, savoring this boon. It was as if the gods of the dark jungle were
aligning in his favor. The revenge he had failed to mete upon the father would
fall upon the shoulders of the son. It was almost biblical.
As he
stood there, he heard a slight rustle coming from the next room, the master
bedroom. He let the paper slip from his fingers back to the pile. He would have
time later to review the details and formulate a plan. Right now, he simply
wanted to enjoy the serendipity of the moment.
"Tshui!"
he called again and crossed to the bedroom door.
He
slipped the door open and found the room beyond lit with candles and a single
incense burner. His mistress lay naked on the canopy bed. The queen-sized bed
was draped in white silk with its mosquito net folded back. The Shuar woman
reclined upon pillows atop the ivory sheets. Her deep-bronze skin glowed in the
candlelight. Her long black hair was a fan around her, while her eyes were heavy-lidded
from both passion and natem tea. Two cups lay on the small nightstand, one
empty, the other full.
As
usual, Louis found his breath simply stolen from him at the sight of his love.
He had first met the beauty three years ago in Ecuador. She had been the wife
of a Shuar chieftain, until the fool's infidelity had enraged her. She slew him
with his own machete. Though such acts-both the infidelity and the murder-were
common among the brutal Shuar, Tshui was banished from the tribe, sent naked
into the jungle. None, not even the
chieftain's
kinsmen, would dare touch her. She was well known through-out the region as one
of the rare female shamans, a practitioner of wawek,
malevolent
sorcery. Her skill at poisons, tortures, and the lost art of tsantza,
head-shrinking, were both respected and feared. In fact, the only article of
adornment she had worn as she left the village was the shrunken head of her
husband, hung on a twined cord and resting between her breasts.
This
was how Louis found the woman, a wild, beautiful creature of the jungle. Though
he had an estranged wife back in France, Louis had taken the woman as his own.
She had not refused, especially when he and his mercenaries slew every man,
woman, and child in her village, marking her revenge.
Since
that day, the two had been inseparable. Tshui, an accomplished interrogator and
wise in the ways of the jungle, accompanied him on all his missions. She
continued to collect trophies from each venture.
Around
the room, aligned on shelves on all four walls, were forty-three tsantza, each
head no more than a wizened apple-the eyes and lips sewn closed, the hair
trailing over the shelf edges like Spanish moss on trees. Her skill at
shrinking heads was amazing. He had watched the entire process once.
Once
was enough.
With
the skill of a surgeon, she would flay the skin in one piece from the skull of
her victim, sometimes while he or she was still alive and screaming. She truly
was an artist. After boiling the skin, hair and all, and drying it over hot
ashes, she used a bone needle and thread to close the mouth and eyes, then
filled the inside with hot pebbles and sand. As the leathery skin shrank, she
would mold its shape with her fingers. Tshui had an uncanny ability to sculpt
the head into an amazing approximation of the victim's original face.
Louis
glanced to her latest work of art. It rested on the far bedside table. It was a
Bolivian army officer who had been blackmailing a cocaine shipper. From his
trimmed mustache to the straight bangs hanging over his forehead, the detail of
her work was amazing. The collection was worthy of the finest museum. In fact,
the staff of the Hotel Seine thought Louis was a university anthropologist,
collecting these specimens for just such a museum. If any thought otherwise,
they knew to keep silent.
"Ma
cherie," he said, finding his breath again. "I have wonders
She
rolled toward him, reaching in his direction. She made a small sound,
encouraging him to join her. Tshui seldom spoke. A word here or there. Otherwise,
like some jungle cat, she was all eyes, motions, and soft purrs.
Louis
could not resist. He knocked off his hat and slipped from his jacket. In
moments, he was as naked as she. His own body was lean, muscled, and
crisscrossed with scars. He swallowed the draught of natem laid out for him
while Tshui lazily traced one of his scars down his belly to his inner thigh. A
shiver trembled up his back.
As the
drug swept through him, heightening his senses, he fell upon his woman. She
opened to him, and he sank gratefully into her warmth. He kissed her deeply,
while she raked his back with sharpened nails.
Soon,
colors and lights played across his vision. The room spun slightly from the
alkaloids in the tea. For a moment, it seemed the scores of shrunken heads were
watching their play, the eyes of the dead upon him as he thrust into the woman.
The audience aroused him further. He pinned Tshui under him, his back arching
as he drove into her again and again, a scream clenched in his chest.
All
around him were faces staring down, watching with blind eyes.
Louis
had one final thought before being consumed fully by his passion and the
exquisite pain. A final trophy to add to these shelves, a memento from the son
of the man who had ruined him: the head of Nathan Rand.
ACT
TWO - Under the Canopy
PERIWINKLE
FAMILY:
Apocynaceae
GENUS:
VInCa
SPECIES:
Minor, Major
COMMON
NAMES: Periwinkle, Cezayirmeneksesi,
Common
Periwinkle, Vincapervinc
PARTS
USED: Whole Plant
PROPERTIES/ACTIONS:
Analgesic, Antibacterial,
Antimicrobial,
Antiinflammatory, Astringent,
Cardiotonie,
Carminative, Depurative, Diuretic,
Emmenagogue,
Febrifuge, Hemostat, Hypotensive,
Lactogogue,
Hepatoprotective, Sedative, Sialogogue,
Spasmolytic,
Stomachic, Tonic, Vulnerary
CHAPTER
FOUR
WauWai
AUGUST
7, B:12 A. M.
EN
ROUTE OVER THE AMAZON JUNGLE
Nathan
stared out the helicopter's windows. Even through the sound dampening
earphones, the roar of the blades was deafening, isolating each passenger in
his own cocoon of noise.
Below,
a vast sea of green spread to the horizon in all directions. From this vantage,
it was as if the entire world were just forest. The only breaks in the
featureless expanse of the continuous canopy were the occasional giant trees,
the emergents, that poked their leafy crowns above their brethren, great
monsters of the forest that served as nesting sites for harpy eagles and
toucans. The only other breaks were the half-hidden dark rivers, snaking lazily
through the forest.
Otherwise,
the jungle remained supreme, impenetrable, endless.
Nathan
leaned his forehead against the glass. Was his father down there somewhere? And
if not, were there at least answers?
Deep
inside, Nathan felt a seed of anxiety, bitter and sour. Could he handle what he
discovered? After four years of not knowing, Nate had learned one thing. Time
did indeed heal all wounds, but it left a nasty, unforgiving scar.
After
his father's disappearance, Nate had isolated himself from the world, first in
the bottom of a bottle of Jack Daniel's, then in the embrace of stronger drugs.
Back in the States, his therapists had used phrases such as abandonment issues,
trust conflicts, and clinical depression. But Nate experienced it as a
faithlessness in life. With the exception of Manny and Kouwe, he had formed no deep
friendships. He had become too hard, too numb, too scarred.
Only
after returning to the jungle had Nate found some semblance of peace. But now
this . . .
Was he
ready to reopen those old wounds? To face that pain?
The
earphone radio clicked on with a rasp of static, and the pilot's voice cut
momentarily through the rotor's roar. "We're twenty klicks from Wauwai.
But there's smoke on the horizon:"
Nathan
peered ahead, yet all he could see was the terrain below and to the side.
Wauwai would serve as a secondary field base for the search team, a
launching-off point from which to supply and monitor those trekking through the
forest. Two hours ago, the three Hueys, along with the sleek black Comanche,
had set off from Sao Gabriel, carrying the initial supplies, gear, armament,
and personnel. After the expedition proceeded into the jungle later today, the
Hueys would serve as a flying supply chain between Wauwai and Sao Gabriel,
ferrying additional supplies, men, and fuel. Meanwhile, the Comanche would remain
at Wauwai, a black bird reserved in case of an emergency. Its armament and
long-range capabilities would help protect the team from the air if necessary.
That
had been the plan.
"The
smoke appears to be coming from our destination," the pilot continued.
"The village is burning:"
Nathan
pulled away from the window. Burning? He glanced around the cabin. In addition
to the two O'Briens, he shared the space with Professor Kouwe, Richard Zane,
and Anna Fong. The seventh and final passenger was the hard-faced man who had
sat across the conference table from Nathan during the debriefing, the one with
the ugly scar across his neck. He had been introduced this morning as Olin
Pasternak, another CIA agent, one associated with the administration's Science
and Technology division. He found the man's ice-blue eyes staring right back at
him, his face an unreadable stoic mask.
To his
side, he watched Frank pull a microphone up to his lips. Can we still land?"
"I
can't be sure from this distance, sir," the pilot answered "Captain
Waxman is proceeding ahead to survey the situation."
Nathan
watched one of the helicopters break formation and speed forward as their own
craft slowed. As they waited, the Huey banked around, and Nathan spotted a
column of stroke rising from the blanket of greenery near the horizon. It
climbed high into the blue skies. The other passengers shifted closer to peer
out the port-side windows.
Kelly
O'Brien leaned near his shoulder, eyes on the smoke. He watched her lips move,
but the noise and the earphones blocked her words. She pulled back and caught
him staring at her.
Her
eyes flicked away, and a slight blush reddened her cheeks.
The
pilot came on over the radio. "Folks, it looks like we have an okay to
proceed from the captain. The landing field is upwind of the fires. Please
ready yourselves for landing:"
Everyone
settled back into their seats and snapped their buckles into place. In short
order, the bevy of helicopters was circling the village. Each pilot was careful
to keep the wash from his rotor from blowing the smoke toward the landing
field. Though still unable to see the source of the flames, Nathan watched a
chain of people passing buckets from the river as the helicopter aligned for
landing.
As
they descended, a clapboard church with a whitewashed steeple came into view.
The source of the fire was on its far side, and someone stood on the church's
roof, soaking down its shingles.
Then
the skids of the helicopter settled to the ground with a slight bump, and Frank
signaled for everyone to disembark.
Nathan
tugged off his earphones and was assaulted by the growl of the rotors. He
unbuckled his shoulder harness and climbed from the helicopter. Once clear of
the rotors, he stretched and surveyed the area. The last of the Hueys settled
to earth on the far side of the field. The tilled soil and barren rows were
telltale signs that the landing field must once have been the village's garden.
Across
the yard, the Rangers were already busy. A handful were offloading gear and
supplies, while most of the others trotted toward the front of the church to
help with the fires.
Slowly,
the noise of the helicopters dissipated, and voices could be heard
again:
shouted orders, yells from beyond the church, the chatter of soldiers hauling equipment.
Kelly
stepped to Nathan's side with Frank in tow. "We should see if we can find the padre who found Agent Clark.
Interview him, so we can be on our way.
Frank
nodded, and the two headed for the rear door of the church.
Someone
clapped Nate on the shoulder. It was Professor Kouwe. "Let's go
help," the older man said, pointing toward the smoke.
Nathan
followed the professor through the fields and around the side of the church.
What he found on the far side was chaos: people running with buckets and shovels,
smoke billowing in every direction, flames rampant.
"My
God," Nate said.
A
village of a hundred or so small homes lay between the church and the river.
Three-quarters of them were burning.
He and
the professor hurried forward, adding the strength of their backs to the water
brigade. Working around them were a mix of brownskinned Indians, white
missionaries, and uniformed Rangers. After about an hour of laboring, they all
looked the same, just soot-covered rescuers choking and coughing on the smoke.
Nathan
ran with buckets, dousing flames, concentrating on maintaining a fire break
around the burning section of the village. It was up to them to hold the flames
at bay. Inside the fire zone, the blaze consumed all the palm-thatched
structures, turning homes into torches in mere seconds. But with the additional
men, the fire was contained at last. The conflagration quickly died down as all
the homes were consumed within the fire zone. Only a few glowing embers dotted
the smoky ruined landscape.
During
the crisis, Nate had lost track of the professor and now found himself resting
beside a tall, broad-shouldered Brazilian. The man looked close to tears. He
mumbled something in Portuguese that sounded like a prayer. Nate guessed he was
one of the missionaries.
"I'm
sorry," Nate said in Portuguese, tugging away the scrap of cloth that had
been shielding his nose and mouth. "Was anyone killed?"
"Five.
All children:" The man's voice cracked. "But many others were
sickened by the smoke:"
"What
happened here?"
The
missionary wiped the soot from his face with a handkerchief. "It was m . .
. my fault. I should've known better:' He glanced over his shoulder to the
steepled church. Aside from being stained with ash and smoke, it stood
unharmed. He covered his eyes, and his shoulders shook. It took him another
moment to speak. "It was my decision to send the man's body to
Manaus."
Nathan
suddenly realized to whom he was speaking. "Padre Batista?" It was
the mission's leader, the one who had found Gerald Clark.
The tall
Brazilian nodded. "May God forgive me:"
Nate
guided Garcia Luiz Batista away from the blackened ruins of the village and
into untouched green fields. He quickly introduced himself as he led the man
back to his church. En route, he passed one of the Rangers, covered in soot and
sweat, and asked him to send the O'Briens to the church.
With a
sharp nod, the Ranger took off.
Nate
walked the padre up the wooden steps and through the double doors. The interior
was dark and cool. Varnished wooden pews lined the way to the altar and giant
mahogany crucifix. The room was mostly empty. A few Indians lay sprawled,
exhausted, both on the floor and on pews. Nate led the church's leader toward
the front and settled him in the first pew.
The
man sagged into his seat, his eyes fixed on the crucifix. "It's all my
fault:" He bowed his head and lifted his hands in prayer.
Nathan
remained quiet, giving the man a private moment. The church door swung open,
and he spotted Frank and Kelly. Professor Kouwe was with them. All three were
covered in ash from head to toe. He waved them over.
The
arrival of the other three drew Padre Batista's attention from his prayers.
Nathan made introductions all around. Once done, he sat beside the padre.
"Tell me what happened. How did the fires start?"
Garcia
glanced around at the others, then sighed heavily and looked at his toes.
"It was my own shortsightedness:"
Kelly
sat on the man's other side. "What do you mean?" she asked softly.
After
a moment more, the padre spoke again. "On the night the poor man stumbled
out of the forest, a shaman of the Yanomamo tribe scolded me for taking the man
into the mission. He warned me that the man's body must be burned." The
padre glanced at Nathan. "How could I do that? He surely had family. Maybe
he was even a Christian."
Nathan
patted his hand. "Of course".
"But
I should not have so easily dismissed the Indians' superstitions. I had put too
much faith in their conversion to Catholicism. They'd even been baptized:' The
padre shook his head.
Nate
understood. "It's not your fault. Some beliefs are too ingrained to be
washed away in a single baptism:"
Padre
Batista sagged. "At first, all seemed well. The shaman was still angered
at my decision not to burn the body, but he accepted that at least it was gone
from the village. This seemed to appease him:"
"What
changed that?" Kelly asked.
"A
week later, a couple of children in the village developed fevers. It was
nothing new. Such ailments are commonplace. But the shaman decided these
illnesses were the sign of a curse from the dead man:"
Nate
nodded. He had seen firsthand such assessments himself. In most Indian tribes,
illness was considered not only due to injury or disease, but often to a spell
cast by the shaman of another village. Wars had broken out over such
accusations.
"There
was nothing I could do to dissuade him. In another few days, three more
children fell ill, one of them from the Yanomamo shabano. The whole village
grew tense. In fear, entire families packed up and left. Every night, drums
beat and chanting could be heard." Garcia closed his eyes, "I radioed
for medical assistance. But when a doctor arrived from junta four days later,
none of the Indians would let the man examine their children. The Yanomamo
shaman had won them over. I tried to plead, but they refused any medical help.
Instead, they left the little ones in the care of that witch doctor."
Nathan
bristled at this term. He glanced to Professor Kouwe, who gave a small shake of
his head, indicating Nate should remain silent.
The
padre continued. "Then last night, one of the children died. A great
wailing consumed the village. To cover up his failure, the shaman declared the
village cursed. He warned that all should leave here. I tried my best to calm
the panic, but the shaman had the others under his spell. Just before dawn, he
and his fellow Yanomamo tribesmen set fire to their own roundhouse, then fled
into the jungle:" Garcia was now openly weeping. "The . . . the
monster had left the sick children inside. He burned them all alive:"
The
padre covered his face with his hands. "With so few still in the village
to help fight the fire, the flames spread through the huts. If you all had not
come and helped, we could have lost everything. My church, my flock:'
Nathan
placed a hand on the man's shoulder. "Don't despair. We can help you
rebuild:" He glanced over to Kelly's brother for confirmation.
Frank
cleared his throat. "Of course. A contingent of Rangers and researchers
are going to remain here after we head into the jungle. As guests here, I'm
sure they'll be more than willing to haul in supplies with their helicopters
and lend you manpower to rebuild the village out of the ashes:"
The
man's words seemed to strengthen the padre. "God bless you:" He wiped
his eyes and nose with his handkerchief.
"We'll
do all we can," Kelly assured him. "But, padre, time is of the
essence for us, too. We hope to begin tracking the dead man's trail before it
grows any colder:"
"Of
course, of course. . :" Garcia said in a tired voice, and stood.
"I'll tell you all I know:"
It was
a short talk. The padre explained as he led them past the altar to the common
rooms of the church. The dining room had been converted into a makeshift
hospital for smoke-inhalation victims, but no one appeared seriously injured.
Garcia related how he had convinced a few Indians to track the dead man's
trail, in case the fellow had any companions out there. The trail led to one of
the tributaries of the Jarura River. No boat was found, but the tracks seemed
to follow the offshoot's course, heading west into the most remote sections of
the rain forest. The Indian trackers feared going any farther.
Kelly
leaned on a window overlooking the rear garden. "Can someone show us this
tributary?"
Garcia
nodded. He had washed his face and seemed to have collected himself. Steel had
entered his voice and demeanor as the initial shock wore away. "I can get
my assistant, Henaowe, to show you." He pointed to a small Indian.
Nathan
was surprised to see the man was Yanomamo.
"He
was the only one of the tribe who remained behind," Garcia said with
a
sigh. "At least the love of our Lord Jesus was able to save one of
them."
The
padre waved his assistant over and spoke rapidly in Yanomamo. Nathan was
surprised
at how fluent the priest was in the dialect.
Henaowe
nodded, agreeing, but Nathan saw the fear in his eyes. Saved or not,
deep-seated superstitions still ruled the man.
The
group proceeded back outside, the damp heat falling upon them like a wet wool
blanket. They skirted around the helicopters to find the Rangers had been busy.
A line of rucksacks, heavily packed, lay in the dirt. A Ranger was positioned
behind each one.
Captain
Waxman was inspecting both his men and their gear. He spotted the group and
straightened. "We're ready to head out whenever you give the go."
Waxman, in his forties, was pure military: stone-faced, broadshouldered, his
field uniform crisp with pressed creases. Even his brown hair had been shaved
to a stubble atop his head.
"We're
ready now," Frank said. "We've got someone here to set us on the
right trail." He nodded to the small Indian.
The
captain nodded and turned sharply. "Load up!" he called t~ his men.
Kelly
led their group to another row of backpacks, each about half the size of the
Rangers' rucksacks. There, Nathan found the last members of the expedition.
Anna Fong was in deep conversation with Richard Zane, both in matching khaki
outfits with the Tellux logo emblazoned on the shoulders. To their side stood
Olin Pasternak, sporting a clean but clearly well-worn set of gray coveralls
with black boots. He bent down to pick up the largest of the packs. Nate knew
it contained their satellite communication gear. But as he hoisted the pack,
the man's attention was not on the fragile gear, but on the expedition's final
member . . . or rather members.
Nate
smiled. He had not seen Manny since they had left from Sao Gabriel. The
Brazilian biologist had been on one of the other Hueys. The reason for the
separate flight was clear. Manny waved to Nate, a whip in one hand, the other
holding a leather leash.
"So
how did Tor-tor handle the flight?" Nathan asked.
Manny
patted the two-hundred-pound jaguar with the side of his whip. "Like a
kitten. Nothing like the wonders of modern chemistry."
Nathan
watched the cat wobble a little from the aftereffects of the tranquilizer.
Stretching forward to sniff at Nate's pant leg, Tor-tor seem
to
recognize his scent, and nuzzled him half drunkenly.
Nate
bent to one knee and rubbed the cat's jowls, cuffing him lightly under the
chin. This earned him a growled purr of appreciation. "God, he is so much
bigger than the last time I saw him:"
Olin
Pasternak scowled at the beast, then mumbled under his breath and turned away,
clearly unimpressed by the newest addition to the team.
Nathan
straightened. Tor-tor's inclusion had been a hard sell, but Manny had
persisted. Tor-tor was close to being sexually mature and needed to log more
jungle time. This trek would be of benefit to the cat. Additionally, the jaguar
had been well trained by Manny and could prove of use-both in protection and in
tracking.
Nathan
had added his own support. If the team wished to convince any Indians into
cooperating, the presence of Tor-tor could go a long way toward winning them
over. The jaguar was revered by all Indians. To have one accompany the
expedition would give the team instant validity.
Anna
Fong had agreed.
Slowly
Frank and Captain Waxman had been worn down, and Tor-tor was allowed to join
the expedition.
Kelly
eyed the cat from a safe distance. "We should gear up."
Nathan
nodded and picked up his own small pack. It contained only the essential
supplies: hammock, mosquito netting, a bit of dry rations, a change of clothes,
machete, water bottle, and filter pump. He could travel months in the jungle
with little else. What with the wealth of the forest readily available-from
various fruits and berries to roots and edible plants to abundant game and
fish-there was little need to haul additional food.
Still,
there was one other essential piece of equipment. Nathan hooked his own
short-barreled shotgun over a shoulder. Though the team was backed by the
Rangers' weaponry, Nate preferred to have a little firepower of his own.
"Let's
get going," Kelly said. "We've already lost the morning putting out
the fires:' The slender woman hefted her own pack to her shoulders, and Nate
couldn't help but stare at her long legs. He forced his gaze upward. Her pack
had a large red cross printed on its back, marking the team's medical supplies.
Frank
ran down the line of civilian team members, making sure all was in readiness.
He stopped in front of Nate, pulled out a faded baseball cap from a back
pocket, and tugged it in place.
Nate
recognized it as the same one from when he had first seen the man at Sao Gabriel's
hospital. "Fan?" he asked, pointing to the Boston Red Sox logo.
"And
a good-luck charm," Frank added, then turned to the group. "Let's set
out!"
In
short order, the eighteen-man team tromped into the jungle, led for the moment
by a small, wide-eyed Indian.
Kelly
had never been in a jungle. In preparation for this trip, she had scanned books
and articles, but the first sight of the rain forest was not what she had
expected.
As she
followed the four Rangers in the lead, she craned around in wonder. Contrary to
old movies, the understory of the Amazon rain forest was not a clotted mass of
clinging vines and overgrown vegetation. Instead, it was more like they were
marching through a green cathedral. A dense canopy of woven tree branches
arched overhead, absorbing most of the sunlight and casting everything in a
greenish glow. Kelly had read that less than 10 percent of the sun's light
pierced through the unbroken green tent to reach the jungle floor. Because of
this, the lowest level of the forest, where they walked now, was surprisingly
clear of vegetation, Here the jungle was a world of shadow and decomposition,
the domain of insects, fungi, and roots.
Still,
the lack of green vegetation didn't necessarily make trekking through the
pathless forest an easy journey. Rotted logs and branches lay everywhere,
frosted with yellow mold and white mushrooms. Under her boots, a slick mulch of
decaying black leaves threatened her footing, while buttress roots that
supported the gigantic trees in the thin soil snaked under the leaves and added
to the risk of a twisted ankle.
And
though the vegetation down at this level was scant, it was not nonexistent. The
floor was festooned with fan-tailed ferns, thorny bromeliads, graceful orchids,
and slender palms, and everywhere around were draped the ubiquitous ropelike
vines called lianas.
The
sound of a slap drew her attention around.
Her
brother rubbed at his neck. "Damn flies."
He
doused his exposed limbs and rubbed some on his neck.
Nathan
stepped beside her. He had donned an Australian bush hat, and looked like some
cross between Indiana Jones and Crocodile Dundee. His blue eyes sparkled with
amusement in the jungle gloom. "You're wasting your time with that
repellent," he said to Frank. "Anything you put on will be sweated
off your skin in minutes:"
Kelly
couldn't argue with that. After just fifteen minutes of trekking, she felt damp
everywhere. The humidity under the canopy had to be close to a hundred percent.
"Then what do you suggest for the bugs?"
Nathan
shrugged, wearing a crooked grin. "You surrender. You ignore them. It's a
battle you can't win. Here it's an eat-or-be-eaten world, and sometimes you
have to simply pay the price:"
"With
my own blood?" Frank asked.
"Don't
complain. That's getting off cheap. There are much worse insects out there, and
I don't just mean the big ones, like bird-eating spiders or footlong black
scorpions. It's the little ones that'll get you. Are you familiar with the
assassin bug?"
"No,
I don't think so," Frank said.
Kelly
shook her head, too.
"Well,
it has the unpleasant habit of biting and defecating at the same time. Then
when the victim scratches the wound, he drives the feces loaded with the
protozoan Tripanozoma crush into the bloodstream. Then in anywhere from one to twenty
years you die due to damage to the brain or heart."
Frank
paled and stopped scratching at the fly bite on his neck.
"Then
there are the blackflies that transmit worms to the eyeball and cause a disease
called river blindness. And sand flies that can trigger Leishmaniasis, a
leprosy type of disease:"
Kelly
frowned at the botanist's attempt to shake her brother. "I'm well familiar
with the transmittable diseases out here. Yellow fever, dengue fever, malaria,
cholera, typhoid:" She hiked her medical pack higher on her ,shoulders.
"I'm prepared for the worst:"
"And
are you prepared for the candiru?"
Her
brow crinkled. "What type of disease is that?"
It's
not a disease. It's a common little fish in the waters here, something called
the toothpick fish. It's a slender creature, about two inches long, and lives
parasitically in the gills of larger fish. It has the nasty habit of swimming
up the urethras of human males and lodging there:'
"Lodging
there?" Frank asked, wincing.'
"It
spreads its gill spines and embeds itself in place, blocking the bladder and
killing you most excruciatingly in about twenty-four hours:"
"How
do you get rid of it?"
By
now, Kelly had recognized the little fish's description and nasty habits. She
had indeed read about them. She turned to her brother and said
matter-of-factly, "The only cure is to cut the victim's penis off and
extract the fish:"
Frank
flinched, half covering him. "Cut his penis off?"
Nate
shrugged. "Welcome to the jungle:"
Kelly
scowled at him, knowing the man was only trying to spook them. But from his
grin, she could tell it was mostly all in good fun.
"Then
there are the snakes . . :" Nate continued.
"I
think that's enough," Professor Kouwe said behind them, rescuing the
siblings from Dr. Rand's further lecturing. He stepped forward. "While the
jungle must be respected as Nathan has suggested so eloquently, it's as much a
place of beauty as danger. It contains the ability to cure as well as sicken:"
"And
that's why we're all out here," a new voice said behind them.
Kelly
turned. It was Dr. Richard Zane. Over his shoulder, she noticed Anna Fong and
Olin Pasternak deep in conversation. And beyond them, Manuel Azoted stalked
with his jaguar alongside the Rangers at the rear.
She
turned around and saw that the grin on Nate's face had vanished. His expression
had hardened at the intrusion by the Tellux representative. "And what
would you know of the jungle?" Nate asked. "You've not set foot out
of the main offices of Tellux in Chicago in over four years . . . about the
time my father vanished, as I recall:"
Richard
Zane rubbed his small trimmed goatee and maintained his casual countenance, but
Kelly had not missed the flash of fire in the man's eyes. "I know what you
think of me, Dr. Rand. It was one of the reasons I volunteered for this
expedition. You know I was a friend of your-"
Nathan
took a fast step in the man's direction, one hand balled into a fist.
"Don't say it!" he spat out. "Don't say you were a friend of my
father! I came to you, begged you to continue the search after the government
stopped. And you refused. I read the memo you dispatched from Brasilia back to
the States: `I see no further benefit in extending Telex's financial resources
in a futile search for Dr. Carl Rand. Our monies are better spent in new
endeavours: Do you remember those words, words that damned my father! If you
had pressed the corporate office-"
"The
result would've been the same;" Zane said between clenched teeth.
"You were always so naive. The decision was made long before I gave my
report."
"Bullshit;"
Nathan said.
"Tellux
was hit by over three hundred separate lawsuits after the expedition's
disappearance. From families, from underwriters, from insurance companies, from
the Brazilian government, from the NSF. Tellux was under assault from all
sides. It was one of the reasons we had to merge Eco-tek's assets. It helped
insulate us from other rapacious pharmaceutical companies. They were circling
like sharks around our financially bleeding carcass. We could not continue funding
a search that seemed hopeless. We had a bigger fight on our hands:"
Nathan
continued to glower.
"The
decision had already been made."
"You'll
excuse me if I don't shed tears for Tellux:"
"If
we had lost our battle, thousands of families would have lost their jobs. Hard
decisions had to be made, and I won't apologize for them:"
Nate
and Zane continued to stare each other down.
Professor
Kouwe attempted to mediate. "For now, let the past lie in the past. If
we're to succeed here, I suspect we'll all need to work together. I suggest a
truce:"
After
a pause, Zane held out a hand.
Nathan
glanced to the open palm, then turned away. "Let's go."
Zane
shook his head and lowered his hand. He met the professor's eyes. "Thanks
for trying:"
Kouwe
watched Nate's departing back. "Give him time. Though he tries
to
hide it, he's still in a lot of pain:"
Kelly
stared after Nathan. He walked stiffly, shoulders back. She tried to imagine
losing her mother, then her father, but it was a loss she could not comprehend.
It was a well of pain from which she didn't know if she could have emerged.
Especially alone.
She
glanced to her brother, suddenly glad he was here.
A call
rang out from far ahead. One of the Rangers. "We've reached the
river!"
As the
team continued along, paralleling the river, Nathan found himself lagging
behind the others. To his right, glimpses of the river peeked from the tangle
of vegetation that bordered the small brown tributary. They had been following
it now for almost four hours. Nathan estimated they had traveled about twelve
miles. The going was slow while one of the Rangers, a corporal named Nolan
Warczak, a skilled tracker, kept them on the proper trail.
An
Indian guide could have moved with more assurance and set a faster pace. But after
reaching the tributary, the small Yanomamo tribesman from Wauwai had refused to
go any farther. He had pointed to clear footprints in the loam that led deeper
into the forest, following the watercourse.
"You
go," he had mumbled in stilted Portuguese. "I stay here with Padre
Batista."
So
they had set off, determined to cover as much distance as possible before
nightfall. But Corporal Warczak was a cautious tracker, proceeding at a snail's
pace. This left much time for Nathan to review his heated outburst with Richard
Zane. It had taken him this long to cool off and consider the man's words.
Maybe he had been narrow-minded and had not considered all the factors
involved.
Off to
his left, the crackle of dead twigs announced Manny's approach. He and Tor-tor
had kept a bit of distance between themselves and the rest. When the large cat
was nearby the Rangers were edgy, fingering their M- 16s. The only one of the
unit who showed curiosity about the jaguar was Corporal Dennis Jorgensen. He
accompanied Manny now, asking questions about the cat.
"So
how much does he eat in a day?" The tall corporal took off his slouch hat
and swiped the sweat from his brow. He had shockingly white hair and pale blue
eyes, clearly of some Nordic descent.
Manny
patted the cat. "Somewhere around ten pounds of meat, but he's been living
a pretty sedentary life with me. Out in the wild, you almost have to double
that amount:"
"And
how are you going to keep feeding him out here?"
Manny
nodded to Nathan as he joined him. "He'll have to hunt. It was the reason
I brought him along."
"And
if he fails?"
Manny
glanced to the soldiers behind them. "There's always other sources of
meat:"
Jorgensen's
face paled a bit, then realized Manny was joking and nudged him with an elbow.
"Very funny." He fell back to join the others in his unit.
Manny
turned his attention to Nate. "So how're you holding up? I heard about
that row with Zane."
"I'm
fine," he said with a long sigh. Tor-tor nudged his leg with a furry
muzzle, and Nate scratched the jaguar behind the ear. "Just feeling damn
foolish:"
"Nothing
to feel foolish about. I trust that guy about as far as it would take Tor-tor
to run his sorry ass down. Which, believe me, wouldn't be far." He pointed
a hand forward. "Did you see that dandy outfit he's wearing? Has he ever
been in the real jungle?"
Nate
smiled, cheered by his friend.
"Now
that Dr. Fong. She looks damn fine in her outfit." Manny glanced to him
with one eyebrow raised. "I wouldn't kick her out of my hammock for eating
crackers. And Kelly O'Brien-"
A
commotion ahead interrupted Manny. Voices were raised, and the group was
stopped, gathered near a bend in the river. Manny and Nate hurried forward.
As
Nate stepped into the throng, he found Anna Fong and Professor Kouwe bent near
a dugout canoe that had been pulled fully onto the bank and clumsily covered
with palm fronds.
"The
trail led here," Kelly said.
Nathan
glanced at her. The doctor's face, covered in a sheen of sweat, was almost
aglow. Her hair had been pulled back with a rolled green handkerchief that
served as a headband.
Professor
Kouwe stood with a palm frond in his hand. "These were torn from a mwapu
palm." He flipped to show the ragged end of the branch. "Not cut,
torn:"
Kelly
nodded. "Agent Clark had no knives with him when he was found:"
Professor
Kouwe ran a finger along the dried and yellowing tips of the fronds. "And
from the rate of decay, this was torn from the living plant around two weeks
ago:"
Frank
bent closer. "Around the time when Gerald Clark stumbled into the village:"
"Exactly."
Kelly's
voice grew excited. "Then there's no doubt he must have used this boat to
get here:"
Nathan
stared out at the small river. Both banks were thick with dense walls of
vegetation: vines, palms, bushes, mosses, stranglers, and ferns. The river
itself was about thirty feet across, a featureless silt brown flow. Near the
shores, the waters were clear enough to see the muddy, rocky riverbed, but
within a few feet visibility vanished.
Anything
could be lurking under the water: snakes, caimans, piranhas. There were even
catfish so large that they were known to bite the feet off unsuspecting
swimmers.
Captain
Waxman shoved forward. "So where do we go from here? We can airlift boats
to our position, but then what?"
Anna
Fong raised a hand. "I think I might be able to answer that." She
shoved off more of the palm fronds. Her small fingers ran along the inside of
the canoe. "From the pattern in which this canoe was chopped, and from the
painted red edges, this had to come from a Yanomamo tribe. They're the only
ones who construct canoes in such a manner."
Nate
knelt down and ran his own hands along the interior of the canoe. "She's
right. Gerald Clark must have obtained or perhaps stolen this canoe from the
tribe. If we travel upriver, we can ask any of the Yanomamo Indians if they've
seen a white man pass through or if any of their canes have gone missing:"
He turned to Frank and Kelly. "From there, we can
begin
tracking again:"
He
nodded sharply. "I'll radio in our position and have the Hueys airlift in
the pontoons. It'll eat up the remaining daylight, so we might as well set up
an early camp for today."
With a
plan in place, everyone began to busy themselves setting up their homestead a
short distance from the river. A fire was started. Kouwe collected a few
hogplums and sawari nuts from the nearby forest, while Manny, after sending
Tor-tor into the jungle to hunt, used a pole and net to catch a few jungle
trout.
Within
the course of the next hour, the roar of helicopters rattled the forest,
causing birds and monkeys to screech and holler, flitting and leaping through
the canopy. Three large crates were lowered into the water and pulled to shore
by ropes. Packed inside were self-inflating pontoons with small outboard
motors, what the Rangers called "rubber raiders:' By the time the sun had
begun to set, the three black boats were tethered to shoreside trees, ready for
tomorrow's travel.
As the
Rangers worked, Nathan had set up his own hammock and was now skillfully
stretching his mosquito netting around it. He saw Kelly having trouble and went
to her aid.
"You
want to make sure the netting is spread so that none of it touches the hammock,
or the night feeders will attack you right through the fabric."
"I
can manage," she said, but her brow was furrowed in frustration.
"Let
me show you:" He used small stones and bits of forest flotsam to pin her
netting away from her hammock, creating a silky canopy around her bed.
Off to
the side, Frank was fighting his own netting. "I don't know why we can't
just use sleeping bags. They were fine whenever I went camping."
"This
is the jungle," Nate answered. "If you sleep on the ground, you'll
find all sorts of nasty creatures sharing your bed by morning. Snakes, lizards,
scorpions, spiders. But be my guest:"
Frank
grumbled but continued to wrestle with his own bed site. "Fine, I'll sleep
in the damn hammock. But what's so important about the netting anyway? We've
been plagued by mosquitoes all day."
"At
night, they're a thousand times worse. And if the bugs don't bleed you dry, the
vampire bats will."
"Good:"
She
glanced over the bed he had helped make, then turned to him, her face only
inches from his as he straightened from his crouch. "Thanks:"
Nathan
was again struck by her eyes, an emerald green with a hint of gold. "Y . .
. You're welcome:" He turned to the fire and saw that others were
gathering for an early evening meal. "Let's see what's for dinner."
Around
the campfire, the flames were not the only thing heating up. Nathan found Manny
and Richard Zane in midargument.
"How
could you possibly be against placing constraints on the logging
industry?" Manny said, stirring his filleted fish in the frying pan.
"Commercial logging is the single largest destroyer of rain forests
worldwide. Here in the Amazon we're losing one acre of forest every
second."
Richard
Zane sat on a log, no longer wearing his khaki jacket. His sleeves were rolled
up, seemingly ready to fight. "Those statistics are greatly exaggerated by
environmentalists. They're based on bad science and generated more by a desire
to scare than to educate. More realistic evidence from satellite photography
shows that ninety percent of the Brazilian rain forest is still intact:"
Manny
was near to blustering now. "Even if the rate of deforestation is
exaggerated as you claim, whatever is lost is xxxxxxxxxxlost forever. We're
lo"They're all over the place here. At night, you want to be careful even
sneaking off to the latrine. They'll attack anything warm-blooded:"
Kelly's
eyes grew wide.
"You're
vaccinated against rabies, right?" he asked.
She
nodded slowly.
sing
over a hundred species of plants and animals every single day. Lost forever."
"So
you say," Richard Zane said calmly. "The idea that a cleared rain
forest can't grow back is an outdated myth. After eight years of commercial
logging in the rain forests of Indonesia, the rate of recovery of both native
plants and animals far exceeded expectations. And here in your own forests, the
same is true. In 1982, miners cleared a large tract of forest in western
Brazil. Fifteen years later, scientists returned to find that the rejuvenated
forest is virtually indistinguishable from the surrounding forest. Such cases
suggest that sustainable logging is possible, and that man and nature can
coexist here:'
Nate
found himself drawn into the discussion. How can the
actually
advocate rain forest destruction? "What about peasants burning forestland
for grazing and agriculture? I suppose you support that, too:"
"Of
course," Zane said. "In the forests of western America, we think it's
healthy for fires to burn periodically through a mature forest. It shakes
things up. Why is it any different here? When dominant species are removed by
either logging or burning, it allows for the growth of what are termed
`suppressed species,' the smaller shrubs and plants. And it is in fact these
very plants that are of the most medicinal value. So why not allow a little
burning and logging? It's good for all concerned."
Kelly
spoke into the stunned silence. "But you're ignoring the global
implications. Like the greenhouse effect. Aren't the rain forests the
proverbial `lungs of the planet,' a major source of oxygen?"
"
`Proverbial' is the key word, I'm afraid," Zane said sadly. "Newest
research from weather satellites shows that the forests contribute little if
any to the world's oxygen supply. It's a closed system. While the greenery of
the canopy produces abundant oxygen, the supply is totally consumed by the fire
of decomposition below, resulting in no net oxygen production. Again, the only
real areas of positive production are in those regions of secondary forest
growth, where new young trees are producing abundant oxygen. So in fact,
controlled deforestation is beneficial to the world's atmosphere:"
Nathan
listened, balanced between disbelief and anger. "And what of those who
live in the forest? In the past five hundred years, the number of indigenous
tribes has dwindled from over ten million to under two hundred thousand. I
suppose that's good, too:"
Richard
Zane shook his head. "Of course not. That's the true tragedy When a
medicine man dies without passing on his experience, then
world
loses great volumes of irreplaceable knowledge. It's one of the
reasons
I kept pushing for funds to finance your own research among the
fading
tribes. It's invaluable work:"
Nathan
narrowed his eyes with suspicion. "But the forest and its people are
intertwined. Even if what you say is true, deforestation does destroy some
species. You can't argue against that:"
"Sure
but the green movement exaggerates the true number lost."
"Still,
even a single species can be significant. Such as the Madagascan
periwinkle."
Zane's
face reddened. "Well, that surely is a rare exception. You can hardly
think that such a discovery is common."
"The
Madagascan periwinkle?" Kelly asked, confusion in her eyes.
"The
rosy periwinkle of Madagascar is the source of two potent anticancer
drugs-vinblastine and vincristine:"
Kelly's
brows rose with recognition. "Used in the treatment of Hodgkin's disease,
lymphomas, and many childhood cancers:"
Nate
nodded. "These drugs save thousands of children every year. But the plant
that generated this life-saving drug is now extinct in Madagascar. What if
these properties of the rosy periwinkle hadn't been discovered in time? How
many children would have needlessly died?"
"Like
I said, the periwinkle is a rare finding:"
"And
how would you know? With all your talk of statistics and satellite photography,
it comes down to one fact. Every plant has the potential to cure. Each species
is invaluable. Who knows what drug could be lost through unchecked
deforestation? What rare plant could hold the cure to AIDS? To diabetes? To the
thousands of cancers that plague mankind?"
"Or
perhaps even to cause limbs to regenerate?" Kelly added pointedly.
Richard
Zane frowned and stared into the flames. "Who can say?"
"My
point exactly," Nate finished.
Frank
stepped up to the flames, seemingly oblivious to the heated debate that had
been waged over the campfire. "You're burning the fish," the tall man
said, pointing to the black smoke rising from the forgotten frying pan.
Manny
chuckled and pulled the pan off the fire. "Thank goodness for the
practical Mr. O'Brien, or we'd be eating dry rations tonight:"
Frank
nudged Kelly. "Olin almost has the satellite feed hooked to the
laptop." He checked his watch. "We should be able to connect
stateside in
another
hour:"
"Good:"
Kelly glanced over to where Olin Pasternak was busy around a compact satellite
dish and computer equipment. "Perhaps we'll have some answers from the
autopsy on Gerald Clark's body. Something that will help."
Nate
listened. Maybe it was because he was staring into the flames, but he had a
strange foreboding that maybe they all should have heeded the Yanomamo shaman
and burned the man's body. As Richard Zane has said
CHAPTER
FIVE
Stem
Cell Research
AUGUST
7, 5:32 PM.
INSTAR
INSTITUTE, LANGLEY VIRGINIA
Lauren
O'Brien sat hunched over her microscope when the call came from the morgue.
"Damn it," she mumbled at the interruption. She straightened, slipped
her reading glasses from her forehead to the bridge of her nose, and hit the
speaker phone.
"Histology
here," she said.
"Dr.
O'Brien, I think you should come down and see this:" The voice belonged to
Stanley Hibbert, the forensic pathologist from Johns Hopkins and a fellow
member of MEDEA. He had been called in to consult on the postmortem of Gerald
Clark.
"I'm
somewhat busy with the tissue samples. I've just started reviewing them:"
"And
was I right about the oral lesions?"
Lauren
sighed. "Your assessment was correct. Squamous cell carcinoma. From the
high degree of mitosis and loss of differentiation, I'd grade it a type one
malignancy. One of the worst I've ever seen:"
"So
the victim's tongue had not been cut out. It had rotted away from the
cancer:"
Lauren
suppressed a nonprofessional shudder. The dead man's mouth had been rank with
tumors. His tongue had been no more than a friable bloody stump, eaten away by
the carcinoma. And this was not the extent of the man's disease. During the
autopsy, his entire body was found to be riddled with cancers in various
stages, involving lungs, kidneys, liver, spleen, pancreas. Lauren glanced to
the stack of slides prepared by the histology lab, each containing sections of
various tumors or bone marrow aspirates.
"Any
estimate of the onset of the oral cancer?" the pathologist asked.
"It's
hard to say with certainty, but I'd estimate it started between six to eight
weeks ago."
A
whistle of appreciation sounded over the line. "That's damn fast!"
"I
know. And so far, most of the other slides I've reviewed show a similar high
degree of malignancy. I can't find a single cancer that looks older than three
months:" She fingered the stack before her. "But then again, I've
still got quite a few slides to review."
"What
about the teratomas?"
"They're
the same. All between one to three months. But-"
Dr.
Hibbert interrupted. "My God, it makes no sense. I've never seen so many
cancers in one body. Especially teratomas:"
Lauren
understood his consternation. Teratomas were cystic tumors of the body's
embryonic stem cells, those rare germ cells that could mature into any bodily
tissue: muscle, hair, bone. Tumors of these cells were usually only found in a
few organs, such as the thymus or testes. But in Gerald Clark's body, they were
everywhere-and that wasn't the oddest detail.
"Stanley,
they aren't just teratomas. They're teratocarcinomas:"
"What?
All of them?"
She
nodded, then realized she was on the phone. "Every single one of them:"
Teratocarcinomas were the malignant form of the teratoma, a riotous cancer that
sprouted a mix of muscle, hair, teeth, bone, and nerves. "I've never seen
such samples. I've found sections with partly formed livers, testicular tissue,
even ganglia spindles:"
"Then
that might explain what we found down here," Stanley said.
"What
do you mean?"
"Like
I said when I first called, you really should come and see this for yourself."
"Fine,"
she said with an exasperated sigh. "I'll be right down:'
Lauren
ended the connection and pushed away from the microscope table. She stretched
the kink out of her back from the two hours spent stooped over the slides. She
considered calling her husband, but he was surely just as busy over at CIA
headquarters. Besides, she'd catch up with him in another hour when they
conferenced with Frank and Kelly in the field.
Grabbing
her lab smock, Lauren headed out the door and descended the stairs to the
institute's morgue. A bit of trepidation coursed through her. Though she was a
doctor and had worked as an ER clinician for ten years, she still grew queasy
during gross necropsies. She preferred the clean histology suite to the
morgue's bone saws, stainless steel tables, and hanging scales. But she had no
choice today.
As she
crossed down the long hall toward the double doors, she distracted herself with
the mystery of the case. Gerald Clark had been missing for four years, then
walked out of the jungle with a new arm, undoubtedly a miraculous cure. But
contrarily, his body had been ravaged by tumors, a cancerous onslaught that had
started no more than three months prior. So why the sudden burst of cancer? Why
the preponderance of the monstrous teratocarcinomas? And ultimately, where the
hell had Gerald Clark been these past four years?
She
shook her head. It was too soon for answers. But she had faith in modern
science. Between her own research and the fieldwork being done by her children,
the mystery would be solved.
Lauren
pushed into the locker room, slipped blue paper booties over her shoes, then
smeared a dab of Vicks VapoRub under her nose to offset the smells and donned a
surgical mask. Once ready, she entered the lab.
It
looked like a bad horror movie. Gerald Clark's body lay splayed open like a
frog in biology class. Half the contents of his body cavities lay either
wrapped in red-and-orange hazardous-waste bags or were resting atop steel
scales. Across the room, samples were being prepped in both formaldehyde and
liquid nitrogen. Eventually Lauren would see the end result as a pile of neatly
inscribed microscope slides, stained and ready for her review, just the way she
preferred it.
As
Lauren entered the room, some of the stronger smells cut through the
mentholated jelly: bleach, blood, bowel, and necrotic gases. She tried to
concentrate on breathing through her mouth.
Around
her, men and women in bloody aprons worked throughout the lab, oblivious to the
horror. It was an efficient operation, a macabre dance of medical
professionals.
A tall
man, skeletally thin, lifted an arm in greeting and waved her over. Lauren
nodded and slipped past a woman tilting a hanging tray and sliding Gerald
Clark's liver into a waste bag.
"What
did you find, Stanley?" Lauren asked as she approached the worktable.
Dr.
Hibbert pointed down, his voice muffled by his surgical mask. "I wanted
you to see this before we cut it out:'
They
stood at the head of the slanted table holding Gerald Clark's body. Bile,
blood, and other bodily fluids flowed in trickles to the catch bucket at the
other end. Closer at hand, the top of Gerald Clark's skull had been sawed open,
exposing the brain beneath.
"Look
here," Stanley said, leaning closer to the purplish brain.
With a
thumb forceps, the pathologist carefully pulled back the outer meningeal
membranes, as if drawing back a curtain. Beneath the membranes, the gyri and
folds of the cerebral cortex were plainly visible, traced with darker arteries
and veins.
"While
dissecting the brain from the cranium, we found this:'
Dr.
Hibbert separated the right and left hemispheres of the cerebrum. In the groove
between the two sections of the brain lay a walnut-size mass. It seemed to be
nestled atop the corpus callosum, a whitish channel of nerves and vessels that
connected the two hemispheres.
Stanley
glanced at her. "It's another teratoma . . . or maybe a teratocar-cinoma,
if it's like all the others. But watch this. I've never seen anything like
this:" Using his thumb forceps, he touched the mass.
"Dear
God!" Lauren jumped as the tumor flinched away from the tip of his
forceps. "It . . . it's moving!"
"Amazing,
isn't it? That's why I wanted you to see it. I've read about this property of
some teratomic masses. An ability to respond to external stimuli. There was one
case even of a well-differentiated teratoma that had enough cardiac muscle to
beat like a heart:"
Lauren
finally found her voice. "But Gerald Clark's been dead for two weeks:'
Stanley
shrugged. "I imagine, considering where it's located, that it's rich with
nerve cells. And a good portion of them must still be viable enough to respond
weakly to stimulation. But I expect this ability will quickly fade as the
nerves lose juice and the tiny muscles exhaust their reserve calcium:'
Lauren
took a few deep breaths to collect her thoughts. "Even so, the mass must
be highly organized to develop a flinch reflex:"
"Undoubtedly
. . . quite organized. I'll have it sectioned and slides assembled ASAP"
Stanley straightened. "But I thought you'd appreciate personally seeing it
in action first:"
Lauren
nodded. Her eyes shifted from the tumor in the brain to the corpse's arm. A
sudden thought rose in her mind. "I wonder," she mumbled.
"What?"
Lauren
pictured how the mass had twitched. "The number of the teratomas and the
mature development of this particular tumor could be clues to the mechanism by
which Clark's arm grew back:"
The
pathologist's eyes narrowed. "I'm not following you."
Lauren
faced him, glad to find something else to stare at than the ravaged body.
"What I'm saying is-and this is just a conjecture, of course-what if the
man's arm is just a teratoma that grew into a fully functioning limb?"
Stanley's
brows rose high. "Like some form of controlled cancer growth? Like a
living, functioning tumor?"
"Why
not? That's pretty much how we all developed. From one fertilized cell, our
bodies formed through rapid cellular proliferation, similar to cancer. Only
this profusion of cells differentiated into all the proper tissues. I mean,
isn't that the goal of most stem cell research? To discover the mechanism for
this controlled growth? What causes one cell to become a bone cell and its
neighbour a muscle cell and the one after that a nerve cell?" Lau-ren
stared at the splayed corpse of Gerald Clark, not in horror any longer but in
wonder. "We may be on our way to answering that very mystery."
"And
if we could succeed in discovering the mechanism . . ."
"It
would mean the end of cancer and would revolutionize the entire medical
field:"
Stanley
shook his head and swung away, returning to his bloody work. "Then let's
pray your son and daughter succeed in their search:"
Lauren
nodded and retreated back across the morgue. She checked her watch. Speaking of
Frank and Kelly, it was getting close to the designated conference call. Time
to compare notes. Lauren glanced back one last time to the ruin that was left
of Gerald Wallace Clark. "Something's out in that jungle," she
mumbled to herself. "But what?"
AUGUST
7, 8:32 PM.
AMAZON
JUNGLE
Kelly
stood off from the others, trying her best to assimilate the news her mother had
reported. She stared out into the jungle, serenaded by the end-less chorus of
locusts and river frogs. Firelight failed to penetrate more than a few yards
into the shadowed depths of the forest. Beyond the glow, the jungle hid its
mysteries.
Closer
at hand, a group of Rangers knelt, setting up the camp's perimeter
motion-sensor system. The laser grid, rigged a few feet off the ground and
established between the jungle and the camp, was meant to keep any large
predator from wandering too near without being detected.
Kelly
stared beyond their labors to the dark forest.
What
had happened to Agent Clark out there?
A
voice spoke near her shoulder, startling her. "Gruesome news indeed."
Kelly
glanced over and found Professor Kouwe standing quietly at her side. How long
had he been there? Clearly the shaman had not lost his innate abilities to move
noiselessly across the forest floor. "Y . . . Yes," she stammered.
"Very disturbing:"
Kouwe
slipped out his pipe and began stoking it with tobacco, then lit it with a
fiery flourish. The pungent odor of smoky tobacco welled around them. "And
what of your mother's belief that the cancers and the regenerated arm might be
connected?"
"It's
intriguing . . . and perhaps not without merit:"
"How
so?"
Kelly
rubbed the bridge of her nose and gathered her thoughts. "Before I left
the States to come here, I did a literature search on the subject of
regeneration. I figured it might better prepare me for anything we find."
"Hmm
. . . very wise. When it comes to the jungle, preparation and knowledge can
mean the difference between life and death:'
Kelly
nodded and continued with her thoughts, glad to express them aloud and bounce
them off someone else. "While conducting this research, I came across an
interesting article in the Proceedings of the National Academy of Sciences.
Back in 1999, a research team in Philadelphia raised a group of mice with
damaged immune systems. The mice were to be used as a model to study multiple
sclerosis and AIDS. But as they began working with the immune-compromised
creatures, an odd and unexpected phenomenon developed:"
Kouwe
turned to her, one eyebrow raised. "And what was that?"
"The
researchers had punched holes in the mice's ears, a common way of marking test
animals, and discovered that the holes healed amazingly fast, leaving no trace
of a wound. They had not just scarred over, but had regenerated cartilage,
skin, blood vessels, even nerves:" Kelly let this news sink in, then
continued. "After this discovery, the lead researcher, Dr. Ellen Heber-Katz,
tried a few experiments. She amputated a few mice's tails, and they grew back.
She severed optic nerves, and they healed. Even the excision of a section of
spinal cord grew back in less than a month. Such phenomenal regeneration had
never been seen in mammals:"
Kouwe
removed his pipe, his eyes wide. "So what was causing it?"
Kelly
shook her head. "The only difference between these healing mice and
ordinary mice was their defective immune systems:"
"And
the significance?"
Kelly
suppressed a grin, warming to the subject, especially with such an astute
audience. "From the study of animals with the proven ability to regenerate
limbs-starfish, amphibians, and reptiles-we do know their immune systems are
rudimentary at best. Therefore, Dr. Heber-Katz hypothesized that eons ago,
mammals made an evolutionary trade-off. To defend against cancers, we
relinquished the ability to regenerate bodily limbs. You see, our complex
immune systems are designed specifically to eliminate inappropriate cell
proliferation, like cancers. Which is beneficial, of course, but at the same
time, such immune systems would also block a body's attempt to regenerate a
limb. It would treat the proliferation of poorly differentiated cells necessary
to grow a new arm as cancerous and eliminate it:"
"So
the complexity of our immune systems both protect and damn us:"
Kelly
narrowed her eyes as she concentrated. "Unless something can safely turn
off the immune system. Like in those mice:"
"Or
like in Gerald Clark?" Kouwe eyed her. "You're suggesting some-thing
turned off his immune system so he was able to regenerate his arm, but this
phenomenon also allowed multiple cancers to sprout throughout his body."
"Perhaps.
But it has to be more complicated than that. What's the mechanism? Why did all
the cancers arise so suddenly?" She shook her head. "And more
important, what could trigger such a change?"
Kouwe
nodded toward the dark jungle. "If such a trigger exists, it might be
found out there. Currently three-quarters of all anticancer drugs in use today
are derived from rain forest plants. So why not one plant that does the
opposite-one that causes cancer?"
"A
carcinogen?"
"Yes,
but one with beneficial side effects . . . like regeneration:"
"It
seems improbable, but considering Agent Clark's state, anything might be
possible. Over the next few days, at my request, the MEDEA researchers will be
investigating the status of Gerald Clark's immune sys-tem and examining his
cancers more closely. Maybe they'll come up with something:"
Kouwe
blew out a long stream of smoke. "Whatever the ultimate answer is, it
won't come from a lab. Of that I'm certain:"
"Then
from where?"
Instead
of answering, Kouwe simply pointed the glowing bowl of his pipe toward the dark
forest.
Hours
later, deeper in the forest, the naked figure crouched motionless in the murk
of the jungle, just beyond the reach of the firelight. His slender body had
been painted with a mix of ash and meh-nu fruit, staining his skin in a complex
pattern of blues and blacks, turning him into a living shadow.
Ever
since first dark, he had been spying upon these outsiders. Patience had been
taught to him by the jungle. All teshari-rin, tribal trackers, knew success
depended less on one's actions than on the silence between one's steps.
He maintained
his post throughout the night, a dark sentinel upon the camp. As he crouched,
he studied the giant men, stinking with their foreignness, while they circled
around and around the site. They spoke in strange tongues and bore clothing
most odd.
Still,
he watched, spying, learning of his enemy.
At one
point, a cricket crawled across the back of his hand as his palm rested in the
dirt. One eye watched the camp, while the other watched the small insect
scratch its hind legs together, a whisper of characteristic cricket song.
A
promise of dawn.
He
dared wait no longer. He had learned all he could. He rose smoothly to his
feet, the motion so swift and silent that the cricket remained on the back of
his steady hand, still playing its last song of the night. He raised the hand
to his lips and blew the surprised insect from its perch.
With a
final glance to the camp, he fled away into the jungle. He had been trained to
run the forest paths without disturbing a single leaf. None would know he had
passed.
Moreover,
the tracker knew his ultimate duty.
Death
must come to all but the Chosen.
CHAPTER
SIX
The
Amazon Factor
AUGUST
1 1, 3:12 !?M.
AMAZON
JUNGLE
Nate
kept one finger fixed to his shotgun's trigger, the muzzle pointed ahead. The
caiman had to be almost twenty feet long. It was a huge specimen of
Melanosuchus niger, the black caiman, the king of the giant crocodilian
predators of the Amazon rivers. It lay atop the muddy bank, sunning in the
midafternoon heat. Black armored scales shone dully. Its maw gaped slightly
open. Jagged yellow teeth, longer than Nate's own palm, lined the cavity. Its
bulging, ridged eyes were solid black, cold and dead, the eyes of a prehistoric
monster. Stone still, it was impossible to tell if the great beast even acknowledged
the trio of approaching boats.
"Will
it attack?" Kelly whispered behind him.
Nate
shrugged without looking back. "They're unpredictable. But if we leave it
alone, it should leave us alone:"
Nate
crouched in the prow of the middle pontoon boat. He shared the craft with the
two O'Briens, Richard Zane, and Anna Fong. A single soldier, Corporal Okamoto,
manned the small outboard engine in the boat's stern. The stocky Asian corporal
had developed the habit of whistling almost nonstop, which after four days of
motoring up the wide tributary had grown to be excruciating. But at least the
giant monster lounging on the bank had squelched the man's tuneless noise.
Ahead,
the lead boat puttered past the beast, sticking close to the opposite shore.
The starboard pontoon bristled with M-16s, all pointing toward the black
caiman.
Each
boat held a complement of six team members. The lead boat carried three
soldiers and the rest of the civilians: Professor Kouwe, Olin Pasternak, and
Manny, who lounged with his pet jaguar in the center of the boat. Tor-for had
been on boats before and seemed to enjoy this means of transportation, tail
lazily flicking, ears pricked for noises, eyes mostly in a half-lidded drowse.
The
rear boat held the other six Rangers, anchored by Captain Waxman.
"They
should just shoot the damn thing," Frank said.
Nate
glanced to the man. "It's an endangered species. In the last century, they
were poached to near extinction. Only lately have their numbers grown.
"And
why does this news not please me?" Frank muttered, glancing to the waters
around them. He tugged the bill of his baseball cap lower as if he were trying
to hide behind it.
"The
caimans kill hundreds every year," Zane mumbled, hunched down beside his
pontoon. "They've swamped boats, attacking anything. I read about a black
caiman found dead with two outboard motors in its belly, swallowed whole. I'm
with Mr. O'Brien. A few well-placed shots . . :"
By
now, the lead boat was past the beast's sunning spot, and Nate's boat followed
next, moving slowly against the sludgy current as it passed the caiman, motor
rumbling.
"Marvellous,"
Nate said. He faced the creature, no farther away than thirty yards. It was
monstrous, a creature from another time. "It's bloody beautiful:"
"A
male, isn't it?" Anna Fong asked, staring avidly.
"From
the ridge lines and shape of the nostrils, I'd agree:"
"Shh!"
Frank hissed at them.
"It's
moving!" Kelly yelped, shifting from her seat to the far side of the boat.
She was quickly followed by Richard Zane.
The
armored head swung slowly, now following their boat.
"It's
waking up," Frank said.
"It
was never asleep;" Nate corrected as they glided safely past. "It's
just as curious about us as we are about it."
"I'm
sure as hell not curious," Frank said, clearly glad to be past the
monster. "In fact, it can just kiss my hairy-"
The
giant caiman suddenly lunged, lightning quick, diving smoothly across the slick
mud to vanish under the brown water. The third boat had just been drawing
abreast of it. A few shots were fired by the soldiers aboard. But the
crocodile's speed and sudden movement had caught them all by surprise. It was
already gone by the time the few shots peppered the muddy bank.
"Stop!"
Nate called out. "It's just running!" With nothing to protect, the
caiman's first reaction was to flee from the unknown-that is, unless aroused .
. . or threatened.
One of
the Rangers, a tall black corporal named Rodney Graves, stood halfway up in the
boat, searching the waters, gun pointed. "I don't see-"
It
happened fast. The rear boat jarred about three feet in the air. Nate caught
the barest glimpse of the thick scaled tail. The soldier who had been standing
tumbled headfirst into the water. The others grabbed rubber handholds and held
tight. The boat slammed back to the river.
Captain
Waxman crouched by the outboard motor. "Graves!"
The
fallen corporal suddenly popped out of the water, ten meters downstream from
the trio of boats, carried by the current. The man's hat was gone, but he still
had his gun. He began to kick and swim toward the nearest boat.
Behind
him, like a submarine rising, the head of the caiman crested the waters, its
eyes two periscopes.
The
Rangers scrambled to bring their weapons to bear. But before a single shot was
fired, the caiman had sunk away again.
Nate
imagined the giant creature slashing its thick tail, sweeping through the muddy
depths toward the kicking soldier, drawn by the man's thrashing. "Damn
it," he said under his breath, then yelled with all his lungs.
"Corporal Graves! Don't move! Stop kicking!"
He was
not heard. By now, everyone was yelling for the man to hurry. His panicked
thrashing grew worse. Captain Waxman motored the boat backward, trying to meet
the frantic swimmer.
Nate
yelled again, "Stop swimming!" Finally, more in frustration at not
being heard than any true bravery, Nate tossed his gun aside and dove into the
river. He glided smoothly, eyes open. But the murky depths hid everything
beyond a few feet. He gave one solid kick and sweep of his arms, then simply
let his momentum and the current propel him forward. Under the water, he heard
the motor of the rear boat pass off to the left.
Arching
up, his head broke the surface. Rodney Graves was only a yard to his right.
"Corporal Graves! Quit kicking! You've gotta play dead." Nate kept
his own limbs unmoving. He half floated on his back.
The
soldier turned to him, his eyes wide with panic. "Fuck . . . that!"
he screamed between gasping breaths. He continued to thrash and kick. The
rescue boat was now only three yards away. Already others were stretching out
to grab him up.
Nate
sensed movement nearby, a sudden surge against the current. It swept between
him and the corporal. Something large and swift.
Oh,
God . . .
"Graves!"
he cried out one last time.
One of
the Rangers-Nate recognized him as the swimmer's brother, Thomas Graves-leaned
far over the pontoon. He was supported by two others holding his belt. Tom
lunged out with both arms, straining with every muscle in his body, his face a
mask of fear for his brother.
Rodney
kicked and reached, fingers scrambling out.
Tom
caught his hand. "Got him!" he yelled. The muscles of his fore-arm
bulged like corded iron.
The
two soldiers yanked Tom back as he hauled Rodney forward. With his free arm,
Tom snatched a handful of his brother's soaked field jacket for extra purchase,
then fell backward, yanking his brother over the pontoon.
Rodney
flew up out of the water, landing belly-first onto the pontoon. He laughed in
relief. "Goddamn crocodile!"
He
twisted to pull his feet out of the water when giant jaws, already gaped wide
open, shot out of the water and swallowed both booted legs up to his thighs.
The jaws clamped over their captured prey, then fell back into the river. The
ton of armored beast could not be fought. Rodney was torn out of his brother's
hands, a cry on his lips.
Rodney
disappeared under the water, but his last scream echoed over the river.
Soldiers, on their knees, had rifles pointed toward the river, but no one shot.
Any blind round could take out their fellow unit member rather than the caiman.
Yet from their expressions, Nate knew they all understood the truth. Corporal
Rodney Graves was gone. They all had seen the size of the monster, had seen the
jaws snap him away.
And
Nate knew they were right.
The
caiman would take its prey deep and merely hold it clamped until the waters
drowned its victim. Then it would either eat or store the body in the submerged
mangrove roots where it would rot and be easier to tear apart.
There
was no way to rescue the man.
Nate
remained floating in the water, keeping his limbs still. The caiman was
probably content with its meal, but where there was one, there might be other
predators, especially once the blood flowed down the cur-rent. He took no
chances. He rolled to his back and floated quietly until he felt hands grab him
and haul him back aboard the boat.
He
found himself staring into the stricken face of Tom Graves. The corporal was
staring at his hands, as if blaming them for not being strong enough to hold his
brother.
"I'm
sorry," Nate said softly.
The
man glanced up, and Nate was shocked to see the flash of anger in the man's
eyes, anger that Nate had survived, anger that his brother had been taken
instead. Tom turned away stiffly.
Another
of the unit was not so reticent. "What in God's name were you trying to
do?" It was Captain Waxman, his face almost purple with rage. "What
sort of asinine stunt was that? You trying to get yourself killed, too?"
Nate
swept the wet locks of hair out of his eyes. It was the second time in a week
he had dived into the Amazon's waters to rescue someone. Without doubt, it was
becoming a bad habit. "I was trying to help," he mumbled.
The
fire in Captain Waxman's voice burned down to dull coals. "We were sent to
protect you. Not the other way around:"
By
now, Nate's own boat had drawn abreast of the Rangers: He clambered over the
pontoons to resume his original seat.
Once
settled, Captain Waxman waved an arm for them to continue forward. The pitch of
the motors rose.
Nathan
heard a protest raised by Tom Graves. "Captain . . . my brother . . . his
body."
"Gone,
Corporal. He's gone:'
So the
trio of boats continued on. Nate caught Professor Kouwe's gaze across the
waters from the other boat. Kouwe shook his head sadly. In the jungle, no
amount of military training or arsenal could completely protect you. If the
jungle wanted you, it was going to take you. It was called the Amazon Factor.
All who travelled the mighty green bower were at the jungle's mercy and whim.
Nate
felt a touch on his knee. He turned and saw Kelly seated beside him. She
sighed, staring forward, then spoke. "That was a stupid thing to do. It
really was, but"-she glanced at him-"I'm glad you tried:"
After
the sudden tragedy, Nate didn't have the strength to muster more than a simple
nod, but her words helped warm the cold hollowness inside him. She took her
hand from his knee.
The
rest of the day's journey was made in silence. There was no more whistling by
Corporal Okamoto as he manned the craft's outboard motor. They travelled until
the sun was near the horizon, as if trying to put as much distance as possible
between them and the death of Rodney Graves.
As the
camp was prepared, the news was passed back to the base at Wauwai. The somber
mood stretched through a dinner of fish, rice, and a platter of jungle yams
Professor Kouwe had found near the campsite.
The
only topic of discussion was the sugary yams. Nathan had asked from where such
an abundance had come. "It's unusual to find so many plants:" The professor
had returned with an efficiently constructed back-pack of palm leaves filled to
the brim with wild yams.
Kouwe
nodded toward the deeper forest. "I suspect the site where I found these
was an old Indian garden. I saw a few avocado trees and stumpy pineapple plants
in the same area:"
Kelly
straightened with a fork half-raised. "An Indian garden?"
For
the past four days, they had not encountered a single soul. If Gerald Clark had
obtained his canoe from a Yanomamo village, they had no clue where he got it.
"It
was long abandoned," Kouwe said, dashing the hope that had briefly shone
in Kelly's eyes. "Such sites dot the riverways throughout the Amazon.
Tribes, especially the Yanomamo, are nomadic. They plant gardens, stay a year
or two, then move on. I'm afraid a garden's presence here does not mean
anything significant:"
"Still,
it's at least something," Kelly said, refusing to dismiss this bit of
hopeful news. "Some sign that others are out there:"
"And
besides, these yams are damn good," Frank added, munching a mouthful.
"I was already getting sick of the rice:"
Manny
grinned, running his fingers through his jaguar's ruff. Tor-for had feasted on
a large catfish and lay stretched by the fire.
The
Rangers had set up a second campfire a short distance away. At sunset, they
held a short service for their fallen comrade. Now they were sullen. Only a few
muttered words were shared among them. It was unlike the previous nights when
the soldiers were full of ribald jokes and loud guffaws before settling to
their own hammocks and posts. Not this night.
"We
should all get to sleep," Kelly finally said, pushing to her feet.
"We have another long day tomorrow:'
With
murmured assents and a few groans, the party dispersed to their separate
hammocks. When returning from the latrine, Nate found Professor Kouwe smoking
near his hammock.
"Professor,"
Nate said, sensing Kouwe wanted to speak to him in private.
"Walk
with me a moment. Before the Rangers activate the motion sensors:" The
shaman led the way a short distance into the forest.
Nate
followed. "What is it?"
Kouwe
simply continued until they were deep within the jungle's gloom. The camp's two
fires were only greenish glows through the bushes. He finally stopped, puffing
deeply on his pipe.
"Why
did you bring me out here?"
Kouwe
flicked on a small flashlight.
Nate
stared around. The jungle ahead was clear of all but a few trees: short
breadfruit palms, oranges, figs. Bushes and low plants covered the forest
floor, unnaturally dense. Nate realized what he was seeing. It was the
abandoned Indian garden. He even spotted a pair of bamboo poles, staked among
the plantings and burned at the top. Normally these torches were filled with
tok-tok powder and lit during harvest times as a smoky repellent against hungry
insects. Without a doubt, Indians had once labored here.
Nate
had seen other such cultivations during his journeys in the Amazon, but now,
here at night, with the patch overgrown and gone wild, it had a haunted feeling
to it. He could almost sense the eyes of the Indian dead watching him.
"We're
being tracked," Kouwe said.
The
words startled Nate. "What are you talking about?"
Kouwe
led Nate into the garden. He pointed his flashlight toward a passion fruit tree
and pulled down one of the lower branches. "It's been picked bare:"
Kouwe turned to him. "I'd say about the same time as when we were hauling
and securing the boats. Several of the plucked stems were still moist with
sap:'
"And
you noticed this?"
"I
was watching for it," Kouwe said. "The past two mornings, when I've
gone off to gather fruit for the day's journey, I noticed some places that I'd
walked the night before had been disturbed. Broken branches, a hogplum tree
half empty of its fruit:"
"It
could be jungle animals, foraging during the night:"
Kouwe
nodded. "I thought so at first, too. So I kept silent. I could find no
footprints or definite proof. But now the regularity of these occurrences has
convinced me otherwise. Someone is tracking us:"
Who.
"Most
likely Indians. These are their forests. They would know how to follow without
being seen:"
"The
Yanomamo:"
"Most
likely," Kouwe said.
Nate
heard the doubt in the professor's voice. "Who else could it be?"
Kouwe's
eyes narrowed. "I don't know. But it strikes me as odd that they would not
be more careful. A true tracker would not let his presence be known. It's
almost too sloppy for an Indian:"
"But
you're an Indian. No white man would've noticed these clues, not even the Army
Rangers:"
"Maybe:"
Kouwe sounded unconvinced.
"We
should alert Captain Waxman."
"That's
why I pulled you aside first. Should we?"
"What
do you mean?"
"If
they are Indians, I don't think we should force the issue by having an Army
Ranger team beating the bushes in search of them. The Indians, or whoever is
out there, would simply vanish. If we wish to contact them, maybe we should let
them come to us. Let them grow accustomed to our strangeness. Let them make the
first move rather than the other way around:'
Nate's
first instinct was to argue against such caution. He was anxious to forge
ahead, to find answers to his father's disappearance after so many years.
Patience was hard to swallow. The wet season would begin soon. The rains would
start again, washing away all hopes of tracking Gerald Clark's trail.
But
then again, as he had been reminded today by the caiman's attack, the Amazon
was king. It had to be taken at its own pace. To fight, to thrash, only invited
defeat. The best way to survive was to flow with the current.
"I
think it's best if we wait a few more days," Kouwe continued. "First
to see if I'm correct. Maybe you're right. Maybe it's just jungle animals. But
if I'm right, I'd like to give the Indians a chance to come out on their own,
rather than scare them away or force them here at gunpoint. Either way, we'd
get no information:"
Nate
finally conceded, but with a condition. "We'll give it another two days.
Then we tell someone:"
Kouwe
nodded and flicked off his flashlight. "We should be getting to bed:"
The
pair hiked the short distance back to the glowing campfires. Nate pondered the
shaman's words and insight. He remembered the way Kouwe's eyes had narrowed,
questioning if it was Indians out there. Who else could it be?
Arriving
back at the site, Nate found most of the camp already retired to their
hammocks. A few soldiers patrolled the perimeter. Kouwe wished him good night
and strode to his own mosquito-netted hammock. As Nate kicked out of his boots,
he heard a mumbled moan from Frank O'Brien in a nearby hammock. After today's
tragedy, Nate expected everyone would have troubled dreams.
He
climbed into his hammock and threw an arm over his eyes, blocking out the
firelight. Like it or not, there was no fighting the Amazon. It had its own
pace, its own hunger. All you could do was pray you weren't the next victim.
With this thought in mind, it was a long time until sleep claimed Nate. His
final thought: Who would be next?
Corporal
Jim DeMartini was quickly growing to hate this jungle. After four days
travelling the river, DeMartini was sick of the whole damned place: the eternal
moist air, the stinging flies, the gnats, the constant screams of monkeys and
birds. Additionally, closer to home, mold seemed to grow on everything-on their
clothes, on their hammocks, on their rucksacks. All his gear smelled like
sweaty gym socks abandoned in a locker for a month. And this was after only
four days.
Pulling
patrol, he stood in the woods near the latrine, leaning on a tree, his M-16
resting comfortably in his arms. Jorgensen shared this shift with him but had
stopped to use the latrine. From only a few yards away, DeMartini could hear
his partner whistling as he zipped down.
"Fine
time to take a shit," DeMartini groused.
Jorgensen
heard him. "It's the damn water. . :"
"Just
hurry it up." DeMartini shook out a cigarette, his mind drifting back to
the fate of his fellow unit member Rodney Graves. DeMartini had been in the
lead boat with a few of the civilians, but he had been close enough to see the
monstrous caiman rise out of the river and rip Graves from the other boat. He
gave an involuntary shudder. He was no plebe. He had seen men die before:
gunshots, helicopter crashes, drowning. But nothing compared to what he had
witnessed today. It was something out of a nightmare.
Glancing
over his shoulder, he cursed Jorgensen. What's taking the bas-tard so long? He
took a deep drag on the cigarette. Probably jerking off. But then again, he
couldn't blame Jorgensen if he was. It was distracting with the two women among
them. After setting up camp, he had covertly spied upon the Asian scientist as
she had stripped out of her khaki jacket. Her thin blouse beneath had been damp
from sweat and clung invitingly to her small breasts.
He
shoved back these thoughts, ground out his smoke, and stood straighter. In the
dark, the only light came from the flashlight taped on the underside of his
rifle. He kept it pointed forward, toward the nearby river.
Deeper
in the woods, past the laser motion sensors, small lights winked and flitted.
Fireflies. He had been raised in southern California, where there were no such
insects. So the blinking of the bugs kept him further on edge. The flashes kept
drawing his eye, while around him the jungle sighed with the rustle of leaves.
Larger branches creaked like old men's joints. It was as if the jungle were a
living creature and he was swallowed inside it.
DeMartini
swung his light all around. He firmly believed in the buddy system-and even
more so right now in this cursed black jungle. There was an old adage among the
Rangers: The buddy system is essential to survival-it gives the enemy somebody
else to shoot at.
Slightly
spooked for his buddy's company, he called back to the latrine. "C'mon,
Jorgensen!"
"Give
me half a break," his partner snapped irritably from a few yards away.
As
DeMartini turned back around, something stung his cheek. He slapped at the
insect, squashing it under his palm. An even fiercer sting struck his neck,
just under the line of his jaw. Grimacing, he reached to brush the fly or
mosquito away, and his fingers touched something still clinging to his neck.
Startled, he batted it away in horror.
"What
the fuck!" he hissed, stepping back. "Goddamn bloodsuckers!"
Jorgensen
laughed from nearby. "At least you aren't bare-assed!"
Staring
around the jungle with distaste, he pulled the collar of his jacket higher,
offering less of a target to the bloodthirsty insects. As he turned, the splash
of his flashlight revealed something bright in the mud at his feet. He bent to
pick it up. It was a tied bunch of feathers around a pointed dart. The tip was
wet with blood, his own blood.
Shit!
He
dropped into a crouch and opened his mouth to shout a warning, but all that
came out was a silent gurgle. He tried to take a deep breath but realized he
couldn't seem to get his chest to move. His limbs grew leaden. Suddenly weak,
he fell onto his side.
Poisoned
. . . paralysed, he realized with panic.
His
hand still had enough motor control to scrabble like a spider over the stock of
his rifle, struggling to reach the trigger. If he could fire his M-16 . . .
warn Jorgensen . . .
Then
he sensed someone standing over him, watching him from the dark jungle. He
couldn't turn his head to see, but the prickle of some primal instinct sent
warnings through his body.
Further
panicked, he strained for the M-16's trigger, praying, wordlessly begging. His
finger finally reaching the trigger guard. If he could have gasped, he would
have done so in relief. As darkness blackened the edges of his sight, he fed
all his remaining energy into his single finger-and pulled the trigger.
Nothing
happened.
In
despair, he realized the rifle's safety was still on. A single tear of defeat
rolled down his cheek as he lay in the mud. Paralysed, he could not even close
his eyelids.
The
lurker finally stepped over his prone body. In the glow of his weapon's light,
he saw a sight that made no sense.
It was
a woman . . . a naked woman, a sleek creature of wondrous beauty, with long
smooth legs, gentle curves leading to full hips, firm and rounded breasts. But
it was her large, dark eyes-full of mystery, full of hunger-that held his
attention as he slowly suffocated. She leaned over him, a cascading fall of
black hair over his slack face.
For a
moment, it felt as if she were breathing into him. He felt some-thing course through
him, something warm and smoky.
Then
he was gone, darkness swallowing him away.
Kelly
startled awake. Voices shouted all around her. She sat up too quickly and
tumbled out of her hammock, crashing to her knees. "Damn it!" She
glanced up.
More
branches had been tossed on the two campfires. Flames climbed higher, spreading
smoke and a fiery light all around. In the distance, flash-lights bobbled
through the forests, clearly searching. Shouts and orders echoed out of the
jungle.
Gaining
her feet, Kelly struggled to find her way through the tangled mosquito netting.
She spotted Nate and Manny nearby. Both men were barefooted, dressed in boxers
and T-shirts. The large jaguar sat between them. "What's going on?"
she called, finally freeing herself of the netting.
The
other civilians were now all beginning to gather in various states of undress
and confusion. Kelly quickly noticed that all the green canvas hammocks of the
Rangers were empty. A single corporal stood between the two fires. His rifle
was held at ready.
Nate
answered her question, bending down to tug on his boots. "One of the
soldiers on patrol has gone missing. We're to stay here until the others secure
the area:"
"Missing?
Who? How?"
"Corporal
DeMartini:"
Kelly
remembered the man: slick black hair, wide nose, eyes that constantly squinted
with suspicion. "What happened?"
Nate
shook his head. "No one knows yet. He simply vanished:"
A
sharp shout arose from near the river. Most of the bobbling flash-lights
converged toward the site.
Professor
Kouwe joined them. Kelly noticed an odd look pass between the two men.
Something unspoken, something they shared.
Frank
suddenly appeared on the far side of the camp. Flashlight in hand, he rushed
toward them. He arrived out of breath, the freckles on his cheeks standing out
against his ashen face. "We've found the missing man's weapon." His
eyes flicked between Nate, Manny, and Kouwe. "You all know more about the
jungle than anyone. There's something we could use your opinion about. Captain
Waxman has asked for you to come take a look:"
The
whole group of civilians stepped toward Frank, intending to follow.
He
held up a hand. "Just these three:"
Kelly
pushed forward. "If the man was injured, I may be of help, too:"
Frank
hesitated, then nodded.
Richard
Zane moved to follow, his mouth open to protest, but Frank shook his head.
"We don't want the site trampled any more than necessary."
With
the matter settled, the group hurried past the fires toward the river. The
jaguar kept to its master's side, padding silently with them. They crossed into
the dense growth that fringed the tributary. Here was the true mythic jungle: a
tangle of vines, bushes, and trees. Single file, the group trekked into the
thick growth, approaching the glow of many flashlights ahead.
Kelly
followed behind Nate. For the first time, she noticed the spread of his
shoulders-and how well he moved through the woods. For such a tall man, he
slipped under liana vines and around bushes with a casual ease. She trod in his
steps and tried to mimic his moves, but she kept stumbling in the dark.
Her
heel slid on something slippery. Her feet went out from under her. She fell
sideways, hands out to break her fall.
Then
Nate's arms were around her, catching her. "Careful:"
"Th
. . . thanks:" Blushing, she reached toward a vine to pull herself up, but
before she could grip it, Nate yanked her away. Only her fingers brushed the
vine.
"What
are you-ow!" Her fingertips began to burn. She rubbed them on her untucked
blouse, but the sting grew even worse. It felt as if her fingers were on fire.
"Hold
still," Professor Kouwe said. "Rubbing will spread it:" He
snatched a handful of thick leaves from a slender tree. Crushing them in his
hands, he grabbed Kelly's wrist and smeared the oily moisture over her fingers
and hand.
Instantly
the sting faded. Kelly stared in wonder at the crushed leaves.
"Ku-run-yeh,"
Nate said behind her. "Of the violet family. A potent analgesic:"
Kouwe
continued to rub her fingers until the pain was gone.
In the
glow of her brother's flashlight, she saw that a couple of blisters had formed
on the tips of her fingers.
"Are
you okay?" Frank asked.
She
nodded, feeling stupid.
"Keep
applying the ku-run-yeh and you'll heal faster," Kouwe said, giving her
arm a fatherly squeeze.
Nate
helped her to her feet. He pointed to the grayish vine. "It's named `fire
liana.' And not without reason:' The vine draped from a tree and lay tangled
near the trunk's base. She would've fallen into the nest of vines if Nate
hadn't caught her. "The vine exudes a potent irritant to keep insects
away.
"A
form of chemical warfare," Kouwe added.
"Exactly."
Nate nodded for Frank to continue ahead, then waved an arm. "It's going on
all around you all the time here. It's what makes the jungle such a potent
medicinal storehouse. The ingenuity and variety of chemicals and compounds
waged in this war far outwit anything human scientists could invent in a
lab:"
Kelly
listened, not feeling particularly appreciative of being a casualty in this
chemical war.
After
a few more yards, they reached the Rangers, gathered in a ring around one
section of forest. A couple of men stood off to the side, weapons on their
shoulders, night-vision goggles in place over their faces.
Corporal
Jorgensen stood at attention before the unit's captain. "Like I said, I
was just using the latrine. DeMartini was standing guard by a near-by tree:"
"And
this?" Captain Waxman held up the butt of a cigarette under the man s
nose.
"Okay,
I heard him light up, but I didn't think he left. When I zipped and turned
around, he was gone. He didn't say a word that he was going to wander over to
the river:"
"All
for a goddamn smoke," Captain Waxman grumbled, then waved an arm.
"Dismissed, corporal."
"Yes,
sir."
After
taking a deep breath, Captain Waxman crossed to them, fire still in his eyes.
"I need your expertise on this," he said, his gaze sweeping over
Nate, Kouwe, and Manny. Turning, he swung his lights toward an area of trampled
jungle grasses. "We found DeMartini's weapon abandoned here, and this
stubbed cigarette, but no sign of what happened to his body. Corporal Warczak
has searched for any prints leading from here. There aren't any. Just this
trampled and shredded area of grasses that leads back to the river.
Kelly
saw that the disturbed area did indeed lead all the way to the water's edge.
The tall green reeds lining the bank were parted and crushed.
"I'd
like to examine this more closely," Professor Kouwe said.
Captain
Waxman nodded, passing Kouwe his flashlight.
Nate
and Kouwe moved forward. Manny followed, but his pet jaguar stopped at the edge
of the area, growling deep in the back of his throat as it sniffed at the
grasses.
Hand
on his whip, Manny tried to coax the cat to follow. "C'mon, Tor-tor:"
The jaguar refused, even retreated a step.
Kouwe
glanced back to them. The professor had stopped to crouch at a spot, examining
something near the reeds. He sniffed at his fingers.
"What
is it?" Nate asked.
"Caiman
feces:" He wiped his hand clean on some grasses, then nodded to the
growling jaguar. "I think Tor-for agrees:"
"What
do you mean?" Kelly asked.
Manny
answered, "Wild cats have the ability to sense the size of an ani-mal from
just the smell of its excrement or urine. In fact, elephant urine is sold
throughout the western United States as a repellent against bobcats and
cougars. They won't go near a site marked with elephant urine, freaked by the
smell of such a huge animal:'
Kouwe
clambered through the reeds to the river's edge. He was careful to pluck aside
a few broken stalks, then waved Captain Waxman over. Kelly followed.
Kouwe
shone his light on a spot of muddy bank. Clawed prints were clear in the
riverbank mud. "Caiman:"
Kelly
heard an odd note of relief in Kouwe's voice. Again Nate and the professor
shared a secretive glance.
Straightening,
Kouwe explained, "Caimans will often hunt the river-banks, snatching tapir
and wild pigs as they come to drink. Your corporal must have come too close to
the river and was grabbed:"
"Could
it he the same one that attacked Corporal Graves?" Waxman asked.
Kouwe
shrugged. "Black caimans are fairly intelligent. After learning that our
boats are a source of food, it might have followed the rumble of our motors,
then lay in wait until nightfall:"
"Goddamn
that motherfucker!" Waxman spat, a fist clenched. "Two men in one
day."
Staff
Sergeant Kostos stepped forward. The tall swarthy Ranger wore a tight
expression. "Sir, I can call for reinforcements. The Hueys could be here
by morning with two more men:"
"Do
it," he snapped. "And from here on out, I want two patrols every
shift. Two men in each patrol! I don't want anyone-civilian or soldier-walking
this jungle alone. Ever! And I want the river side of every camp set up with
motion sensors, not just the jungle:"
"Yes,
sir:"
Captain
Waxman turned to them. There was no warmth in his words, only dismissal.
"Thank you for your assistance:"
The
group wound back through the forest. As they marched, Kelly felt numb. Another
man gone . . . so suddenly. She hiked past the nest of fire liana vines and
eyed them warily. It wasn't only chemical warfare going on out here, but a
savage feeding frenzy, where the strong consumed the weak.
Kelly
was glad to reach the campsite with its roaring fires-the warmth, the light. In
a small way, the flames were reassuring, temporarily driving back the dark
heart of the forest.
She
found the eyes of the other teammates upon them. Anna Fong stood with Richard
Zane. Frank's fellow operative, Olin Pasternak, stood near the fires, warming
his hands.
Manny
quickly explained what they had found. As he talked, Anna covered her mouth
with her hand and turned away. Richard shook his head. And as usual, Olin
remained his stoic self, staring into the flames.
Kelly
barely noticed their reactions. Standing by the campfire, her attention
remained focused on Nate and Kouwe. The pair had moved to the side, near Nate's
hammock. From the corner of her eye, she watched them. No words were exchanged
between the two men, but she caught the inquiring look on Kouwe's face. An unspoken
question.
Nate
answered with a small shake of his head.
With
some secret settled between them, Kouwe reached to his pipe and moved a few
steps away, clearly needing a moment alone.
Kelly
turned, giving the older man his privacy, and found Nate staring at her.
She
glanced back to the fires. She felt foolish and oddly frightened. She swallowed
and bit her lower lip, remembering the man's strong arms catching her, saving
her. She sensed Nate still staring at her, his gaze like the sun's heat on her
skin. Warm, deep, and tingling.
Slowly
the feeling faded.
What
was he hiding?
CHAPTER
SEVEN
Data
Collection
AUGUST
12, 6:20 A.M.
LANGLEY
VIRGINIA
Lauren
O'Brien was going to be late for work. "Jessie!" she called as she
nestled an orange beside a peanut-butter-and-jelly sandwich in a lunch box.
"Hon, I need you down here . . . now." The day-care center was a
twenty-minute drive out of her way, followed by the usual fight through morning
traffic into Langley.
She
checked her watch and rolled her eyes. "Marshall!"
"We're
coming," a stern voice answered.
Lauren
leaned around the corner. Her husband was leading their granddaughter down the
stairs. Jessie was dressed, though her socks didn't match. Close enough, she
thought to herself. She had forgotten what it was like to have a child in the
house again. Patterns and schedules had to be altered.
"I
can take her to day care," Marshall said, reaching the bottom stairs.
"I don't have a meeting until nine o'clock:"
"No,
I can do it:"
"Lauren.
. ." He crossed and gave her a quick peck on the cheek. "Let me help
you:"
She
returned to the kitchen and snapped shut the lunch box. "You should get
into the office as soon as possible:" She tried to keep the tension out of
her voice.
But
Marshall heard it anyway. "Jessie, why don't you get your sweater?"
"
'Kay, Grandpa:' The girl skipped toward the front door.
Marshall
turned back to Lauren. "Frank and Kelly are fine. If there was any change,
we would know it right away"
Lauren
nodded, but she kept her back toward him. She did not want Marshall to see the
threatening tears. Last night, they had heard about the first Army Ranger being
attacked by a crocodile. Then, a few hours past midnight, the phone had rung.
From Marshall's tone as he spoke, Lauren had known it was more bad news. A call
this late could only mean one thing-something horrible had happened to either
Frank or Kelly. She was sure of it. After Marshall had hung up the phone and
explained about the second dead soldier, Lauren had cried with selfish relief.
Still, deep inside, a seed of dread had been planted that she could not shake.
Two dead . . . how many more? She had been unable to sleep the rest of the
night.
"Another
two Rangers are being airlifted to their campsite as we speak. They have plenty
of protection:"
She
nodded and sniffed back tears. She was being foolish. She had spoken with the
twins last night. They were clearly shaken by the tragedy, but both were
determined to continue onward.
"They're
tough kids," Marshall said. "Resourceful and cautious. They're not
going to take any foolish chances:"
With
her back still turned to her husband, she mumbled, "Foolish chances?
They're out there, aren't they? That's foolish enough:"
Marshall's
hands settled on her shoulders. He brushed aside the hair from the back of her
neck and kissed her gently. "They'll be fine," he whispered in her
ear calmly.
At
fifty-four, Marshall was a striking man. His black-Irish hair was going to
silver at the temples. He had a strong jaw, softened by full lips. His eyes, a
bluish hazel, caught her and held her.
"Kelly
and Frank will be fine," he said succinctly. "Let me hear you say
it."
She
tried to glance down, but a fingertip moved her chin back up.
"Say
it . . . please. For me. I need to hear it, too:"
She
saw the glimmer of pain in his eyes. "Kelly and Frank . . . will be
fine:" Though her words were muttered, speaking them aloud was some-how
reassuring.
"They
will be. We raised them, didn't we?" He smiled at her, the pain fading in
his eyes.
"We
sure did:" She slipped her arms around her husband and hugged him.
After
a moment, Marshall kissed her on the forehead. "I'll take Jessie to day
care:"
She
didn't object. After giving her grandchild a long hug by the front door, she
allowed herself to be guided to her BMW. The forty-minute drive to the Instar
Institute was a blur. When she arrived, she was glad to grab her briefcase and
head through the cipher-locked doors into the main building. After such a
disturbing night, it was good to be busy again, to have something to distract
her from her worries.
She
crossed to her offices, greeting familiar faces in the hall. The complete
immunology report was due today, and she was anxious to test Kelly's theory
about an alteration to Gerald Clark's immune status. Preliminary results,
coming piecemeal, were not terribly helpful. With the degree of cancerous
processes ravaging the body, assessment was difficult.
Reaching
her office, Lauren found a stranger standing by her door.
"Good
morning, Dr. O'Brien," the man said, holding out a hand. He was no older
than twenty-five, slender, with a shaved head, and dressed in blue scrubs.
Lauren,
as head of the MEDEA project, knew everyone involved on the research, but not
this man. "Yes?"
"I'm
Hank Alvisio:"
The
name rang a bell. Lauren shook his hand while racking her brain.
"Epidemiology,"
he said, clearly reading her momentary confusion.
Lauren
nodded. "Of course, I'm sorry, Dr. Alvisio:" The young man was an
epidemiologist out of Stanford. She had never met him in person. His field of
expertise was the study of disease transmission. "How can I help
you?"
He
lifted a manila folder. "Something I'd like you to see:'
She
checked her watch. "I have a meeting with Immunology in about ten minutes:"
"All
the more reason you should see this:"
She
unlocked her office door with a magnetic ID card and ushered him inside.
Switching on the lights, she crossed to her desk and offered Dr. Alvisio a seat
on the other side. "What have you got?"
"Something
I've been working on:" He fiddled through his folder. "I've turned up
some disturbing data that I wanted to run past you:"
"What
data?"
He
glanced up. "I've been reviewing Brazilian medical records, looking for
any other cases similar to Gerald Clark's:"
"Other
people with strange regenerations?"
He
grinned shyly. "Of course not. But I was trying to put together an
epidemiological assessment of cancers among those living in the Brazilian rain
forests, with particular concentration in the area where Gerald Clark died. I
thought maybe, by tracking cancer rates, we could indirectly track where the
man had travelled:"
Lauren
sat up. This was an intriguing angle, even ingenious. No won-der Dr. Alvisio
had been hired. If he could discover a cluster of similar cancers, then it
might narrow the search parameters, which in turn could shorten the time Kelly
and Frank would need to trek the jungle on foot. "And what did you find?"
"Not
what I expected," he said with a worried look in his eyes. "I
contacted every city hospital, medical facility, and jungle field clinic in the
area. They've been sending me data covering the past decade. It's taken me this
long to crunch the information through my computer models:"
"And
did you discover any trends in cancer rates in the area?" Lauren asked
hopefully.
He
shook his head. "Nothing like the cancers seen in Gerald Clark. He seems
to be a very unique case:"
Lauren
hid her disappointment but could not keep a touch of irritation from entering
her voice. "Then what did you discover?"
He
pulled out a sheet of paper and passed it to Lauren. She slipped on her reading
glasses.
It was
a map of northwestern Brazil. Rivers snaked across the region, all draining
toward one destination-the Amazon River. Cities and towns dotted the course,
most sticking close to channels and waterways. The black-and-white map was
dotted with small red X's.
The
young doctor tapped a few of the marks with the tip of a pen.
"Here
are all the medical facilities that supplied data. While working with them, I
was contacted by a staff doctor at a hospital in the city of Barcellos:"
His pen pointed to a township along the Amazon, about two hundred miles upriver
from Manaus. "They were having a problem with a viral out-break among the
city's children and elderly. Something that sounded like some form of
hemorrhagic fever. Spiking temperatures, jaundice, vomiting, oral ulcerations.
They had already lost over a dozen children to the disease. The doctor in
Barcellos said he had never seen anything like it and asked for my assistance.
I agreed to help:"
Lauren
frowned, slightly irked. The epidemiologist had been hired and flown here to
work specifically and solely on this project. But she kept silent and let him
continue.
"Since
I already had a network of contacts established in the region, I utilized them,
sending out an emergency request for any other reports of this outbreak:"
Dr. Alvisio pulled out a second sheet of paper. It appeared to be the same map:
rivers and red X's. But on this map, several of the X's were circled in blue,
with dates written next to them. "These are the sites that reported
similar cases:"
Lauren's
eyes widened. There were so many. At least a dozen medical facilities were
seeing cases.
"Do
you see the trend here?" Dr. Alvisio said.
Lauren
stared, then slowly shook her head.
The
epidemiologist pointed to one X with a blue circle. "I've dated each
reported case. This is the earliest:" He glanced up from the paper and
tapped the spot. "This is the mission of Wauwai:"
"Where
Gerald Clark was found?"
The
doctor nodded.
She now
recalled reading the field report from the expedition's first day. The Wauwai
mission had been razed by superstitious Indians. They'd been frightened after
several village children had become inexplicably sick.
"I
checked with local authorities," Dr. Alvisio continued. He began to tap
down the line of blue-circled X's. "The small steamboat that trans-ported
Clark's body stopped at each of these ports:" The epidemiologist continued
to tap the riverside towns. "Every site where the body passed, the disease
appeared:"
"My
God;" Lauren mumbled. "You're thinking the body was carrying some
pathogen:"
"At
first. I thought it was one of several possibilities. The disease could have
spread out from Wauwai through a variety of carriers. Almost all transportation
through the region is by river, so any contagious disease would've followed a
similar pattern. The pattern alone wasn't conclusive evidence that the body was
the source of the contagion:"
Lauren
sighed, relieved. "It couldn't be the body. Before being shipped from
Brazil, my daughter oversaw the disposition of the remains. It was tested for a
wide variety of pathogens: cholera, yellow fever, dengue, malaria, typhoid,
tuberculosis. We were thorough. We checked for every known pathogen. The body
was clean:"
"But
I'm afraid it wasn't," Dr. Alvisio said softly.
"Why
do you say that?"
"This
was faxed this morning:" He slid a final paper out of his folder. It was a
CDC report out of Miami. "Clark's body was inspected in customs at Miami
International. Now three cases of the disease have been reported in local
children. All of them from families o€ airport employees:"
Lauren
sank into her chair as the horror of the man's words struck her. "Then
whatever the disease is, it's here. We brought it here. Is that what you're
saying?" She glanced over to Dr. Alvisio.
He
nodded.
"How
contagious is it? How virulent?"
The
man's voice became suddenly mumbled. "It's hard to say with any
certainty."
Lauren
knew the man, even at such a young age, was a leader in his field or he
wouldn't be here. "What is your cursory assessment? You have one, don't
you?"
He
visibly swallowed. "From the initial study of transmission rates and the
disease's incubation period, it's a bug that's a hundredfold more contagious
than the common cold . . . and as virulent as the Ebola virus:"
Lauren
felt the blood drain from her face. "And the mortality rate?"
Dr.
Alvisio glanced down and shook his head.
"Hank?"
she said hoarsely, her voice hushed with fear.
He
lifted his face. "So far no one has survived:'
AUGUST
12, 6:22 A.M.
AMAZON
JUNGLE
Louis
Favre stood at the edge of his camp, enjoying the view of the river at sunrise.
It was a quiet moment after a long night. Kidnapping the corporal from under
the other camp's nose had taken hours to prepare and execute, but as usual, his
team had performed without fail.
After
four days, the job of shadowing the other team was reduced to a routine. Each
night, runners would slip ahead of the Rangers' team, trekking through the deep
jungle to set up spy positions in well-camouflaged roosts in emergent trees
that towered above the forest canopy. While spying, they maintained contact
with the mercenary team via radio. During the day, Louis and the bulk of his
forces followed in a caravan of canoes, trailing ten kilometers behind the
others. Only at night had they crept any nearer.
Louis
turned from the river and crossed into the deeper wood. Hidden among the trees,
the camp was hard to spot until you were on top of it. He stared around while
his forty-man team began to break camp. It was a motley group: bronze-skinned
Indians culled from various tribes, lanky black Maroons out of Suriname,
swarthy Colombians hired from the drug trade. Despite their differences, all
the men had one thing in common: they were a hardened lot, marked by the jungle
and forged in its bloody bower.
Rifles
and guns, wrapped in sailcloth, lay in an orderly spread beside sleeping sites.
The armament was as varied as his crew: German Heckler & Koch MPSs, Czech
Skorpions, stubby Ingram submachine guns, Israeli-manufactured Uzis, even a few
obsolete British Sten guns. Each man had his favorite. Louis's weapon of choice
was his compact Mini-Uzi. It had all of the power of its bigger brother but
measured only fourteen inches long. Louis appreciated its efficient design,
small but deadly, like himself.
1n
addition to the munitions, a few men were sharpening machetes. The scrape of
steel on rock blended with the morning calls of waking birds and barking
monkeys. In hand-to-hand combat, a well-turned blade was better than a gun.
As he
surveyed the camp, his second-in-command, a tall black Maroon tribesman named
Jacques, approached. At the age of thirteen, Jacques had been exiled from his
village after raping a girl from a neighboring tribe. The man still bore a scar
from his boyhood journey through the jungle. One side of his nose was missing
from an attack by a piranha. He nodded his head respectfully. "Doctor."
"Yes,
Jacques."
"Mistress
Tshui indicates that she is ready for you:"
Louis
sighed. Finally. The prisoner had proven especially difficult.
Reaching
into a pocket, Louis pulled free the dog tags and jangled them in his palm. He
crossed to the lone tent set near the edge of the camp. Normally the
camouflaged tent was shared by Louis and Tshui, but not this past night. During
the long evening, Tshui had been entertaining a new guest.
Louis
announced himself. "Tshui, my dear, is our visitor ready for
company?" He pulled back the flap and bowed his way through the opening.
It was
intolerably hot inside. A small brazier was burning in a corner. His mistress
knelt naked before the small camp stove, lighting a bundle of dried leaves. Aromatic
smoke spiralled upward. She rose to her feet. Her mocha skin shone with a sleek
layer of sweat.
Louis
stared, drinking her in. He longed to take her then and there, but he
restrained himself. They had a guest this morning.
He
turned his attention to the naked man staked spread-eagle on the bare-earth
floor. The only bit of clothing he wore was a ball gag. Louis kept his eyes
diverted from the bloody ruin of the corporal's body.
Still
holding the man's dog tags, Louis crossed to a folding camp chair and sat down.
He glanced to the name etched on the tags. "Corporal James
DeMartini," he said in crisp English, reading the name, then looking up.
"I've heard it from good authority that you're ready to cooperate:"
The
man moaned, tears flowed from his eyes.
"Is
that a yes?"
The
Ranger, a beaten and tortured dog, nodded with a pained wince. Louis studied the
man. What hurt more, he wondered, the torture? Or the actual moment you finally
broke?
With a
tired sigh, he pulled the man's gag free. Louis needed information. Over the
years, he had learned that the difference between success and failure lay in
the details. He had reams of facts on the opposing team-not only information
supplied directly by St. Savin, but also timely intelligence gained from a
closer source.
Still
Louis hadn't been satisfied.
He had
kidnapped the young corporal because his other resources had proved woefully
lacking in specific details about the Army Ranger unit: their firepower, their
radio codes, their timetables. Furthermore, there was always the unspoken
military objective, orders meant only for military ears. And last, Louis had
arranged the abduction simply as a challenge, a small test of his forces.
The
maneuver had gone flawlessly. Equipped with night-vision glasses, a small team
had snuck in via the river. Once the chance arose, they had poisoned one of the
Rangers with a special curare dart prepared by Tshui. Afterward, they had
covered their tracks, setting up a false trail beside the river with caiman
dung and prints. His mistress had then kept the kidnapped man alive by
breathing mouth-to-mouth until he could be revived back at their camp with a
special antidote.
But
Tshui's true talents were proven during the long night. Her art of torture was
without equal, plying pain and pleasure in a strange hypnotic rhythm until
finally her prey's will broke.
"Please
kill me," the man begged, hoarse, blood dribbling from his lips.
"Soon
enough, mon ami . . . but first a few questions:" Louis leaned back as
Tshui walked around the corporal, waving her smoking bundle of dried leaves
through the air. He noticed the broken soldier flinch from the woman, his
terrified eyes following her every move.
Louis
found this extremely arousing, but he kept himself focused. "Let's first
go over a few numbers:" Over the next few minutes, he extracted all the
codes and time schedules of the army unit. He did not have to write any of it
down, setting all the frequencies and numbers to memory. The information would
greatly facilitate eavesdropping on the other team's communications. Next, he
collected the details on the Ranger force's strength: number and types of
weapons, skill levels, weaknesses, means of air support.
The
man proved most talkative. He babbled on and on, giving out more information
than requested. ". . . Staff Sergeant Kostos has a secret stash of whiskey
in his rucksack . . . two bottles . . . and in Captain Wax-man's boat, there's
a crate that holds a cradle of napalm minibombs . . . and Corporal Conger has a
Penthouse mag-"
Louis
sat up. "Hold on, monsieur. Let's back up. Napalm bombs?"
"Minibombs
. . . an even dozen . . :'
"Why?"
The
corporal looked confused.
"James,"
he said sternly.
"I
. . . I don't know. I suppose if we need to clear a section of jungle.
Something that blocks our way:"
"How
large a region would one of those bombs clear?"
"I
. . :' The man choked back a sob. "I'm not sure . . . maybe an acre . . .
I don't know."
Louis
leaned his elbows on his knees. "Are you telling me the truth,
James?" He wiggled a finger for Tshui, who had grown bored with the
conversation and sat cross-legged, busy laying out a new set of tools.
On his
signal, she rose from her work and crawled like some jungle cat toward the
naked soldier.
"No,"
the corporal cried, mewling, "no, I don't know anything more:"
Louis
shifted back in his seat. "Do I believe you?"
"Please.
. :"
"I
think I will believe you:" Standing, he turned to his mistress.
"We're done here, ma cherie. He's all yours:"
She
slid smoothly to her feet, offering a cheek to be kissed as he passed.
"No,"
the man on the ground moaned, pleading.
"Don't
dawdle," he said to Tshui. "The sun is almost up, and we'll need to
be under way shortly."
She
smiled, smoky and full of hidden lusts. As he stepped to the tent's threshold,
he saw her bend down and collect her bone needle and thread from the spread of
tools. Lately, Tshui had been trying a new approach in preparing her specimens
for head-shrinking. She now liked to sew her victims' eyelids closed while they
were yet alive. To better capture their essence, he supposed. The Shuar shamans
placed special significance in the eyes, a path to the spirit.
A
sharp scream arose behind him.
"Tshui,
don't forget the man's gag," Louis scolded. He made the mistake of
glancing over his shoulder.
Tshui
squatted above the face of Corporal James, her thighs on either side of his
head, holding the squirming man in place as she busied herself with her needle
and thread. He lifted an eyebrow in surprise. It seemed Tshui was trying
something new.
"Pardon,
ma cherie," he said, bowing out of the tent. Apparently he had scolded her
too soon. The gag truly wasn't necessary.
Tshui
was already sewing the corporal's lips shut.
ACT
THREE - Survival of theFittest
BRAZIL
NUT
FAMILY:
Lecythidaceae
GENUS:
Bertholletia
SPECIES:
Excelsa
COMMON
NAMES: Brazil Nut, Castanheiro do Para, Para-Nut, Creamnut,
Castana-de-Para,
Castana-de-Brazil
PARTS
USED: Nut, Seed Oil
PROPERTIES/ACTIONS:
Emollient, Nutritive, Antioxidant, Insecticide
CHAPTER
EIGHT
Village
AUGUST
13, NOON
AMAZON
JUNGLE
Frowning,
Nate caught the line and secured it to a mangrove tree. "Careful," he
warned his boat mates. "It's swampy here. Watch your footing:" He
helped Kelly climb over the pontoon and onto the firmest section of the bank.
He himself was muddy up to his knees and soaked everywhere else.
He
lifted his face to the drizzle of rain from the cloudy skies. A storm had blown
in overnight, starting with a fierce downpour, then fading into a steady misty
drizzle within the last hour. The day's journey so far had been dreary. They
had taken turns with a hand pump to bilge the water out of the boat all
morning. Nate was glad when Captain Waxman had called a halt for lunch.
After
helping everyone off their boats, Nate climbed the muddy bank onto higher
ground. The jungle wept all around him, dripping, sluicing, and trickling from
the leafy canopy overhead.
Professor
Kouwe seemed unperturbed. With a pack hastily constructed of palm leaves, he
was already heading out into the forest to forage for edibles, accompanied by a
sodden Corporal Jorgensen. From the sour expression on the soldier's face, the
tall Swede seemed little interested in a jungle trek. But Captain Waxman
insisted that no one, not even the experienced Kouwe, walk the jungles alone.
Around
the camp, the mood of the entire group remained sullen. Word of a possible
contagion associated with Gerald Clark's body had reached them yesterday.
Quarantines had been set up in Miami and around the institute where the body
was being examined. Additionally, the Brazilian government had been informed
and quarantine centers were being established throughout the Amazon. So far
only children, the elderly, and those with compromised immune systems were at
risk. Healthy adults seemed resistant. But much was still unknown: the
causative agent, modes of transmission, treatment protocols. Back in the
States, a Level Four containment had been set up at the Instar Institute to
research these questions.
Nate
glanced over to Frank and Kelly. Frank had his arm around his sister. She was
still pale. Their entire family, including Kelly's daughter and the families of
other scientists and workers at Instar, had been put into quarantine at the
institute. No one was showing any symptoms, but the worry etched in Kelly's
face was clear.
Nate
turned away, giving them their privacy, and continued on.
The
only bright spot in the last forty-eight hours was that no additional members
of their party had fallen prey to the jungle. After losing Corporal DeMartini
two days ago, everyone had kept alert, minding Nate's and Kouwe's warnings
about jungle hazards, respecting their native lore. Now, before disembarking
from a boat or bathing, everyone checked the shallows for buried stingrays in
the mud or hidden electric eels. Kouwe gave lessons on how to avoid scorpions
and snakes. No one put on a boot in the morning without first thoroughly
shaking it out.
Nate
checked the camp, walking the periphery, searching for any other hazards: fire
liana, ant nests, hidden snakes. It was the new routine.
He
spotted the two new members of the team, replacements for those lost. They were
gathering wood. Both were ranked private first class, newly commissioned
Rangers: a battle tank of a man with a thick Bronx accent, Eddie Jones, and,
surprisingly, a woman, one of the first female Rangers, Maria Carrera. Special
Forces had only started accepting women applicants six months before, after an
amendment to Title 10 restrictions had passed Congress. But these new female
recruits were still limited from front-line combat, assigned to missions like
this one.
The
morning after the nighttime attack, the two soldiers had been flown in from the
field base at Wauwai, sliding down ropes from a hovering Huey. Afterward, small
tanks of fuel and additional supplies were lowered.
It was
a critical shipment, their last one. From that morning on, the team would be
motoring beyond the range of the Hueys, beyond the range of air support. In
fact, as of today, they had traveled close to four hundred miles. The only
craft with enough range to reach them now was the black Comanche. But the sleek
attack helicopter would only be utilized in case of emergency, such as the
evacuation of an injured team member or in case an aerial assault was needed.
Otherwise from here on out, they were on their own.
Finished
with his survey, Nate crossed back to the center of the camp. Corporal Conger
was hunched over a pile of twigs. With a match, he was trying to light a pile
of dead leaves under a steeple of twigs. A drip of water from overhead doused
his flame. "Damn it," the young Texan swore, tossing the match aside
in disgust. "Everything's friggin' waterlogged. I could break out a
magnesium flare and try to tight it:'
"Save
them," Captain Waxman ordered from a step away. "We'll just make a
cold camp for lunch:"
Manny
groaned from nearby. He was soaked to the skin. The only team member who looked
even more dejected was Tor-tor. The jaguar stalked sullenly around its master,
fur dripping water, ears drooped. Nothing was more piteous than a wet cat, even
a two-hundred-pound one.
"I
think I might be able to help," Nate said.
Eyes
glanced to him.
"I
know an old Indian trick:"
He
crossed back to the forest, searching for a particular tree he had noted during
his survey of the campsite. He was followed by Manny and Captain Waxman. He
quickly found the tall tree with characteristic bumpy gray bark. Slipping out
his machete, he pierced the bark. A thick rusty resin flowed out. He fingered
the sap and held it toward Waxmans nose.
The
captain sniffed it. "Smells like turpentine:"
Nate
patted the tree. "It's called copal, derived from the Aztec word for
resin, copalli. Trees in this family are found throughout the rain forests of
Central and South America. It's used for a variety of purposes: healing wounds,
treating diarrhea, alleviating cold symptoms. It's even used today in modern
dentistry."
"Dentistry?"
Manny asked.
Nate
lifted his sticky finger. "If you ever had a cavity filled, you have some
of this stuff in your mouth:"
"And
how is this all supposed to help us?" Waxman asked.
Nate
knelt and pawed through the decaying leaves at the base of the tree.
"Copal is rich in hydrocarbons. In fact, there has been some research
recently into using it as a fuel source. Copal poured into a regular engine
will run cleaner and more efficiently than gasoline." Nate found what he
was searching for. "But Indians have known of this property for
ages:"
Standing,
Nate revealed a fist-sized hardened lump of sap. He speared it atop a sharp
stick like a marshmallow. "Can I borrow a match?"
Captain
Waxman removed one from a waterproof container.
Nate
struck the matchhead on the bark and held the flame to a corner of the resin
ball. Immediately it ignited into a bright blue flame. He held it out and
marched toward the site of the failed campfire. "Indian hunters have been
using this sap for centuries to light campfires during rainstorms. It'll burn
for hours, acting as a starter to light wet wood."
Other
eyes were drawn to the flame. Frank and Kelly joined the group as Nate settled
the flaming resin ball into a nest of leaves and twigs. In a short time, the
tinder and wood took the flame. A decent blaze arose.
"Good
job," Frank said, warming his hands.
Nate
found Kelly staring at him with a trace of a smile. It was her first smile in
the past twenty-four hours.
Nate
cleared his throat. "Don't thank me," he mumbled. "Thank the
Indians:"
"We
may be able to do just that," Kouwe said suddenly from behind them.
Everyone
turned.
The
professor and Corporal Jorgensen crossed quickly toward them.
"We
found a village," Jorgensen said, his eyes wide. He pointed in the
direction that the pair had gone in search of foodstuffs. "Only a quarter
mile upstream. It's deserted:"
"Or
appears to be," Kouwe said, staring significantly at Nate.
Nate's
eyes grew wide. Were these the same Indians who had been secretly dogging their
trail? Hope surged in Nate. With the rainstorm, he had been worried that any
trail left by Gerald Clark would be washed away. This storm was but the first
to mark the beginning of the Amazonian wet season. Time grew short. But now . .
.
"We
should investigate immediately," Captain Waxman said. "But first, I
want a three-man Ranger team to recon the village:"
Kouwe
raised an arm. "It might be better if we approached less aggressively. By
now, the Indians know we're here. I believe that's why the village is
deserted:"
Captain
Waxman opened his mouth to disagree, but Frank held up a hand. "What do
you suggest?"
Kouwe
nodded to Nate. "Let the two of us go first . . . alone:'
"Certainly
not!" Waxman blurted. "I won't have you going in unprotected:"
Frank
took off his Red Sox cap and wiped his brow. "I think we should listen to
the professor. Swarming in with heavily armed soldiers will only make the
Indians fear us. We need their cooperation. But at the same time, I share
Captain Waxman's concern about the two of you going in on your own.
"Then
only one Ranger;" Nate said. "And he keeps his gun on his shoulder.
Though these Indians may be isolated, most are well aware of rifles:'
"I'd
like to go, too," Anna Fong said. The anthropologist's long black hair lay
plastered to her face and shoulders. "A woman among the group may appear
less hostile. Indian raiding parties don't bring women with them:"
Nate
nodded. "Dr. Fong is right:"
Captain
Waxman scowled, clearly not keen on letting civilians lead the way into an
unknown encampment.
"Then
perhaps I should be the one to go as their backup:' Gazes turned to Private
Camera, the female Ranger. She was strikingly beautiful, a dark-skinned Latina
with short-cropped black hair. She faced Captain Waxman. "Sir, if women
are viewed as less hostile, I would be best suited for this mission:"
Waxman
finally agreed grudgingly. "Fine. I'll trust Professor Kouwe's assessment
for now. But I want the rest of my forces set within a hundred yards of their
position. And I want constant radio contact:"
Frank
glanced to Nate and Kouwe.
They
nodded.
Satisfied,
Frank cleared his throat. "Then let's move:"
Kelly
watched the camp fracture into various units. Nate, Kouwe, Anna Fong, and
Private Camera were already motoring their pontoon boat into the current, while
Captain Waxman selected three of his men and led them to a second rubber
raider. They would paddle a hundred yards behind the first boat, keeping a safe
distance away yet close enough for a rapid response. Additionally, three more
Rangers would travel overland with Corporal Jorgensen in command. This team
would take up a position a hundred yards from the village. In preparation, they
painted their faces in jungle camouflage.
Manny
had attempted to join this last party, but he'd been rebuffed by Captain
Waxman. "All other civilians stay here."
With
the matter settled, Kelly could only watch as the others set off. Two
Rangers-the newly arrived Private Eddie Jones and Corporal Tom Graves-remained
at the camp as bodyguards. Once the others were launched and on their way,
Kelly overheard Jones grumble to Graves, "How did we end up minding the
friggin' sheep?"
Corporal
Graves did not respond, staring dully into the drizzle, clearly grieving for
his brother Rodney.
Alone
now, Kelly crossed to Frank's side. As the nominal leader of this operation,
her brother had the right to insist on joining either of the departing groups,
but he had chosen to remain behind-not out of fear, she knew, but concern for
his twin sister.
"Olin
has the satellite link hooked up," Frank said, taking his sister under his
arm. "We can reach the States when you're ready."
She
nodded. Not far from the fire, under a rain tarp, Olin sat hunched before a
laptop and a satellite dish. He tapped busily at the keyboard, his face
scrunched in concentration. Richard Zane stood over his shoulder watching him
work.
Finally,
Olin glanced to them and nodded. "All set," he said. Kelly heard the
trace of his Russian accent. It was easy to miss unless one's ears were tuned
for it. Olin was ex-KGB, once a member of their computer surveillance
department before the fall of the communist regime. He had defected to the
States only months before the Berlin Wall tumbled. His background in technology
and his knowledge of Russian systems earned him a low-level security position
in the CIAs Directorate of Science and Technology.
Frank
guided Kelly to a camp chair before the laptop computer. Since learning of the
contagion, Kelly had insisted they be updated twice daily now. Her excuse was
to keep both sides fully apprised, but in reality, she had to know her family
was still okay. Her mother, her father, her daughter. All three were at ground
zero.
Kelly
sat on the camp chair, eyeing Olin askance as he moved aside. She was never
fully at ease around the man. Maybe because he was ex-KGB and she had grown up
with a father in the CIA. Or maybe it was that ropy scar that stretched from
ear to ear across his throat. Olin had claimed to be no more than a Russian
computer geek for the KGB. But if that were true, how had he obtained that
scar?
Olin
pointed to the screen. "We should be uplinked in thirty seconds:"
Kelly
watched the small timer on the computer screen count downward. When it reached
zero, her father's face blinked onto the screen. He was dressed casually, his
tie half undone, no jacket.
"You
look like a drowned rat" were his first words from the flickering image.
With a
small smile, Kelly lifted a hand to her wet hair. "The rains have started:"
"So
I see:" Her father returned her grin. "How are things out
there?"
Frank
leaned forward into the view. He gave a quick overview of their discovery.
As he
talked, Kelly listened to the echoing whine of Nate's boat. The waters here and
the overhanging jungle played tricks with acoustics. It sounded like the boat
was still nearby, but then the noise suddenly choked off. They must have
reached the village already.
"Watch
out for your sister, Frank," her father said, finishing their talk.
"Will
do, sir:"
Now it
was Kelly's turn. "How're Mother and Jessie?" she asked, holding her
fists clenched in her lap.
Her
father smiled reassuringly. "Both in the pink of health. We all are. The
entire institute. So far no cases have been reported in the area. Any risk of
contamination has been successfully quarantined, and we've converted the west
wing of the institute into temporary family housing. With so many MEDEA members
here, we've got around-the-clock doctors:'
"How's
Jessie handling it?"
"She's
a six-year-old," he said with a shrug. "At first she was a bit scared
at being uprooted. But now she's having a ball with the other staff's children.
In fact, why don't you ask her yourself?"
Kelly
sat straighter as her daughter's face came into view, a small hand waving.
"Hi, Mommy!"
Tears
welled. "Hi, sweetheart. Are you having fun?"
Her
daughter nodded vigorously, climbing into her grandfather's lap. "We had
chocolate cake, and I rode a pony!"
Choking
back a laugh, her father spoke over the top of his granddaughter's head.
"There's a small farm nearby, in the quarantine zone. They brought a pony
over to entertain the kids:"
"That
sounds like fun, honey. I wish I could've been there."
Jessie
squirmed in her seat. "And you know what else? A clown is coming over and
is gonna make animal balloons:"
"A
clown?"
Her
father whispered to the side. "Dr. Emory from histopathology. He's damn
good at it, too:"
"I'm
gonna ask him to make me a monkey," Jessie said.
"That's
wonderful:" Kelly leaned closer, soaking up the view of both her father
and her daughter.
After
a bit more elaboration on clowns and ponies, Jessie was lifted off her
grandfather's knee. "It's time for Ms. Gramercy to take you back to
class:"
Jessie
pouted but obeyed.
"Bye,
honey," Kelly called. "I love you!"
She
waved again, using her entire arm. "Bye, Mommy! Bye, Uncle Frankie!"
Kelly
had to restrain herself from touching the screen.
Once
Jessie was gone, her father's face grew grim. "Not all the news is so
bright:"
"What?"
Kelly asked.
"It's
why your mother isn't here. While we seem to have things contained, the
outbreak in Florida is spreading. Overnight, there's been another six cases
reported in Miami hospitals, and another dozen in outlying county hospitals.
The quarantine zone is being widened, but we don't think we secured the area in
time. Your mother and others are monitoring reports from across the country."
"My
God," Kelly gasped.
"In
the last twelve hours, the number of cases has now climbed to twenty-two. The
fatalities to eight. Scenarios calculated by the best epidemiologists in the
country have these numbers doubling every twelve hours. In fact, along the
Amazon, the death toll is already climbing toward the five hundred mark."
As
Kelly calculated in her head, her face blanched. Frank's hand on her shoulder
tightened. In just a few days, the number in the U.S. could climb into the tens
of thousands.
"The
president has just signed an order to mobilize the National Guard in Florida.
The official story is an outbreak of a virulent South American flu. Specifics
on how it got here are being kept under wraps:"
Kelly
leaned back, as if distance would lessen the horror. "Has any protocol for
treatment been established?"
"Not
as of yet. Antibiotics and antivirals don't seem to be of any help. All we can
offer is symptomatic care-intravenous fluids, drugs to combat fever, and pain
relievers. Until we know what is causing the disease, fighting it's an uphill
battle:" Her father leaned closer to the screen. "That's why your
work out in the field is so critical. If you can find out what happened to
Agent Clark, you may discover a clue to this disease:"
Kelly
nodded.
Frank
spoke, his voice a hoarse whisper. "We'll do our best:"
"Then
I'd better let you all get back to your work:" After a sober goodbye, her
father signed off.
Kelly
glanced to her brother. She saw that Manny stood to one side of him, Richard
Zane to the other.
"What
have we done?" Manny asked. "Maybe someone should have listened to
that Indian shaman back in Wauwai. Burned Clark's body after he died:"
Zane
shook his head and mumbled, "It wouldn't have mattered. The disease
would've eventually broken out of the forest. It's just like AIDS:"
"What
do you mean?" Kelly asked, turning in her seat.
"AIDS
started after a highway was built into the African jungle. We come disturbing
these ancient ecosystems, and we don't know what we stir up:"
Kelly
pushed out of the camp chair. "Then it's up to us to stop it. The jungle
may have produced AIDS, but it also offered our best treatments against the
disease. Seventy percent of AIDS drugs are derived from tropical plants. So if
this new disease came out of the jungle, why not the cure, too?"
"That's
if we can find it," Zane said.
Off to
the side, Manny's jaguar suddenly growled. The great cat swung around and crouched,
ears pricked, eyes fixed on the jungle behind them.
"What's
wrong with him?" Zane asked, backing a step away.
Manny
squinted at the shadowed rain forest as Tor-tor continued a deep warning growl.
"He's caught a scent . . . something's out there:"
Nate
crossed down the narrow trail toward the small Indian village, which consisted
of a single large roundhouse, open to the sky in the middle. As he approached
the structure, he heard none of the usual noises coming from the shabuno. No
arguing huyas, no women yelling for more plantains, no laughter of children. It
was ghostly quiet and unnerving.
"The
construction is definitely Yanomamo," Nathan said softly to Kouwe and Anna
Fong. "But small. It probably houses no more than thirty villagers:"
Behind
them marched Private Camera, her M-16 held in both hands, muzzle pointed at the
ground. She was whispering into her radio's microphone.
Anna
stared wide-eyed at the shabano.
Nate
stopped her from continuing through the roundhouse's small doorway and into the
village proper. "Have you ever been among the Yanomamo?"
Anna
shook her head.
Nate
cupped his mouth. "Klock, klock, klock," he yelled. Then softer to
Anna, he explained, "Whether it seems deserted or not, you never approach
a Yanomamo village without first announcing yourself. It's a good way to get an
arrow in your back. They have the tendency to shoot first and ask questions
later."
"Nothing
wrong with that policy," Camera mumbled behind him.
They
stood near the entrance for a full minute, then Kouwe spoke. "No one's
here:" He waved an arm behind him. "No canoes by the river, no nets
or fishing gear either. No yebis squawking in alarm."
"Yebis?"
their Ranger escort asked.
"The
gray-winged trumpeter," Nate said. "Sort of an ugly chicken really.
The Indians use them like feathered guard dogs. They raise a ruckus when anyone
approaches:"
The
Ranger nodded. "So no chickens, no Indians:" She turned in a slow
circle, surveying the forest around them. The woman refused to let down her
guard. "Let me go first:"
Lifting
her weapon higher, she paused near the short entrance. Bowing low, she ducked
her head through. After a moment, she slid through the bamboo-framed entrance,
sticking close to the banana-leaf wall, then barked to them, "All clear.
But stick behind me:"
Camera
moved toward the center of the circular structure. She kept her weapon ready,
but as Nate had suggested, she kept the rifle's muzzle pointing at the ground.
Among the Yanomamo, an arrow nocked and aimed at a fellow tribesman was a call
to war. Since Nate didn't know how familiar these particular Indians were with
modern weapons, he wanted no misinterpretations on this point.
As a
group, Nate, Kouwe, and Anna entered the shabano.
Around
them, the individual family units were sectioned off from their neighbors by
drapes of tobacco leaves, water gourds, and baskets. Woven hammocks, all empty,
hung from the roof beams. A pair of stone bowls lay toppled in the central
clearing beside a grinding stone, manioc flour spilled onto the dirt.
A sudden
burst of color startled them all as a parrot took wing. It had been roosting
atop a pile of brown bananas.
"I
don't like this," Kouwe said.
Nate
knew what he meant and nodded.
"Why?"
asked Camera.
"When
the Yanomamo migrate to a new site, they either burn the old shabano or at
least strip it of all useful items:' Kouwe pointed around him. "Look at
all these baskets, hammocks, and feather collections. They wouldn't leave these
behind."
"What
could make them leave so suddenly?" Anna asked.
Kouwe
slowly shook his head. "Something must have panicked them."
"Us?"
Anna stared around her. "Do you think they knew we were coming?"
"If
the Indians had been here, I'm sure they would've been well aware of our
approach. They keep a keen watch on their forest. But I don't think it was our
party that made them abandon this shabano so quickly"
"Why
do you say that?" Nate asked.
Kouwe
crossed around the edge of the living sites. "All the fires are
cold." He nudged the pile of bananas upon which the parrot had been
feeding. "They're half rotten. The Yanomamo would not have wasted food
like this:"
Nate
understood. "So you think the village was abandoned some time ago:"
"At
least a week, I'd estimate:"
"Where
did they go?" Anna asked.
Kouwe
stood in place and turned in a slow circle. "It's hard to say, but there's
one other detail that may be significant:" He glanced to Nate to see if he
had noticed it, too.
Frowning,
Nate studied the dwellings. Then it dawned on him. "All the weapons are
gone:" Among the abandoned wares, there was not a single arrow, bow, club,
or machete.
"Whatever
spooked them to run," Kouwe said, "they were scared for their
lives:"
Private
Camera edged closer to them. "If you're right, if this place is long
deserted, I should call in my unit."
Kouwe
nodded.
She
stepped away, mumbling into her radio.
Kouwe
silently waved Nate aside so they could speak privately. Anna was busy
examining an individual dwelling, picking through the goods left behind.
Kouwe
whispered. "It was not these Yanomamo who were tracking our party."
"Then
who?"
"Some
other group . . . I'm still not sure it was even Indians. I think it's time we
informed Frank and Captain Waxman.''
"Are
you thinking that whatever spooked the Indians is what's now on our trail?"
"I'm
not sure, but whatever could frighten the Yanomamo from their homes is
something we should be wary of."
By
now, the constant drizzle had stopped. The cloud banks began to break apart,
allowing cracks of afternoon sunlight to pierce through in dazzling rays. After
so long in the misty murk, the light was bright.
In the
distance, Nate heard a single engine roar to life. Captain Waxman and his
Rangers were coming.
"You're
certain we should tell them?" Nate asked.
Before
Kouwe could answer, Anna had wandered over. She pointed to the skies off to the
south. "Look at all those birds!"
Nate
glanced to where she pointed. With the rains dying away, various birds were
rising from the canopy to dry their wings and begin the hunt for food again.
But a half mile away, a huge flock of black birds rose from the canopy like a
dark mist. Thousands of them.
Oh,
God. Nate crossed quickly to Private Camera. "Let me have your
binoculars:"
The
Ranger's eyes were on the strange dance of black birds, too. She unsnapped a
compact set of binoculars from her field jacket and passed them to Nate.
Holding his breath, he peered through the glasses. It took him a moment to
focus on the birds. Through the lenses, the flock broke down to individuals, a
mix of large and small birds. Many were fighting among themselves in the air,
tearing at each other. But despite their differences, the various birds all
shared one common trait.
"Vultures,"
Nate said, lowering the binoculars.
Kouwe
edged nearer. "So many . . :'
"Turkey
vultures, yellow-heads, even king vultures:"
"We
should investigate," Kouwe said. In his eyes, Nate saw the worry shared by
all. The missing Indians . . . the vultures. . . It was a dire omen.
"Not
until the unit gets here," Private Camera warned.
Behind
them, the roaring of the other boat drew abreast of their location and choked
out. In a few minutes, Captain Waxman and another three Rangers were entering
the shabano. Private Camera quickly updated the others.
"I've
sent the Rangers stationed in the woods back to camp," Captain Waxman
said. "They'll gather everyone here. In the meantime, we'll scout what
lies out there:" He pointed to three of his unit: Private Camera, Corporal
Conger, and Staff Sergeant Kostos.
"I'd
like to go with them;" Nate said. "I know this jungle better than
anyone.
After
a short pause, Captain Waxman sighed. "So you've proven:" He waved
them off. "Keep in radio contact:"
As
they left, Nate heard Kouwe approach Waxman. "Captain, there is something
I think you should be made aware of . . :"
Nate ducked
out of the shabano's low door, glad to escape. He imagined Captain Waxman would
not be pleased that he and Kouwe had kept hushed about the nighttime prowlers
around their campsites. Nate was more than happy to leave such explanations to
the diplomatic professor.
Out in
the woods, the two men, Conger and Kostos, took the point, leaving Private
Camera to dog Nate's steps and maintain a rear guard.
They
half trotted through the wet woods, careful of the slippery mud and dense
layers of sodden leaves. A small stream that drained toward the river behind
them seemed to be heading in the same direction. They found an old game trail
paralleling it and made better time.
Nate
noticed footprints along the trail. Old prints almost obscured by the rain.
Barefooted. He pointed one out to Private Carrera. "The Indians must've
fled this way."
She
nodded and waved him onward.
Nate
pondered this oddity. If panicked, why flee on foot? Why not use the river?
The
scouting party climbed the trail, following the streambed. Despite the hard
pace, Nate kept up with the Rangers in the lead. The forest around than was
unusually quiet, almost hushed. It was eerie, and suddenly Nate regretted
leaving his shotgun back at camp.
So
occupied was he with keeping his footing and watching for any hidden dangers
that Nate almost missed it. He stumbled to a stop with a gasp.
Private
Camera almost collided into him. "Damn it. Give some warning.
The
other two Rangers, failing to notice the pair had halted, continued up the
trail.
"Need
a rest?" Camera asked with a bit of playful disdain.
"No,"
Nate said, panting heavily to catch his breath. "Look:"
Soaked
and pinned to a small branch was a scrap of faded yellow material. It was
small, half the size of a standard playing card and roughly square. Nathan
pulled it free.
"What
is it?" Camera peered over his shoulder. "Something from the Indians?"
"No,
not likely." He fingered the material. "It's polyester, I think. A
synthetic:" He checked the branch upon which the scrap had been impaled.
The thin limb had been cut, not naturally broken. As he examined the end, crude
markings on the tree's trunk caught his attention. "What's this?"
He
reached and brushed rainwater from the trunk. "My God. . :'
"What?"
Nathan
stood clear so his escort could see. Deeply inscribed into the bark of the
tree's trunk was a coded message.
Private
Camera whistled appreciatively and leaned closer. "This G and C near the
bottom. . :"
"Gerald
Clark;" Nathan finished her thought. "He signed it. The arrow must
indicate where he had come from . . . or at least where his next marker might
lie:"
Camera
checked her wrist compass. "Southwest. It's pointing the right way."
"But
what about the numbers? Seventeen and five:"
The
Ranger scrunched up her face. "Maybe a date, done the military way. The
day, followed by the month:"
"That
would make it May seventeenth? That's nearly three months ago:" Turning,
Nate started to question her assessment, but Camera had a palm raised toward
him. Her other hand pressed her radio earpiece more firmly in place.
She
spoke into her radio. "Roger that. We're on our way."
Nate
raised an inquiring eyebrow.
"Conger
and Kostos," she said. "They've found bodies ahead."
Nate
felt a sickening lurch in his belly.
"Come
on," Camera said stiffly. "They want your opinion:"
Nodding,
Nate continued up the trail. Behind him, as they marched, Private Camera
reported their discovery to her captain.
As
Nate hurried, he glanced down and realized he still held the bit of faded
yellow material. He remembered Gerald Clark had stumbled out of the jungle
barefoot, wearing only pants. Had the man used the scraps of his own shirt to
flag these sites? Like a trail of bread crumbs back to wherever he had come
from?
Nate
rubbed the bit of cloth between his fingers. After four years, here was the
first tangible bit of proof that at least some of his father's team had
survived. Up to this point, Nate had not entertained any hope that his father
was still alive. In fact, he had refused even to contemplate that possibility,
not after so long, not after coming to some semblance of peace with his
father's death. The pain of losing his father a second time would be more than
he could handle. Nate stared at the scrap in his hand for a second longer, then
stuffed it into a pocket.
As he
trekked up the trail, he wondered if there were more such flags out there.
Though he had no way of knowing, Nate knew one thing for certain. He would not
stop looking, not until he discovered the truth of his father's fate.
Camera
swore behind him.
Nathan
glanced back. Camera had an arm over her nose and mouth. Only then did Nate
notice the stench in the air. Rancid meat and offal.
"Over
here!" a voice called out. It was Staff Sergeant Kostos. The older Ranger
stood only ten yards farther down the trail. In full camouflage, he blended
well with the dappled background.
Nate
crossed to him and was immediately assaulted by a horrible sight.
"Jesus
Christ," Camera gasped behind him.
Corporal
Conger, the young Texan, was farther down the trail, a handkerchief over his
face, in the thick of the slaughterhouse. He waved off vultures with his M-16
as swarms of flies rose around him.
Bodies
lay sprawled everywhere: on the trail, in the woods, some draped halfway in the
stream. Men, women, children. All Indians from the look of them, but it was
difficult to say for sure. Faces had been chewed away, limbs gnawed to bone,
entrails ripped from bellies. The carrion feeders had made quick work of the
bodies, leaving the rest to flies, other insects, and burrowing worms. Only the
diminutive sizes of the corpses suggested they were Yanomamo, the missing
villagers. And from the number, probably the entire village.
Nathan
closed his eyes. He pictured the villagers with whom he had worked in the past:
little Tama, noble Takaho. With a sudden burst, he rushed off the trail and
hunched over the stream. He breathed deeply, fighting in vain the rising gorge.
With a sickening groan, his stomach spasmed. Bile splattered into the flowing
water, swelled by the recent rains. Nate remained crouched, hands on his knees,
breathing hard.
Kostos
barked behind him. "We don't have all day, Rand. What do you think
happened here? An attack by another tribe?"
Nate
could not move, not trusting his stomach.
Private
Camera joined him, placing a sympathetic hand on his shoulder. "The sooner
we get this done," she said softly, "the sooner we can leave:"
Nathan
nodded, took a final deep breath, and forced himself to climb back within view
of the slaughter. He studied the area from a few steps away, then moved closer.
"What
do you think?" Camera asked.
Gulping
back bile, Nate spoke quietly. "They must've fled during the night."
"Why
do you say that?" Kostos asked.
Nate
glanced to the sergeant, then nudged a stick near one of the corpses. "A
torch. Burned to char at the end. The village took flight in full
darkness:" He studied the bodies, recognizing a pattern to the carnage. He
pointed an arm as he spoke. "When the attack came, the men tried to
protect the women and children. When they failed, the women were a second line
of defense. They tried to run with the children:" Nate indicated a woman's
corpse deeper in the woods. In her arms rested a dead child. He turned away.
"The
attack came from across the stream," Nate continued. His hand shook as he
pointed to the number of male bodies piled near or in the stream. "They
must have been caught by surprise. Too late to put up an adequate defense."
"I
don't care in what order they were killed," Kostos said. "Who the
hell killed them?"
"I
don't know," Nate said. "None of the bodies are pierced by arrows or
spears. But then again, the enemy might have collected their weapons after the
attack-to conserve their arsenal and to leave no evidence behind. With the
bodies so torn apart, it's impossible to tell which wounds are from weapons and
which from the carrion feeders."
"So
in other words, you have no damn clue:" Kostos shook his head and swung
around. From a few steps away, he spoke into his radio.
Nate
wiped his damp forehead and shivered. What the hell had happened here?
Finally,
Kostos stepped forward, raising his voice. "New orders everyone. We're to
collect a body for Dr. O'Brien to examine-one that's chewed up the least-and
return it to the village. Any volunteers?"
No one
answered, which earned a mean snicker from the sergeant. "Okay,"
Kostos said. "I didn't think so." He pointed to Private Camera.
"Why don't you take our fragile little doctor back to camp? This is men's
work:"
"Yes,
sir." Camera waved Nate to the path, and together they continued down
toward the village. Once out of earshot, Camera grumbled under her breath.
"What an asshole. . :"
Nate
nodded, but truthfully, he was only too glad to leave the massacre site. He
couldn't care less what Sergeant Kostos might think. But he understood Camera's
anger. Nate could only imagine the hassles the woman had to endure from the
all-male force.
The
remainder of the journey down the trail was made in silence. As they neared the
shabano, voices could be heard. Nathan's pace quickened. It would be good to be
among the living again. He hoped someone had thought to light a fire.
Circling
around the shabano, Nathan approached Private Eddie Jones, who stood guard by
the entrance. Beyond him, limned against the water, a pair of Rangers was
posted by the river.
As he
and Camera reached the roundhouse's door, Eddie Jones greeted them and blurted
out the news. "Hey, you guys ain't gonna fuckin' believe what we fished
out of the jungle:'
"What?"
Camera asked.
Jones
thrust a thumb toward the door. "Go see for yourselves:"
Camera
waved her rifle's barrel for Nate to go first.
Within
the shabano, a small congregation was clustered in the roundhouse's open
central yard. Manny stood somewhat to the side with Tor-tor. He lifted an arm
when he spotted Nate, but there was no greeting smile.
The
voices from the others were raised in argument.
"He's
my prisoner!" Captain Waxman boomed. He stood with three Rangers, who all
had their weapons on their shoulders pointing at someone out of sight behind
the group of civilians.
"At
least remove the cuffs on his wrists," Kelly argued. "His ankles are
still bound. He's just an old man."
"If
you want cooperation," Kouwe added, "this is no way to go about it:"
"He'll
answer our questions," Waxman said with clear menace.
Frank
stepped in front of Waxman. "This is still my operation, Captain. And I
won't tolerate abuse of this prisoner:"
By
now, Nate had crossed the yard and joined them. Anna Fong glanced to him, her
eyes scared.
Richard
Zane stood slightly to the side, a satisfied smirk on his face. He nodded to
Nathan. "We caught him lurking in the jungle. Manny's big cat helped hunt
him down. You should have heard him screaming when the jaguar had him pinned
against a tree:"
Zane
stepped aside, and Nate saw who had been captured. The small Indian lay in the
dirt, his ankles and wrists bound in strips of thick plastic zip lies. His
shoulder-length white hair clearly marked him as an elder. He sat before the
others, mumbling under his breath. His eyes flicked between the rifles pointed
at him and Tor-tor pacing nearby.
Nate
listened to his muttered words. Yanomamo. He moved closer. It was a shamanic
prayer, a warding against evil. Nate realized the prisoner must be a shaman.
Was he from this village? A survivor of the slaughter?
The
Indian's eyes suddenly flicked to Nate, his nostrils flaring. "Death
clings to you," he warned, in his native dialect. "You know. You
saw."
Nate
realized the man must smell the stench of the massacre on his clothes and skin.
He knelt nearer and spoke in Yanomamo. "Haya. Grandfather. Who are you?
Are you from this village?"
He
shook his head with a deep scowl. "This village is marked by shawari. Evil
spirits. I came here to deliver myself to the Ban-ali. But I was too
late:"
Around
Nate, the arguing had stopped as they watched the exchange. Kelly whispered
behind him. "He's not spoken a word to anyone, not even Professor Kouwe:"
"Why
do you seek the Blood Jaguars, the Ban-ali?"
"To
save my own village. We did not heed their ways. We did not burn the body of
the nabe, the white man marked as a slave of the Ban-ali. Now all our children
sicken with evil magic:"
Nate
suddenly understood. The white man marked by the Ban-ali had to be Gerald
Clark. If so, that meant . . . "You're from Wauwai."
He
nodded and spit into the dirt. "Curse that name. Curse the day we ever set
foot in that nabe village:"
Nate
realized this was the shaman who had tried to heal the sick mission children,
then burned their village down in an attempt to protect the others. But by his
own admission, the shaman must have failed. The contagion was still spreading
through the Yanomamo children.
"Why
come here? How did you get here?"
"I
followed the nabe's tracks to his canoe. I saw how it was painted. I know he came
from this village, and I know the trails here. I came to seek the Ban-ali. To
give myself to them. To beg them to lift their curse:'
Nate
leaned back. The shaman, in his guilt, had come to sacrifice himself.
"But
I was too late. I find only one woman still alive:" He glanced toward the
site of the massacre. "I give her water, and she tells me the tale of her
village:'
Nate
sat up straighter.
"What
is he saying?" Captain Waxman asked.
Nate
waved off his question. "What happened?"
"The
white man was found by hunters three moons ago, sick and bony. They saw his
markings. In terror, they imprisoned the man, fearing he would come to their
village. They stripped him of all his belongings and tethered him in a cage,
deep in the woods, intending to leave him for the Blood Jaguars to collect. The
hunters fed and cared for him, fearing to harm what belonged to the Ban-ali.
But the nabe continued to sicken. Then, a moon later, one of the hunter's sons
grew ill:'
Nate
nodded. The contagious disease had spread.
"The
shaman here declared them cursed and demanded the death of the nabe. They would
burn his body to appease the wrath of the Ban-ali. But that morning when the
hunters reached the cage, he was gone. They thought the Ban-ali had claimed him
and were relieved. Only later that day would they discover one of their canoes
was missing. But by then it was too late:"
The
Indian grew quiet. "Over the next days, the hunter's child died, and more
in the village grew ill. Then a week ago, a woman returning from gathering
bananas from the garden found a marking on the outer wall of the shabano. No
one knew how it got there:" The Indian nodded to the southwest section of
the roundhouse. "It is still there. The mark of the Ban-ali:"
Nate
stopped the story and turned to the others. He quickly recounted what the
Indian shaman had told him. Their eyes grew wide with the telling. Afterward,
Captain Waxman sent Jorgensen to check that section of the outer wall.
As
they waited for him to return, Nate convinced Captain Waxman to slice the wrist
bindings off the prisoner. He agreed, since the man was clearly cooperating.
The shaman now sat in the dirt with a canteen in hand, sipping from it
gratefully.
Kelly
knelt beside Nathan. "His story makes a certain sense from a medical standpoint.
The tribe, when they kept Clark isolated in the jungle, almost succeeded in
quarantining him. But as Clark's disease progressed, either the man became more
contagious . . . or perhaps the hunter, whose son got sick, had somehow
contaminated himself. Either way, the disease leaped here:"
"And
the tribe panicked:"
Behind
them, Jorgensen ducked back into the shabano, his face grim. "The old
guy's right. There's a scrawled drawing on the wall. Just like the tattoo on
Agent Clark's body." His nose curled in distaste. "But the damn thing
smells like it was drawn with pig shit or something. Stinks something
fierce."
Frank
frowned and turned back to Nate. "See if you can find out what else the
shaman knows:"
Nate
nodded and turned back to the shaman. "After finding the symbol, what
happened?"
The
shaman scrunched up his face. "The tribe fled that same night . . . but .
. . but something came for them:"
"What?"
The
Indian frowned. "The woman who spoke to me was near to death. Her words
began to wander. Something about the river coming to eat them. They lied, but
it followed them up the little stream and caught them:"
"What?
What caught them? The Ban-ali?"
The
shaman gulped from the canteen. "No, that's not what the woman said."
"Then
what?"
The
shaman stared Nate in the eye to show he spoke truthfully. "The jungle.
She said the jungle rose out of the river and attacked them:"
Nathan
frowned.
The
shaman shrugged. "I know no more. The cursed woman died, and her spirit
went to join her tribe. The next day, this day, I hear you coming up the river.
I go to see who you are:' He glanced over to Manny's jaguar. "But I am
found. Death scent clings to me, like it does to you:"
Nathan
sat back on his heels. He stared over at Manny. The biologist had Tor-tor on a
leash, but the cat was clearly agitated, pacing around and around with his
hackles raised. Spooked.
Kouwe
finished translating for the others. "That's all he knows:"
Waxman
waved for Jorgensen to slice the shaman's ankle restraints, too.
"What
do you make of his story?" Kelly asked, still kneeling at his side.
"I
don't know," he mumbled, picturing the spread of bodies up the trail. He
had thought something had attacked from the stream's far side, but if the
woman's story was true, the attack had come from the stream itself.
Kouwe
joined them. "The story is consistent with the myths of the Ban-ali.
They're said to be able to bend the very jungle to their will:"
"But
what could come from the river and kill all those tribesmen?" Kelly asked.
Kouwe
slowly shook his head. "I can't even imagine:"
A
commotion near the shabano's door drew their attention. Staff Sergeant Kostos
pushed inside, dragging a travois behind him. A dead body lay atop it. One of
the massacred.
Behind
them, the shaman let out a piercing cry.
Nate
swung around.
The
Indian, his eyes wide with terror, backed away. "Do not bring the cursed
here! You will call the Ban-ali upon us!"
Jorgensen
tried to restrain the man, but even at his age, the Indian was wiry with
muscle. He slipped out of the Ranger's grip, fled to one of the dwellings,
then, using a hammock as a ladder, scrambled to the encircling roof of the
shabano.
One of
the Rangers raised his rifle.
"Don't
shoot!" Nathan called.
"Lower
your weapon, Corporal," Waxman ordered.
The
shaman paused atop the roof and turned to them. "The dead belong to the
Ban-ali! They will come to collect what is theirs!" With these final
words, the shaman dove off the roof and into the surrounding jungle.
"Go
fetch him," Waxman ordered two of the Rangers.
"They'll
never find him," Kouwe said. "As scared as he is, he'll vanish into
these jungles:"
The
professor's words proved prophetic. The Yanomamo shaman was never found. As
afternoon closed toward evening, Kelly ensconced herself in a corner of the
shabano and worked to discover what had killed the tribesman. Nate took Captain
Waxman and Frank over to the tree with the carved directions left behind by
Gerald Clark.
"He
must have written this just before being captured," Frank said. "How
awful. He was so close to reaching civilization, then was captured and
imprisoned:" Frank shook his head. "For almost three months."
As
they returned to the shabano, the rest of the team prepared to set up for the
night: lighting fires, setting up guard shifts, preparing food. The plan
tomorrow was to leave the river and to begin the overland journey, following
Gerald Clark's trail.
With
the sun setting and a meal of fish and rice being prepared, Kelly finally left
her makeshift morgue. She settled to a camp chair with a long, tired sigh and
stared into the flames as she gave her report. "As near as I can tell, he
was poisoned by something. I found evidence of a convulsive death. Tongue
chewed through, signs of contracted stricture of spine and limbs:"
"What
poisoned him?" Frank asked.
"I'd
need a tox lab to identify it. I couldn't even tell you how it was delivered.
Maybe a poisoned spear, arrow, or dart. The body was too macerated by the
carrion feeders to judge adequately."
Watching
the sun set, Nate listened as the discussions continued. He remembered the
words of the vanished shaman-they will come to collect what is theirs-and
pondered the massacre up the nearby trail and the disease spreading here and
through the States. As he did so, Nate could not escape the sinking sensation
that time was running out for them all.
CHAPTER
NINE
Night
Attack
AUGUST
14, 12:1 B A.M.
AMAZON
JUNGLE
Kelly
woke from a nightmare, bolting up from her hammock. She didn't remember the
specifics of her dream, only a vague sense of corpses and a chase. She checked
her watch. The glowing dial put the time after midnight.
All
around the shabano, most of the others were asleep. A single Ranger stood by
the fire; his partner was guarding the door. Kelly knew another pair patrolled
outside the roundhouse. Otherwise, the rest were snuggled in their hammocks
after the long, horrible day.
It was
no surprise she had nightmares: the massacre, the ravaged body she had
examined, the ongoing tension. All of it overshadowed by the everpresent fear
for her family back in Virginia. Her subconscious had plenty of fodder to mull
through during her REM sleep.
Yesterday's
evening report from the States had not been any cheerier than the lunchtime
update. Another twelve cases had been reported in the U.S., and another three
deaths-two children and an elderly matron from Palm Beach. Meanwhile, across
the Amazon basin, disease and death were spreading like fire through dry
tinder. People were barricading themselves indoors or leaving cities. Bodies were
being burned in the streets of Manaus.
Kelly's
mother had reported that so far no cases had yet arisen among the research team
at Instar. But it was too soon to say they were out of the woods. The newest
data, gathered mostly from cases in the Amazon, where the disease had a longer
track record, suggested that the incubation period could be as short as three
days or as long as seven. It all depended on the initial health of the victim.
Children with poorer nutrition or parasitic conditions became sick faster.
As to
the cause of the disease, a bacterial pathogen had been firmly ruled out by the
CDC, but various viral assays were still continuing. So far, the culprit had
not yet been identified.
Still,
even as grim as the report was, there was worse news. Her mother had looked
pale as she had spoken over the satellite link. "We now know that the
transmission of the disease can be strictly airborne. It does not require
physical contact:" Kelly knew what this meant. With such ease of
transmission, a pathogen like this was one of the hardest to quarantine. And
with the mortality rates so high . . .
"There's
only one hope," her mother had said at the end. "We need a cure:'
Kelly
reached to her canteen beside her hammock and took a long slow drink. She sat
for a moment and knew sleep would not come. Moving quietly, she climbed from
her hammock.
The
guard by the fire noticed her movement and turned toward her. Still in the
clothes she had worn yesterday-a gray T-shirt and brown trousers-she simply
slipped on her boots. She pointed toward the entrance, wanting to stretch her
legs but not wishing to disturb the others sleeping.
The
Ranger nodded.
Kelly
walked quietly to the shabano's entrance. Ducking through, she found Private
Camera standing guard.
"Just
needed some fresh air," Kelly whispered.
The
female Ranger nodded and pointed her weapon toward the river. "You're not
the only one:"
Kelly
saw a figure standing a few yards down the path by the river. From his
silhouette, Kelly knew it was Nathan Rand. He was alone, except for two Rangers
positioned a short distance upriver, easily spotted by their flashlights.
"Keep
a safe distance from the water," Private Camera warned. "We didn't
have enough motion sensors to secure the perimeter and the river:"
"I
will:" Kelly remembered too well what had happened to Corporal DeMartini.
Walking
down the path from the roundhouse, Kelly listened to the jungle hum of locust
song, accompanied by the soft croaking of countless frogs. It was a peaceful
sound. In the distance, fireflies danced in the branches and zipped in graceful
arcs over the river.
The
lone spectator heard Kelly's approach. Nathan turned. He had a cigarette
hanging from his lips, its tip a red spark in the night.
"I
didn't know you smoked," Kelly said, stepping next to him and staring at
the river from atop the bank.
"I
don't," he said with a grin, puffing out a long stream of smoke. "At
least not much. I bummed it from Corporal Conger:" He thumbed in the
direction of the pair on patrol. "Haven't touched one in four or five
months, but . . . I don't know . . . I guess I needed an excuse to come out
here. To be moving:"
"I
know what you mean. I came out here for the proverbial fresh air." She
held out her hand.
He
passed his cigarette.
She
took a deep drag and sighed out the smoke, releasing her tension. "Nothing
like fresh air." She passed the cigarette back to him.
He
took one last puff, then dropped it and stamped it out. "Those things'll
kill you:"
They
stood in silence as the river quietly flowed by. A pair of bats glided over the
water, hunting fish, while somewhere in the distance, a bird cried out a long
mournful note.
"She'll
be okay," Nate finally said, almost a whisper.
Kelly
glanced to him. "What?"
"Jessie,
your daughter . . . she'll be okay."
Stunned
for a moment, Kelly had no breath to reply.
"I'm
sorry," Nate mumbled. "I'm intruding:"
She
touched his elbow. "No, I'm grateful . . . really. I just didn't think my
worry was so plain:"
"You
may be a great physician, but you're a mother first:"
Kelly
remained quiet for a bit, then spoke softly. "It's more than that. Jess is
my only child. The only child I'll ever have:"
"What
do you mean?"
Kelly
couldn't say exactly why she was discussing this with Nate, only that it helped
to voice her fears aloud. "When I gave birth to Jessie, there were
complications . . . and an emergency surgery." She glanced to Nate, then
away. "Afterward, I couldn't bear any more children:"
"I'm
sorry."
She
smiled tiredly. "It was a long time ago. I've come to terms with it. But
now with Jessie threatened . . ."
Nate
sighed and settled to a seat on a fallen log. "I understand all too well.
Here you are in the jungle, worrying about someone you love deeply, but having
to continue on, to be strong:'
Kelly
sank beside him. "Like you, when your father was first lost."
Nate
stared at the river and spoke dully. "And it's not just the worry and
fear. It's guilt, too:"
She
knew exactly what he meant. With Jessie at risk, what was she doing here,
traipsing through the jungle? She should be searching for the first flight
home.
Silence
again fell between them, but it grew too painful.
Kelly
asked a question that had been nagging her since she had first met Nate.
"Why are you here then?"
"What
do you mean?"
"You
lost both your mother and your father to the Amazon. Why come back? Isn't it
too painful?"
Nate
rubbed his palms together, staring down between his toes, silent.
"I'm
sorry. It's none of my business:"
"No,"
he said quickly, glancing to her, then away. "I . . . I was just
regretting stamping out that cigarette. I could use it right now."
She
smiled. "We can change the subject:"
"No,
it's okay. You just caught me by surprise. But your question's hard to answer,
and even harder to put into words." Nate leaned back. "When I lost my
father, when I truly gave up on ever finding him, I did leave the jungle,
vowing to never come back. But in the States, the pain followed me. I tried to
drown it away in alcohol and numb it away with drugs, but nothing worked. Then
a year ago, I found myself on a flight back here. I couldn't say why. I walked
into the airport, bought a ticket at the Varig counter, and before I knew it, I
was landing in Manaus."
Nathan
paused. Kelly heard his breath beside her, heavy and deep, full of emotion. She
tentatively placed a hand on his bare knee. Without speaking, he covered it
with his own palm.
"Once
back in the jungle, I found the pain less to bear, less allconsuming.
"I
don't know. Though my parents died here, they also lived here. This was their true
heartland:" Nate shook his head. "I'm not making any sense:"
"I
think you are. Here is where you still feel the closest to them:"
She
felt Nate stiffen beside her. He remained silent for the longest time.
"Nate?"
His
voice was hoarse. "I couldn't put it into words before. But you're right.
Here in the jungle, they're all around me. Their memories are strongest here.
My mother teaching me how to grind manioc into flour . . . my father teaching
me how to identify trees by their leaves alone . . :" He turned to her,
his eyes bright. "This is my home:"
In his
face, she saw the mix of joy and loss. She found herself leaning closer to him,
drawn by the depth of his emotion. "Nate. . :"
A
small explosion of water startled them both. Only a few yards from the bank, a
narrow geyser shot three feet above the river's surface. Where it blew,
something large hunched through the water and disappeared.
"What
was that?" Kelly asked, tense, half on her feet, ready to bolt.
Nate
put his arm around her shoulders and pulled her back down. "It's nothing
to be afraid of. It's just a boto, a freshwater dolphin. They're abundant, but
pretty shy. You'll mostly find them in remote areas like this, traveling in
small packs:"
Proving
his point, another pair of geysers blew, casting spray high into the air. Ready
this time, and less panicked, Kelly spotted small dorsal fins arcing through
the water, then diving back down. They were moving swiftly.
"They're
fast," she said.
"Probably
hunting:"
As
they settled back to their log, a whole procession of dolphins sped by, arcing,
spraying. Frantic clicks and whistles echoed out eerily. Soon it seemed the
whole river was full of dolphins racing down the current.
Nate
frowned and stood.
"What's
wrong?" Kelly asked.
"I
don't know:' A single dolphin shot through the shallows near their feet. It
struck the mud bank, almost beaching itself, then, with a flip of its tail,
fled to deeper waters. "Something's panicking them:"
Kelly
got up and joined him. "What?"
Nate
shook his head. "I've never seen them display this behavior before:"
He glanced over to where the two patrolling Rangers stood guard. They also
stared at the parade of dolphins. "I need more light:'
Nate
hurried along the top of the bank toward the soldiers. Kelly followed, her
blood beginning to race. The guards were positioned where a small stream
emptied into the river.
"Corporal
Conger, could I borrow your flashlight?" Nate asked.
"They're
just dolphins," said the other soldier. It was Staff Sergeant Kostos. The
swarthy man scowled at them. "We've seen lots of the damned things while
patrolling at night. But, oh yeah, that was while you all were sleeping in your
beds, all tucked away."
The
younger Ranger was more cooperative. "Here, Dr. Rand," Corporal
Conger said, passing his flashlight.
With a
mumbled thanks, Nathan accepted the light. He moved down the bank, shining the
light upriver. Dolphins continued to pass but not in as great a number. As
Kelly looked on, Nate widened the cone of the light, splashing it down the
river.
"Damn,"
Nate said.
Almost
at the reach of his light, the river's surface seemed to be churning, like
white-water rapids over sharp rocks, frothing and gurgling. Only these rapids
were moving toward them, flowing down the current.
"What
is that?" Kelly asked.
Another
dolphin bumped into the shallows, bellying into the mud, but this one didn't
quickly flip away. It rolled against the bank, squealing a high-pitched wail.
Nate swung the light. Kelly gasped and took a couple steps back.
The
tail end of the dolphin was gone. Its belly had been ripped open. Intestines
trailed. The current rolled the pitiful creature back into the river.
Nathan
swung his light back upstream. The churning white water was already much
closer.
"What
is it?" Corporal Conger asked, his Texas drawl thicker. "What's
happening?"
From
up the river, the piercing squeal of a pig woke the night. Nesting birds took
wing. Monkeys, startled awake, barked in irritation.
"What's
going on?" the Texan repeated.
"I
need your night-vision goggles," Nate ordered.
Kelly
stood behind his shoulder. "What is it?"
Nate
grabbed the Ranger's glasses. "I've seen rivers churn like this a few
times before-but never this much:"
"What's
causing it?" Kelly asked.
Nate
lifted the goggles. "Piranhas . . . in a feeding frenzy."
Through
the night-vision lenses, the world both brightened and dissolved into a
monochrome green. It took Nate a moment to focus on where the waters churned.
He fingered the telescopic lenses to bring the image closer. Within the roiling
waters, he spotted flashes of large fins-dolphins caught by the razor-toothed
predators-and in brief flickers, the silvery flash of the deadly fish
themselves as they fought over their meal.
"What's
the threat?" Kostos said with thick disdain. "Let the dumb fucks chew
up the dolphins. They ain't gonna get us on dry land:"
The
sergeant was right, but Nate remembered the bodies of the massacred Indians . .
. and their fear of the river. Was this the threat? Were the waters here so
thick with piranhas that the Indians themselves feared to travel the rivers at
night? Was that why they had fled on foot? And this behavior, attacking
dolphins . . . it made no sense. Nate had never heard of such a slaughter.
Motion
at the edge of his goggles drew his eye. He turned from the churning water, and
spotted a carcass lying on the bank. It appeared to be a peccary, a wild pig.
Was it the same one that had screamed a moment ago? Something smaller, several
of them, hopped around the carcass, like huge bullfrogs, except these seemed to
be tearing into the dead pig and dragging it toward the water.
"What
the hell..." Nate mumbled.
"What?"
Kelly asked. "What do you see?"
Nate
clicked the telescopic lenses up a few notches, zeroing in. He watched more of
the bullfroglike creatures leap out of the water and attack the carcass. Others
joined it, flying high over the bank to disappear into the riverside foliage.
As he watched, a large capybara burst from the jungle and ran along the muddy
bank. It looked like a hundred-pound guinea pig racing beside the river. Then
it suddenly fell as if tripping over its own feet. Its body began to convulse.
From the waters, the creatures flopped and hopped, leaping at this new meal.
Nate
suddenly knew what he was seeing. It was what the village Indians must have
seen. He remembered the shaman's words. The jungle rose out of the river and
attacked them. Down the bank, the capybara ceased writhing as death claimed it.
Hadn't Kelly mentioned something about the corpse she had examined showing
signs of a convulsive event?
He
ripped off the goggles. The line of white water was now only thirty yards away.
"We need to get everyone away from the river! Away from al
waterways."
Sergeant
Kostos scoffed. "What the hell are you talking about?"
Corporal
Conger retrieved his glasses. "Maybe we should listen to
Dr.-"Something knocked the corporal's helmet askew, hitting with a wet
plop. "Jesus Christ:"
Nathan
shone his light down. Sitting in the mud was a strange creature, slightly
stunned. It looked like a monstrous tadpole, but in the stage where its
muscular hind legs had developed.
Before
anyone could react, the creature leaped again, latching onto Conger's thigh
with its jaws. Gasping, the corporal bludgeoned it away with the stock of his
rifle and took a few shaky steps away. "Damn thing has teeth:"
Kostos
slammed his boot heel atop the creature, squashing it and shooting entrails
down the bank. "Not any longer it doesn't:"
As a
group, they scurried away from the river. Conger fingered the pant leg of his
fatigues, hopping along. A hole had been torn in the fabric, and when he lifted
his hand, Nate spotted blood on the corporal's fingertips. "Practically
tore a chunk out of me," Conger said with a nervous laugh.
In no
time, they were back at the shabano's entrance.
"What's
going on?" Private Camera asked.
Nate
pointed back to the river. "Whatever got the Indians is coming our way. We
need to clear out of here:"
"For
now, maintain your post," Kostos ordered Camera. "Conger, yon get
that leg looked at while I go report to Captain Waxman."
"My
med pack is inside," Kelly said.
Conger
leaned against a beam of bamboo. "Sarge, I'm not feeling so good:"
All
eyes turned to the man.
"Everything's
gone sort of blurry."
Kelly
reached to help him. Nathan saw ropes of drool begin to flow from the corner of
the man's lips. Then his head fell back, followed by his body, already
convulsing.
Sergeant
Kostos caught him. "Conger!"
"Get
him inside!" Kelly snapped, ducking through the entrance.
The
Ranger hauled the soldier toward the shabano's door, but was having difficulty
as the man thrashed. Private Camera shouldered her rifle and bent to help.
"Maintain your post, soldier!" Kostos barked, then turned to Nate.
"Grab his goddamn legs!"
Nate
dropped and hooked Conger's ankles under his arms. It was like holding the end
of a downed power line as the man's body snapped and seized. "Go!"
As a
team, they hauled the soldier through the narrow doorway.
Others
came rushing up, awakened by the yelling.
"What
happened?" Zane asked.
"Stand
out of the way!" Kostos hollered, bowling the man over as he ran with the
fallen soldier.
"Over
here!" Kelly called. She already had her pack open and a syringe in hand.
"Lay him down and hold him still:"
After
lowering Conger to the dirt, Nate was elbowed aside. Two Rangers took his
place, pinning the soldier's legs to the ground.
Kostos
knelt on the corporal's shoulders, holding him in place. But the man's head
continued to bang up and down as if he were trying to knock himself
unconscious. Froth foamed from his lips, bloody from where he half chewed
through his own lip. "Jesus Christ! Conger!"
Kelly
sliced open the man's right sleeve with a razor blade, then quickly slid a
needle into Conger's arm. She injected the syringe's contents and knelt back to
watch their effect, holding his wrist clamped in her fingers. "C'mon . . .
c'mon . . :'
Suddenly
the man's contorted form relaxed.
"Thank
God," Kostos sighed.
Kelly's
reaction wasn't as relieved. "Damn it!" She pounced on his form,
checking his neck for a pulse, then pushed the soldiers aside as she began CPR
on his chest. "Someone start mouth-to-mouth:"
The
Rangers were too stunned for a moment to move.
Nathan
bumped Kostos aside, wiped the bloody froth from Conger's mouth, then began to
breathe in sync with Kelly's labors. Nate's focus narrowed down to the rhythm
of their work. He vaguely heard the concerned chatter of the others.
"Some
damn frog thing or fish," Kostos explained. "It hopped out and bit
Conger on the leg:"
"Poisoned!"
Kelly huffed as she worked. "It must have been venomous:"
"I've
never heard of such a creature," Kouwe said.
Nathan
wanted to agree, but was too busy breathing for the dying soldier.
"There
were thousands," Kostos continued, "chewing their way downstream
toward here."
"What
are we going to do?" Zane asked.
Captain
Waxman's voice drowned everyone else out. "First of all, we're not going
to panic. Corporal Graves and Private Jones . . . join Camera in securing the
perimeter:"
"Wait!"
Nate gasped between breaths.
Waxman
turned on him. "What?"
Nate
spoke in stilted breaths between attempts to resuscitate Conger. "We're
too close to the stream. It runs right past the shabano:"
So.
"They'll
come for us from the stream . . . like the Indians:" Nate was dizzy from
hyperventilating. He breathed into Corporal Conger's mouth, then was up again.
"We have to get away. Away from the waterways until daybreak. Nocturnal. .
:" Down he went to breathe.
"What
do you mean?"
Professor
Kouwe answered. "The Indians were attacked at night. Now this assault.
Nathan believes these creatures may be nocturnal. If we could avoid their path
until sunrise, we should be safe:"
"But
we have shelter and a secure area here. They're just fish or frogs or
something."
Nate
remembered the black-and-white view through the night-vision goggles: the
creatures leaping from the river, bounding high into the trees. "We're not
secure here!" he gasped out. He bent down again, but he was stopped by a
hand on his shoulder.
"It's
useless," Kelly said, pulling him up. "He's gone:" She faced the
others. "I'm sorry. The poison spread too quickly. Without an antivenom .
. ." She shook her head sadly.
Nate
stared at the still form of the young Texan. "Damn it. . :" He stood
up. "We have to get away. Far away from the waters. I don't know how far
from the streams and rivers these creatures can travel, but the one I saw had
gills. They probably can't stay out of the water for long:"
"What
do you suggest?" Frank asked.
"We
travel to higher ground. Avoid the river and the little stream. I think the
Indians believed it was just the river they needed to fear, but the predators
followed the stream and ambushed them:"
"You're
speaking as if the creatures are intelligent."
"No,
I can't imagine they are:" Nate remembered the way the dolphins were
fleeing, while none of the larger river fish were bothered. He pictured the
attack on the pig and the capybara. A theory slowly jelled. "Maybe they're
simply focused on warm-blooded creatures. I don't know . . . maybe they can
zone in on body heat or something, scouring both the water and the river's
edges for prey."
Frank
turned to Waxman. "I say we heed Dr. Rand."
"So
do I," Kelly said, standing. She pointed to Corporal Conger. "If a
single bite can do this, we can't take the risk:"
Waxman
turned on Frank. "You may be the head of operations, but in matters of
security, my word is law:"
Private
Camera ducked her head through the roundhouse's doorway. "Something's
happening out here. The river is frothing something fierce. One of the boats'
pontoons just blew."
Beyond
the walls of the shabano, the jungle awoke with monkey howls and screeching
birds.
"We're
running out of options," Nate said fiercely. "If they come up the
stream and flank us, cutting us off from higher ground, many more will die like
Conger . . . like the Indians:'
Nate
found support in the most unlikely of places. "The doctor's right,"
Sergeant Kostos said. "I saw those buggers. Nothing'll stop them from
attacking:" He waved an arm. "Definitely not this flimsy place. We're
sitting ducks in here, sir."
After
a pause, Waxman nodded. "Load up the gear."
"What
about the motion sensors outside?" Kostos asked.
"Leave
'em. Right now, I don't want anyone out there:'
Kostos
nodded and turned to obey.
In
short order, everyone was shouldering packs. Two Rangers dug a shallow grave
for Corporal Conger's body.
Camera
stood crouched by the doorway. She wore night-vision goggles and stared out
toward the river and jungle. "The commotion by the river's died down, but
I hear rustling in the brush:"
Beyond
the walls, the jungle had grown silent.
Nate
crossed to the door and knelt on one knee beside Camera. He was already packed
and ready, his stubby-nosed shotgun clutched in his right hand. "What do you
see?"
Camera
adjusted her goggles. "Nothing. But the jungle is too dense to see
far:"
Nate
leaned out the door. He heard a branch snap. Then a small forest deer, a
spotted fawn, shot out of the jungle and dashed past where Nate and the Ranger
crouched. Both gasped and ducked inside before realizing there was no danger.
"Christ;'
Camera said with a choked laugh.
The
deer paused near the edge of the roundhouse, ears pricked.
"Shoo!"
the Ranger called, waving her M-16 threateningly.
Then
something dropped out of the trees and landed on the fawn's back. The deer
suddenly squealed in pain and terror.
"Get
inside!" Nate ordered Camera.
As she
rolled through the door, Nate covered her with his shotgun. Another creature
pounced from the jungle's edge toward the deer. A third leaped from the
underbrush. The fawn skittered a few steps, then fell on its side, legs
kicking.
A
single motion sensor blared from the direction of the side stream.
"They're
here," Nathan mumbled.
By his
side, Camera had torn off her night-vision goggles and clicked on her
flashlight. The brightness spread down the jungle trail to the river. The
jungle to either side remained dark, blocking the light. "I don't
see-"
Something
plopped into the trail, only a few yards away.
From
this angle, the creature appeared to be all legs with a long finned tail
dragging behind it. It took a small hop toward them. From under two globular
black eyes, its mouth gaped open. Teeth glinted in the bright light, like some
cross between a tadpole and a piranha.
"What
the hell is it?" Camera whispered.
It
leaped toward her voice.
Nate
pulled the trigger of his shotgun. The spray of pellets shredded the creature,
blowing it backward. That's what Nate appreciated about a shotgun in the
jungle. It didn't require precision aim. Perfect for small threats-poisonous
snakes, scorpions, spiders-and apparently against venomous amphibians, too.
"Get
back," he said and swung the small door shut. It was no more than a woven
flap of banana leaves, but it would temporarily block the creatures.
"Thai's
the only way out," Camera said.
Nate
stood and unhooked his machete with his left hand. "Not in a
shabano:" He pointed the blade toward the far wall, the side opposite both
river and stream. "You can make a doorway wherever you want:"
Frank
and Captain Waxman joined him as he crossed to the central yard. Waxman was
folding a field map.
"They're
already out there," Nate said. He reached the far wall, raised his
machete, and began hacking through the woven palm and banana leaves. "We
have to leave now:"
Waxman
nodded, then shouted and waved an arm in the air. "We're hauling out!
Now!"
Nate
cleared a ragged hole through the rear wall, kicking debris aside.
Waxman
waved Corporal Okamoto to take the point. Nate saw an unusual weapon in the
soldier's hands. "Flamethrower," Okamoto explained, hefting the
weapon. "If necessary we'll burn a way through the bastards." He
pressed the trigger and a steam of orange fire shot from the muzzle like the
flickering tongue of a snake.
"Excellent:"
Nate patted the corporal's shoulder. After so many days on the river, Nate had
grown fond of his boat's motorman, although the Asian corporal's off-tune
whistling still drove him crazy.
With a
wink to Nathan, Okamoto ducked through the arch without hesitation. As he
passed, Nate spotted the small fuel tank strapped to the corporal's back.
Another
four Rangers followed: Warczak, Graves, Jones, and Kostos. All had outfitted
their M-16s with grenade launchers. They spread to the right and left of their
point man. New alarms blared as the Rangers tripped the perimeter's
motion-sensor lasers.
"Now
the civilians," Waxman ordered. "Stay close. Always keep a Ranger
between you and the forest:"
Richard
Zane and Anna Fong hurried through. Next Olin and Manny followed, trailed by
Tor-tor. Last, Kelly, Frank, and Kouwe passed.
"C'mon,"
Kelly said to Nate.
He
nodded, glancing back to the shabano. Waxman oversaw the last of the Rangers,
who would guard their rear. Two soldiers were gathered over something in the
middle of the yard.
"Let's
move, ladies!" Waxman ordered.
The
Rangers stood. One, a corporal named Samad Yamir, gave a thumbs-up sign to
Waxman. The corporal seldom spoke, and when he did, his voice was thick with a
Pakistani accent. There was only one other fact Nate knew about Yamir. He was
the unit's demolitions expert.
Nate
eyed the device left in the yard with suspicion.
Waxman
found Nate staring. The captain pointed his rifle toward the opening.
"Waiting for a personal invitation, Dr. Rand?"
Nate
licked his lips and followed after Frank and Kelly.
Again
he found Private Camera marching behind him. She was now outfitted with a
flamethrower, too. She studied the dark forest with narrowed eyes. Beyond her,
Waxman and Yamir were the last to leave the shabano.
"Stay
close!" Waxman yelled. "Frag or fry anything that moves:'
Camera
spoke at Nate's shoulder. "We're going to make for a knoll about five
klicks ahead:"
"How
do you know it's there?"
"Topographic
map:" Her voice sounded unsure.
Nate
glanced over his shoulder questioningly.
Carrera
lowered her voice and nodded to the side. "The stream wasn't on the map:'
Kelly
glanced over, looking sick, but she remained silent.
Nate
sighed. He was not surprised at the inaccuracy of the map. The waterways
through the deep jungle were unpredictable. While the boundaries of lakes and
swamps varied according to the rainfall, the smaller rivers and streams were
even more changeable. Most remained unnamed and uncharted. But at least the
knoll was on the map.
"Keep
moving!" Waxman ordered behind them.
As a
group, the team fled into the jungle. Nate stared around him, his ears pricked
for any suspicious rustle. In the distance, he heard the babble of the small
stream. He imagined the Indian villagers racing up the nearby footpath, unaware
of the danger lurking so close, oblivious of the death that lay ahead.
Nate
tromped after Frank and Kelly. A flicker of flame lit up the jungle ahead as
Corporal Okamoto led the way. Few words were shared as the group scaled up the
gentle slope away from the river. All eyes watched the jungle around them.
After
about twenty minutes of climbing, Waxman spoke to the soldier at his side.
"Light the candle, Yamir."
Nate
turned. Samad Yamir swung around and faced the way they had come. He shouldered
his M-16 and loosened a handheld device.
"Radio
transmitter," Camera explained.
Yamir
raised the device and pressed a button, triggering a red light to blink
rapidly.
Nate
frowned. "What is-?"
A soft
boom sounded. A section of forest blew upward in a ball of fire. Flames shot
high into the night sky and mushroomed through the surrounding forest.
Stunned,
Nate stumbled back. Shouts of surprise arose from the other civilians. Nate
watched the sphere of flames die away, collapsing in on itself, but leaving a
good section of the forest burning. Through the hellish red glow, a scorched
hole in the forest was evident, every tree stripped of leaf and branch. At
least an acre. There was no sign of the shabano. Even the motion-sensor alarms
had gone silent, fried by the explosion.
Nate
was too dumbstruck to speak-but his eyes, furious, met Waxman s gaze.
The
captain waved them all on. "Keep moving:"
Camera
urged Nate forward. "Fail-safe method. Burning everything behind us."
"What
was that?" Kouwe asked.
"Napalm
bomb," the corporal explained dourly. "New jungle munition:"
"Why
weren't we told . . . at least warned?" Frank asked loudly, walking half
backward.
Captain
Waxman answered, marching and waving them on. "It was my call. My order. I
wanted no arguments about it. Security is my priority."
"Which
I appreciate, captain," Richard Zane called back from up ahead. "I,
for one, commend your actions. Hopefully you've annihilated the venomous
bunch:'
"That
doesn't appear to be the case," Olin said with narrowed eyes. Their
Russian teammate pointed to the stream, now visible due to the blaze. A section
of the waterway on their side of the fires frothed with the leaping, racing
bodies of thousands of small creatures. A roiling stampede climbed up the
stream, like salmon spawning.
"Get
moving!" Waxman yelled. "We need to reach higher ground!"
The
pace of the party accelerated. They scrambled up the slope, less concerned with
watching the forest than with speed. The creatures were flanking them off to
the right.
Flashes
of fire marked the point man ahead. "I've got water here!" Okamoto
called.
The
group converged toward him.
"Dear
Lord," Kelly said.
Fifty
yards ahead, another stream cut across their path. It was only ten yards wide,
but was dark and still. Beyond it, the land continued to rise toward the knoll,
their destination.
"Is
this the same stream?" Frank asked.
One of
the Rangers, Jorgensen, pushed out of the forest. He had his
night-vision
glasses in his hand. "I've scouted down a ways. It's an offshoot of the
other stream. This one feeds into the other:"
"Fuck,"
Waxman swore. "This place is a goddamn water maze:"
"We
should cross while we still can," Kouwe said. "The creatures will
surely come this way soon:"
Waxman
stared at the slowly flowing water with clear trepidation. He moved beside
Okamoto. "I need some light:"
The
Ranger fired his flamethrower across the waters. It did little to reveal what
lay in the murky depths.
"Sir,
I'll go across first," Okamoto volunteered. "See if it can be crosses
safely"
"Careful,
son:"
"Always,
sir:"
Taking
a deep breath, Okamoto kissed a crucifix around his neck, then stepped into the
water. He waded into it, his weapon held chest high. "Current's
sluggish," he said softly, "but deep:" Halfway across, the
waters had climbed to his waist.
"Hurry
up," Frank mumbled. He had a fist clenched to his belly.
Okamoto
climbed to the far side and out of the water. He turned with a grin. "It
appears to be safe:"
"For
now," Kouwe said. "We should hurry."
"Let's
go!" Waxman ordered.
As a
group, they splashed through the waters. Frank held Kelly's hand. Nate helped
Anna Fong. "I'm not a good swimmer," Anna said to no one in
particular.
The
Rangers followed, guns held above their heads.
On the
far side, the party climbed the steep slope. With wet boots and the mud still
slick from the rains yesterday, trekking was treacherous. Their progress
slowed. The tight group began to stretch apart.
Jorgensen
appeared out of the gloom, night scope in hand. "Captain," he said,
"I've checked the other stream. The waters seem to have calmed. I don't
see any more of the creatures:"
"They're
out there," Nate said. "They're just not in a frenzy any longer."
"Or
maybe now that the fires have died down, they fled back to the main river
channel;" Jorgensen offered hopefully.
Waxman
frowned. "I don't think we should count-"
A
sharp cry interrupted the captain. Off to the left, a body slid down the slick,
muddy slope. It was a Ranger. Eddie Jones. His limbs flailed as he tried to
break his fall. "Fuck!" he screamed in frustration. He tried to grasp
a bush, but its roots ripped out of the thin soil. Then he hit a bump in the
slope, and went cartwheeling, his weapon flying from his fingers, and landed in
the stream.
A pair
of Rangers-Warczak and Graves-ran to his aid.
He
popped out, coughing water and choking. "Goddamn it!" He clambered to
the stream's edge. "Fuck this jungle!" As he straightened his helmet,
more colorful obscenities flowed. He climbed out of the stream.
"Smooth,
Jones . . . very smooth," Warczak said, running his flashlight up and down
the man's soaked form. "I'd give you a perfect ten in the jungle slalom:"
"Cram
it up your ass," Jones said, bending to finger a rope of sticky algae from
his pant leg. "Ugh:"
Corporal
Graves was the first to spot it: something moving atop the other man's pack.
"Jones. . ."
Still
half crouched, the man glanced up. "What?"
The
creature leaped, latching onto the soft flesh under Jones's jaw. He jerked.
"What the hell!" He tore the creature from his neck, blood spurting.
"Ahhhhh . . ."
The
small stream suddenly frothed and burst forth with another dozen of the
creatures. They leaped at the man, attacking his legs. Jones fell backward, his
face twisted in agony. He hit the stream with a loud splash.
"Jones!"
Warczak stepped nearer.
Another
of the creatures leaped from the water and plopped in the wet mud at the
corporal's feet, gill flaps vibrating. Warczak scrambled backward, as did
Graves.
In the
shallow stream, Jones writhed. It was as if he had been thrown in boiling
water. His body jerked and spasmed.
"Get
back!" Waxman yelled. "Everyone uphill!"
Warczak
and Graves were already running. From the stream, more of the creatures leaped
and bounded in pursuit.
The
group tossed caution aside and scrambled up the slope, some half crawling on
hands and knees. Kelly's legs suddenly went out from under her. Her muddy hand
slipped out of her brother's grip. She began a deadly slide.
"Kelly!"
Frank called out.
But
Nate was a couple yards behind her. He caught her one-handed by the waist,
falling on top of her, holding his shotgun in his other arm. Manny came to
their aid, hauling both back to their feet. Tor-tor paced anxiously back and
forth behind him.
The
Brazilian waved the jaguar ahead. "Move your furry ass:"
By
now, the three were the last of the group. Frank waited a few yards up.
Only
Private Camera was still with them. She stood and sprayed a jet of fire behind
them, her flamethrower roaring dully. "Let's pick up the pace;" she
said tensely, backing up the slope, herding them upward.
"Thanks,"
Kelly said, her eyes swiveling to encompass the entire group.
Frank
met them and took his sister in hand. "Don't do that again:"
"I'm
not planning on it:"
Nate
kept a watch behind them. He met Camera's gaze. He saw the fear in her eyes.
This momentary distraction was all it took. One of the creatures sprang at the
Ranger from the surrounding underbrush. It had slipped past her firewall.
Camera
fell backward, fire spitting into the sky.
The
creature had latched onto her belt, but squirmed for a meatier purchase.
Before
anyone else could react, a sharp crack split the night. The creature was flung
away, the two halves of its body sailing high. Both Camera and Nate turned to see
Manny snapping his short bullwhip back into ready position.
"Are
you just gonna sit there gawking?" Manny asked.
Camera
scrambled up with Nate's help. The group sped up the hill. At last they reached
the summit. Nate hoped putting the rise between them and the amphibious
creatures would be enough.
He
found the others gathered on top.
"We
should keep moving," Nate said. "Keep as much land between us and
them as possible:"
"That's
a good theory," Kouwe said. "But putting it into practice is another
thing altogether:" The shaman pointed down the knoll's far side.
Nathan
stared. From this height, the stream below shone silver in the moonlight.
Groaning, he realized it was the same stream they had been avoiding all along.
Nate turned in a slow circle, recognizing their predicament. They had made a
fatal error.
The
small waterway they had crossed a few minutes ago was not a feeder draining
into the larger stream, but actually a part of the same stream.
"We're
on an island," Kelly said with dismay.
Nate stared
upstream and saw that the flow of the waterway split and ran around both sides
of the knoll. Once past the hill, it joined to become a single stream again.
The party indeed stood on an island, in the middle of the deadly stream, water
all around.
Nate
felt sick. "We're trapped."
2:12
A.M. WEST WING OF THE INSTAR INSTITUTE LANGLEY VIRGINIA
Lauren
O'Brien sat at the small table in the communal galley, hunched over a cup of
coffee. At this late hour, she had the place to herself. All the other quarantined
MEDEA members were either asleep in their makeshift bedrooms or working in the
main labs.
Even
Marshall had retired to their room with Jessie hours ago. He had an early
morning conference call with the CDC, two Cabinet heads, and the director of the
CIA. He had eloquently described the meeting as "a preemptive strike
before the political shitstorm hits the fan:" Such were the ways of
government. Rather than attacking the problem aggressively, everyone was still
pointing fingers and running for cover. Marshall's goal tomorrow was to shake
things up. A decisive plan of action was needed. So far, the fifteen outbreak
zones were being managed fifteen different ways. It was chaos.
Sighing,
Lauren stared at the reams of papers and printouts spread atop her table. Her
team was still struggling with one simple question. What was causing the
disease?
Testing
and research were ongoing in labs across the country-from the CDC in Atlanta
all the way to the Salk facility in San Diego. But the Instar Institute had
become scientific ground zero for the disease.
Lauren
pushed away a report from a Dr. Shelby on utilizing monkey kidney cells as a
culture medium. He had failed. Negative response. Up to this point, the
contagious agent continued to thwart all means of identification: aerobic and
anaerobic cultures, fungal assays, electron microscopy, dot hybridization,
polymerase chain reaction. As of today, no progress had been made. Each study
ended with similar tags: negative response, zero growth, indeterminate analysis.
All fancy ways of saying failure.
Her
beeper, resting beside her now-cold cup of coffee, began to buzz and dance
across the Formica countertop. She snatched it before it fell off the table.
"Who
the heck is paging me at this hour?" she mumbled, glancing at the beeper's
screen. The Caller ID feature listed the number as Large Scale Biological Labs.
She didn't know the facility, but the area code placed it somewhere in northern
California. The call was probably just some technician requesting their fax
number or submission protocol. Still . . .
Lauren
stood, pocketed her beeper, and headed over to the phone on the wall. As she
picked up the receiver, she heard a door open behind her. Over her shoulder,
she was surprised to see Jessie standing in her pajamas, rubbing at her eyes
blearily.
"Grandma.
. :"
Lauren
replaced the receiver and crossed to the child. "Honey, what are you doing
up? You should be in bed:"
"I
couldn't find you:"
She
knelt before the girl. "What's wrong? Did you have another scary dream?"
The first few nights here, Jessie had awoken with nightmares, triggered by the
quarantine and the strange environment. But the child had seemed to adjust
rapidly, making friends with several of the other kids.
"My
tummy hurts," she said, her eyes sheening with threatening tears.
"Oh,
honey, that's what you get for eating ice cream so late:" Lauren reached
out and pulled the girl into a hug. "Why don't I get you a glass of water,
and we'll get you tucked back into-"
Lauren's
voice died as she realized how warm the child was. She reached a palm to
Jessie's forehead. "Oh, God," she mumbled under her breath.
The
child was burning up.
2:31
A.M.
AMAZON
JUNGLE
Louis
stood by his tent as Jacques strode up from the river. His lieutenant carried
something wrapped in a sodden blanket under his arms. Whatever it was, it
appeared no larger than a watermelon.
"Doctor;"
the Maroon tribesman said stiffly.
"Jacques,
what did you discover?" He had sent the man and two others to investigate
the explosion that had occurred just after midnight. The noise had woken his
own camp mere minutes after they had settled in for the night. Earlier, at
sunset, Louis's had learned of the discovery of the Indian shabano and the fate
of the villagers. Then hours later the explosion . . .
What
was going on over there?
"Sir,
the village has been incinerated . . . as has much of the surrounding forest.
We could not get too close due to the remaining fires. Maybe by morning.
"And
the other team?"
Jacques
glanced to his toes. "Gone, sir. I dropped Malachim and Toady ashore to
scout after them:"
Louis
clenched a fist and cursed his overconfidence. After the successful abduction
of one of their soldiers, he had grown complacent with his prey. But now this!
One of his team's trackers must have been spotted. Now that the fox had been
alerted to the hounds, Louis's mission was far more complicated. "Gather
the other men. If the Rangers are running from us, we don't want them to get
too far away."
"Yes,
sir. But, Doctor, I'm not sure the others are fleeing from us:"
"What
makes you think that?"
"As
we paddled up to the fire zone, we saw a body float out from a side stream."
"A
body?" Louis feared it was his mole, dispatched and sent downriver as a
message.
Jacques
unrolled the sodden blanket in his arms and dropped its content to the leafed
floor of the jungle. It was a human head. "We found it floating near the
remains."
Frowning,
Louis knelt and examined the head, what little there was of it. The face had
been all but chewed away, but from the shaved scalp, it was clearly one of the
Rangers.
"The
body was the same," Jacques said, "gnawed to the bone:"
Louis
glanced up. "What happened to him?"
"Piranhas,
I'd say, from the bite wounds:"
"Are
you sure?"
"Pretty
damn sure:" Jacques fingered the scarred half of his nose, reminding Louis
that, as a boy, his lieutenant had had intimate experience with the voracious
river predators.
"Did
they feed on him after he was dead?"
Jacques
shrugged. "If he wasn't, I pity the poor bastard."
Louis climbed
to his feet. He stared out toward the river. "What the hell is happening
out there?"
CHAPTER
TEN
Escape
AUGUST
14, 3:12 A. M.
AMAZON
JUNGLE
Atop
the island knoll, Nate stood with the other civilians, ringed by the Ranger
team, which was now down to eight members. One for each of the civilians, Nate
thought, like personal bodyguards.
"How
about using another of your napalm bombs to clear a path through the
buggers?" Frank asked, standing near Captain Waxman. "Roll it down
the slope, then duck for cover."
"We'd
all be dead. If the heat blast didn't fry us, then we'd be pinned down between
a burning forest and the poisonous bastards:"
Frank
sighed, staring out into the dark forests. "How about your grenades? We
could lob them in series, creating a swath through them."
Waxman
frowned. "It'd be risky to deploy them so close to us, and no guarantee
that it would kill enough of the bastards among all these tree trunks. I say we
hold the hill, try to last until daybreak:"
Frank
crossed his arms, little pleased with this plan.
Around
the knoll, occasional fiery blasts from the flamethrowers ignited the night as
Corporal Okamoto and Private Camera maintained sentry posts on either slope.
Though it had been half an hour since sighting one of them, the beasts were
still out there. The surrounding forests had gone deathly quiet, no monkey
calls, no birdsong. Even the insects seemed to have died down to a whispery
buzz and whine. But beyond the reach of their flashlights, the leaves still
rustled as unseen lurkers crept through the underbrush.
Night
scopes focused on the surrounding waters revealed creatures still hopping into
and out of the stream. Nathan's earlier assessment seemed to be accurate. The
creatures, gill-breathers, needed to return to the waters occasionally to
revive themselves.
Nearby,
Manny knelt in the leaf-strewn dirt, working by flashlight. Kelly and Kouwe
stood behind his shoulder. Earlier, Manny had risked his life to dash into the
forest's fringe to collect one of the beasts stunned by a blast of flame.
Though partially charbroiled, it was a decent specimen. The creature was about
a foot long from the tip of its tail to its razor-toothed mouth. Large black
eyes protruded, giving it a nearly 360-degree view of its surroundings. Strong
articulated limbs ended in webbed and suckered toes almost as long as the body
itself.
As the
others watched, Manny was performing a rapid dissection. The Brazilian
biologist worked deftly with a scalpel and forceps from Kelly's med kit.
"This
thing is amazing," Manny finally mumbled.
Nate
joined Kelly and Kouwe as the biologist explained.
"It's
clearly some form of chimera. An amalgam of more than one species.
"How
so?" Kelly asked.
Manny
shifted aside and pointed with his thumb forceps. "Nathan was right.
Though its skin is not scaled like a fish, it definitely has the breathing
system of an aquatic species. Gills, no lungs. But its legs-notice the banding
on the skin-are definitely amphibious. The striping pattern is very
characteristic of Phobobates trivittatus, the striped poison-dart frog, the
largest and most toxic member of the frog family."
"So
you're saying it's some mutated form of this species?" Nate asked.
"I
thought so at first. It looks almost like a tadpole whose growth was arrested
at the stage where gills were still present and only its hind legs had formed.
But as I dissected further, I became less convinced. First, and most obvious,
is that its size is way out of proportion. This thing must weigh close to five
pounds. Monstrously gigantic for even the largest species of dart frog:'
Manny
rolled the dissected creature over and pointed to its eyes and teeth.
"Additionally, its skull structure is all misshapen. Rather than flattened
horizontally like a frog's, the cranium is flattened vertically, more like a
fish's. In fact, the skull conformation, jaw, and teeth are almost identical in
size and shape to a common Amazonian river predatorSerrasalmus rhombeus:"
Manny glanced up from his handiwork. "The black piranha:"
Kelly
leaned away. "That's impossible:"
"If
this thing weren't right in front of me, I'd agree:" Manny sat back.
"I've worked with Amazonian species all my life, and I've seen nothing
like it. A true chimera. A single creature that shares the biological features
of both frog and fish:"
Nate
eyed the creature. "How could that be?"
Manny
shook his head. "I don't know. But how does a man regenerate a limb? I
think the presence of such a chimera suggests we're on the right trail.
Something is out there, something your father's expedition discovered,
something with a distinct mutating ability."
Nate
stared at the dissected ruins. What the hell was out there?
A call
arose from Private Camera. Her sentry post faced the northern slope of the
knoll. "They're on the move again!"
Nate
straightened. The rustling from her side of the forest had grown louder. It
sounded as if the entire jungle were stirring.
Camera
flamed the lower slope. Her fiery jets pushed back the darkness. Reflected in
the fire were hundreds of tiny eyes, covering both the forest floor and the
trees. One of the creatures sprang from its perch on the limb of a palm tree
and bounded into the fire zone. There was a short chatter of automatic rifle
fire, and the creature was shredded to a bloody mush.
"Everybody
back!" Camera called. "They're coming!"
From
the trees and underbrush, small bodies started to leap and bound toward them,
oblivious to the fire and bullets. The creatures were determined to overrun
them with their sheer numbers.
Nate
flashed back on the Indian massacre site. It was happening all over again. He
swung his shotgun from his shoulder, aimed, and blasted a creature in midair as
it leaped from a branch over Carrera's head. Gobbets of flesh rained down.
As a
group, they were forced to vacate the knoll's summit and retreat
down
the southern face. Gunfire and flames lit the night. Flashlights danced, making
every shadow shift and jerk.
Leading
the charge down the southern slope, Corporal Okamoto swathed jets of fire
before them. "It still looks clear this way!" he called out.
Nate
risked a peek his way. Distantly through the forest, he could make out the
other fork of the stream below as it swept around the southern flank of the
hill.
"Why
aren't any of the creatures on this side of the hill?" Anna asked, her
face flushed.
Zane
answered, his eyes wide as he kept glancing behind him. "They probably
rallied all their numbers on the far side for this final assault:"
Nate
stared toward the stream below. It was wide, smooth, and quiet, but he knew
better. He remembered the large capybara rodent flushed from the forest and
racing along the river, where it was set upon by the predators. "They're
herding us," he mumbled.
"What?"
Kelly asked.
"They
want us close to the water. The pack is driving us to the river:"
Manny
heard him. "I think Nate's right. Despite their ability to move on land
for short distances, they're basically aquatic. They'd want their meal as close
to water as possible before taking it down:"
Kelly
looked behind her to the line of Rangers flaming and firing along their back
trail. "What choice do we have?"
Down
the slope, Okamoto slowed as they neared the river, clearly suspicious of the
water, too. The corporal turned to Captain Waxman behind him. "Sir, I'll
try to cross first. Like last time."
Waxman
nodded. "Careful, corporal:"
Okamoto
headed for the stream.
"No!"
Nate called. "I'm sure it's a trap:"
Okamoto
glanced to him, then to his captain, who waved him forward again.
"We
have to get off this island," Waxman said.
"Wait,"
Manny said, stepping forward, his voice pained. "I . . . I can send
Tor-tor instead:"
The
others were now all gathered around.
Waxman
stared at the jaguar, then nodded. "Do it:"
Manny
guided his jaguar toward the dark waters.
Nate's
mind spun. It was suicide to enter those waters. He knew this as certainly as
he knew the sun would rise tomorrow. But Waxman was right. They had to find a
way across. He ran through various scenarios in his head.
A rope
bridge over the stream. He quickly ruled that out. Even if they could somehow
string a bridge up, the aquatic creatures were adept at leaping great heights.
They'd all just be so much bait strung on a line.
Maybe
grenades tossed in the water to stun them. But the stream was long. Any
creatures killed by the concussion would be quickly replaced by those upstream.
They would sweep down the sluggish current, attacking the team as they tried to
rush across. No, what was needed was something that could strip this entire
fork of the creatures-but what could do that?
Then
it dawned on him. He had seen the answer demonstrated just a few days back.
By
now, Manny and Tor-tor were only a couple of yards from the stream. Okamoto was
with them, flames lighting the way.
"Wait!"
Nate called. "I have an idea!"
Manny
paused.
"What?"
Waxman asked.
"According
to Manny, these things are basically fish:" So.
Nate
ignored the captain's glare and turned to Kouwe. "You have powdered ayaeya
vine in your medicine kit, don't you?"
"Certainly,
but what-?" Then the professor's eyes grew rounder with understanding.
"Brilliant, Nate. I should've thought of that."
"What?"
Waxman asked, growing frustrated.
Behind
them, up the slope, the line of Rangers held the creatures momentarily at bay
with rifles and fire. Down slope, Okamoto stood ready by the river.
Nate
quickly explained. "Indians use crushed ayaeya vine to fish:" He
remembered the small fishing scene he had witnessed as he canoed with Tama and
Takaho to Sao Gabriel: a woman dusting the river with a black powder, while
downstream the men gathered stunned fish with spears and nets. "The vine
contains a potent rotenone, a toxin that literally chokes and suffocates the
fish. The effect is almost instantaneous:'
"So
what are you proposing?" Waxman asked.
"I'm
familiar with the compound. I'll take the satchel upstream and poison the
stream. As the toxin flows down this fork, it should stun any and all of the
creatures in the river:"
Waxman's
eyes narrowed. "This powder will do this?"
Kouwe
answered, digging in his pack. "It should. As long as the creatures are
true gill-breathers:" The professor glanced to Manny.
The
biologist nodded, clear relief in his eyes. "I'm sure of it:"
Sighing,
Waxman waved Okamoto and Manny away from the stream. As the captain turned back
to Nate, an explosion sounded behind them.
Dirt,
leaves, and branches blew high into the air. Someone had fired a grenade.
"They're breaking through!" Sergeant Kostos yelled.
Waxman
pointed to Nate. "Move!"
Nate
turned.
Professor
Kouwe pulled a large leather satchel from his pack and tossed it to Nate.
"Be careful:"
Nate
caught the bag of powder one-handed, swinging around with his shotgun in the
other.
"Camera!"
Waxman called and pointed to Nate. "Cover him:"
"Yes,
sir:" The private backed down the slope with her flamethrower, leaving her
post to Okamoto.
"When
you first start to see fish float to the surface," Nate instructed the
others, "haul ass across. Though the current here is slow, I'm not sure
how long the effect will last before the toxin is swept away."
"I'll
make sure we're ready," Kouwe said.
Nate
glanced around the group. Kelly's eyes met his, a fist clutched to her throat.
He offered her a small, confident smile, then turned away.
Together,
he and Private Camera sprinted upstream, keeping a wary distance from the
water.
Nate
trailed behind the soldier as she strafed the way ahead with continual bursts
from her flamethrower. They crashed through the smoking underbrush and raced
ahead. Nate searched behind. The encampment of his fellow teammates had dwindled
down to a green glow in the forest.
"The
buggers must know something's up," Camera said, gasping with exertion. She
pointed a free arm toward the stream. A couple splashes marked where creatures
were beginning to hop out of the water in pursuit of the pair.
"Keep
moving," Nate urged. "It's not much farther."
They
rushed on, accompanied by tiny splashes and the sound of crashing bodies
hitting the underbrush.
At
last they reached the place where the main stream forked into the northern and
southern branches, encircling the knoll. Here the channel was narrower, the
current swifter, rumbling over rocks in a frothy white foam. More of the
creatures leapt from the current, slick bodies glistening in the glow of the
firelight.
Nate
stopped as Camera laid down a protective spray of flame. Creatures sizzled in
the muddy bank, some fleeing back into the river, skin smoking. "Now or
never," Camera said.
Shouldering
his shotgun, Nate slipped in front of her, the satchel of powder in hand. He
quickly loosened the pouch's leather tie.
"Just
lob the whole thing in," the Ranger recommended.
"No,
I have to make sure it disperses evenly." Nate took another step nearer
the river.
"Careful:"
Camera followed, jetting bursts of flame around them to discourage the
predators.
Nate
reached the edge of the stream, standing now only a foot away.
Camera
half knelt and strafed fire over the water's surface, ready to incinerate
anything that dared pop out. "Do it!"
With a
nod, Nate leaned over the stream, extending his arm, his fingers clutching the
satchel. Attracted by the movement, something sprang from the water. Nate
jerked his arm back in time to miss getting bitten. Instead, the creature
latched its razored teeth into the cuff of his shirt sleeve, hanging there.
Nate
whipped his arm back, fabric ripped, and the creature went flying far into the
woods. "Damn it!" Not waiting, Nate quickly powdered the river with
the crushed ayaeya vine, sprinkling it slowly, ensuring a good spread.
Behind
him, Camera was busy protecting their rear. The beasts from the stream were now
converging on them.
Nate
shook the last of the powder from the satchel, then tossed it into the stream.
As he watched the pouch drift downstream rapidly, he prayed his plan would
work. "Done," he said, turning.
Camera
glanced over to him. Past her shoulder, Nate spotted bodies leaping from
branches in the deeper jungle. "We have a problem," the Ranger said.
"What?"
The
Ranger lifted her flamethrower and shot a jet of fire toward the jungle. As he
watched, the line of fire drizzled back to the weapon's muzzle, like a hose
draining after the spigot had been turned off.
"Out
of fuel," she said.
Frank
O'Brien stood by his twin sister, guarding her. At times, he swore that he
could read her mind. Like now. Kelly stared at the river, watching with Kouwe
and Manny for any sign that Rand's plan might work. But he noticed how she kept
peering into the jungle, her eyes drawn to the path the ethnobotanist and
soldier had taken. He also saw the glint in her eyes.
An
explosion momentarily drew his attention around. Another grenade. The rain of
debris rattled through the canopy. Gunfire was now almost continuous, all
around them. The line of Rangers was slowly being driven back to the cluster of
civilians. Soon they would have no choice but to retreat toward the stream and
closer to whatever skulked in its watery depths.
Nearby,
Anna Fong stood with Zane, guarded by Olin Pasternak, who stood with a 9mm
Beretta pistol in hand. It was a poor weapon against such small, fast-moving
targets, but it was better than nothing.
A
growl suddenly rumbled behind him, from Manny's jaguar.
"Look!"
Kelly called out.
Frank
turned. His sister stood with her flashlight pointed toward the stream. Then he
saw it, too, lit by the reflection of her flashlight. Small glistening objects
began to bob up from the water's depths, floating, drifting with the current.
"Nate
did it!" Kelly said, a smile on her face.
At her
side, Professor Kouwe stepped nearer the streambed. One of the piranha-frogs
burst from the water toward him, but landed on its side in the mud. It flopped
for a couple seconds, then lay still. Stunned. Kouwe glanced to Frank. "We
must not lose this chance. We must cross now."
Frank
turned and spotted Captain Waxman a short distance up the slope. He yelled to
be heard above the gunfire. "Captain Waxman! Rand's plan is working!"
Frank waved an arm. "We can cross! Now!"
Waxman
acknowledged his words with a nod, then his voice boomed. "Bravo unit!
Retreat toward the stream!"
Frank
touched the brim of his lucky baseball cap and stepped to Kelly. "Let's
go:"
Manny
hurried past them. "Tor-tor and I'll still go first. It was my dissection
upon which this plan was based." He didn't wait for a reply. He and his
pet stepped to the stream's edge. He paused for half a breath, then waded into
the stream. This fork was clearly deeper. Midstream, the water reached Manny's
chest. Tor-tor had to swim.
But
shortly the biologist was climbing out the far side. He turned. "Hurry!
It's safe for the moment!"
"Move
it!" Waxman ordered.
The
civilians crossed together, strung along the current.
Frank
went with Kelly, holding her hand. By now, hundreds of creatures bobbed in the
water. They had to wade through the deadly forms, bumping them aside, avoiding
sharp teeth that glistened from slack mouths. Horrified, Frank held his breath,
praying for them to remain inert.
They
reached the far side and scrambled, half panicked, out of the water. The
Rangers followed next, rushing across in full gear, oblivious to what floated
around them. As they clambered up to dry land, the first of the advancing
creatures began to appear on the far side of the stream, hurtling out of the
jungle. A couple piranha-frogs approached the stream but stopped at the water's
edge, gill flaps trembling.
They
must sense the danger, Frank thought. But they had no choice. On land they were
suffocating. As if obeying some silent signal, the mass of mutated piranhas
fled into the water.
"Back
away!" Waxman ordered. "We can't count on the water still being
tainted:"
The
group fled from the stream into the jungle-covered heights. Flashlights
remained fixed on the water and banks. But after several minutes, it was clear
the pursuit was over. Either the waters were still toxic to the beasts or they
had given up their chase.
Frank
sighed. "It's over:"
Kelly
remained quietly focused beside him, using her flashlight to scan the far bank
of the stream. "Where's Private Camera?" she asked softly, then
turned to Frank. "Where's Nate?"
Upriver,
a blast sounded, echoing through the forest.
Kelly's
eyes widened as she stared at Frank. "They're in trouble:"
Nate
raised his shotgun and blasted another of the creatures that ventured too
close. Camera had shrugged off her weapon's fuel canister and was bent over it.
"How much longer?" Nate asked, eyes wide, trying to watch everything
at once.
"Almost
done:"
Nate
glanced to the stream at his back. In the glow from Camera's flashlight, he saw
that the poison in the water was working. Downstream, bodies floated to the
surface, but the current was rapidly carrying them away. The narrow streambed
behind them was empty of bodies and could not be trusted. The current, as swift
as it was, had surely swept the powdered poison away from here and down the
length of the stream. It was not safe. They needed to backtrack along the
trailing toxin in the water and seek a secure place to cross, where the current
was more sluggish, somewhere where the poison was still active-but between them
and safety lay a small legion of the creatures, entrenched in the forest,
blocking their way.
"Ready,"
Camera said, standing.
She
hauled her handiwork from the jungle floor and tightened the canister's lid,
leaving a primer cord draping from it. The tank contained only a bit of fuel,
not enough to service the weapon, but enough for their purposes. At least he
hoped.
Nate
held his position with his shotgun. "Are you sure this will work?"
"It
had better."
Her
words were not exactly the vote of confidence Nate was seeking.
"Point
out the target again;" she said, moving beside him.
He
shifted his shotgun's muzzle and pointed at the gray-barked tree about thirty
yards downstream.
"Okay."
Camera lit the end of the primer cord with a butane lighter. "Get
ready:" She swung her arm back and, using all the strength in her body,
lobbed the canister underhanded.
Nate
held his breath. It arced end-over-end-and landed at the foot o. the targeted
tree.
"All
those years of women's softball finally paid off," Camera mumbled, then to
Nate: "Get down!"
Both
dropped to the leafy floor. Nate fell, keeping his shotgun pointed ahead of
him. And he was lucky he did. One of the creatures leaped from a bush, landing
inches from his nose. Nate rolled and batted it away with the stock of his shotgun.
He rolled back to his belly and glanced to the Ranger beside him. "Varsity
baseball," he mumbled. "Senior year.
"Down!"
Camera reached and smashed his head to the dirt.
The
explosion was deafening, shrapnel ripped through the canopy overhead. Nate glanced
over. Camera's trick had indeed worked. She had transformed the near-empty fuel
tank into a large Molotov cocktail. Flames lit the night.
Camera
got to her knees. "What about-?"
Now it
was Nate's turn to tug her down.
The
second explosion sounded like a lightning strike: splintering wood accompanied
by a low boom. The nearby jungle was shredded apart, followed by a rain of
flaming copal resin.
"Damn
it!" Camera swore. Her sleeve was on fire. She patted it out in the loam.
Nate
stood, relieved to see that the plan had worked. The tree, their target, was
now just a blasted wreck, bluish flames dancing atop the stump. As Nate
expected, the sap, rich in hydrocarbons, had acted as fuel, causing the
makeshift Molotov cocktail to turn the tree into a natural bomb, and torch the
entire riverbank as well.
"C'mon!"
Nate called, bounding up with Camera.
Together,
they ran along the flaming and shredded section of the forest, paralleling the
stream until they overtook the poison trailing through the water. Bodies of the
creatures and other fish filled the channel.
"This
way!" Nate ran into the river, half swimming, half clawing his way across.
Camera followed.
In no
time, they were scrambling up the far bank.
"We
did it!" the Ranger said with a laugh.
Nate
sighed. Off in the distance, he spotted the shine of the others' flashlights.
The team had made it across, too. "Let's go see if everyone else is
okay."
They
helped each other up and stumbled away from the stream, aiming for the other
camp.
When
they marched out of the forest, a cheer went up. "Way to go, Camera,"
Kostos said, a true smile on his lips.
Nate's
greeting was no less earnest. As soon as he arrived, Kelly threw her arms
around his neck and hugged him tight. "You made it," she mumbled in
his ear. "You did it:"
"And
not a minute too soon," Nate said with a nod.
Frank
patted him on the back.
"Well
done, Dr. Rand," Captain Waxman said stoically, and turned to organize his
troops. No one wanted to remain this close to the stream, poisoned or not.
Kelly
dropped her arms, but not before planting a soft kiss on his cheek.
"Thanks . . . thanks for saving us. And thanks for returning safely"
She
swung away, leaving Nate somewhat bewildered.
Camera
nudged him with an elbow and rolled her eyes. "Looks like someone made a
friend:"
10:02
A. M.
AMAZON
JUNGLE
Louis
stood in the center of the blasted region near the river's edge. He could still
smell the acrid tang of napalm in the air. Behind him, his team was offloading
the canoes and loading up backpacks. From here, the journey would be on foot.
With
the dawn, clouds had rolled in, and a steady drizzle fell from the sky, dousing
the few fires that still smoldered. A smoky mist clung to the dead pocket of
jungle, ghostly white and thick.
Off to
the side, his mistress wandered around the site, a wounded expression on her
face, as if the damage to the forest were a personal injury. She slowly circled
a pole planted in the ground with a speared creature impaled on it. It was one
of the strange beasts that had attacked the other group. Louis had never seen
anything of its ilk before. And from Tshui's expression, neither had she. Tshui
eyed the beast, cocking her head like a bird studying a worm.
Jacques
stepped up behind Louis. "You have a radio call . . . on your coded
frequency."
"Finally,"
he sighed.
Earlier,
just before dawn, one of his two scouts had returned, badly frightened and
wild-eyed. He had reported that his partner, a squat Colombian who went by the
name of Toady, had been attacked by one of these beasts and died horribly.
Malachim had barely made it back alive. Unfortunately, the man's report of the
other team's whereabouts was thready at best. It seemed the Rangers' group,
chased across a tributary stream, had fled these same beasts, and were now
heading in a southwesterly direction. But toward where?
Louis
had a way of finding out. He accepted the radio from Jacques. It was a direct
link to a tiny scrambled transmitter held by a member of the opposing team, a
little mole planted under the Rangers' noses at significant expense.
"Thank
you, Jacques." Radio in hand, Louis stepped a few yards away. He had
already had one previous call this morning, from his financiers, St. Savin
Pharmaceuticals in France. It seemed some disease was spreading across the
Amazon and the United States, something associated with the dead man's body.
Stakes were now higher. Louis had argued to raise his own fee, on the grounds
that his work was now more hazardous. St. Savin had accepted, as he knew they
would. A cure to this disease would be worth billions to his employer. What
were a few more francs tossed his way?
Louis
lifted the radio. "Favre here:"
"Dr.
Favre:" The relief was clear in the other's voice. "Thank God, I
reached you."
"I've
been awaiting your call:" A bit of menace entered Louis's tone. "I
lost a good man last night because someone did not have the foresight to inform
us of these venomous little toads:"
There
was a long pause. "I . . . I'm sorry. In all the commotion, I could hardly
sneak off and place a call. In fact, this is the first chance I've had to slip
away to the latrine alone:'
"Fine.
So tell me about this commotion last night."
"It
was horrible:" His spy blathered in his ear for the next three minutes,
giving Louis an overview of what happened. "If it wasn't for Rand's use of
some powdered fish toxin, we would all have surely died:"
Louis's
fingers gripped the radio tighter at the mention of Rand's
name.
The family name alone bristled the small hairs on his neck. "And where are
you all now?"
"We're
still heading in a southwesterly direction, searching for Gerald Clark's next
marker."
"Very
good:"
"But
- "
"What
is it?"
"I.
. . I want out:"
"Pardon,
mon ami?"
"Last
night I was almost killed. I was hoping that you could . . . I don't know . . .
pick me up if I wandered off. I would be willing to pay for my safe delivery
back to civilization:"
Louis
closed his eyes. It seemed his mole was getting cold feet. He would have to
warm the little mouse up. "Well, if you vacate your post, I will certainly
find you:"
"Th..
. thank you. I would-"
He
interrupted. "And I'd be sure, when I found you, that your death would be
long, painful, and humiliating. If you're familiar with my dossier, I'm sure
you know how creative I can be:"
There
was silence on the other end. Louis could imagine his little spy blanching and
quivering with fear.
"I
understand:"
"Excellent.
I'm glad we've settled this matter. Now on to more important matters. It seems
our mutual benefactor in France has placed a request upon our services.
Something, I'm afraid, you'll have to accomplish:"
"Wh
. . . what?"
"For
security purposes and to ensure their proprietary rights to what lies ahead,
they wish to choke off the team's communication to the outside world,
preferably as soon as possible without raising suspicion:"
"How
am I supposed to do that? You know I was supplied the computer virus to degrade
the team's satellite uplink, but the Rangers have their own communication
equipment. I wouldn't be able to get near it:"
"No
probleme. You get that virus planted and leave the Rangers to me:'
"But-"
"Have
faith. You are never alone:"
The
line was silent again. Louis smiled. His words had not reassured his agent.
"Update
me again tonight," Louis said.
A
pause. "I'll try."
"Don't
try . . . do."
"Yes,
Doctor." The line went dead.
Louis
lowered the radio and strode to Jacques. "We should be under way. The
other team has a good start on us:"
"Yes,
sir:" Jacques retreated to gather and organize his men.
Louis
noticed that Tshui still stood by the impaled creature. If he wasn't mistaken,
there was a trace of fear in the woman's eyes. But Louis wasn't sure. How could
he be? He had never seen such an emotion displayed by the Indian witch. He
crossed to her and pulled her into his arms.
She
trembled ever so slightly under his hand.
"Hush,
ma cherie. There is nothing to fear:"
Tshui
leaned against him, but her eyes flicked to the stake. She pulled tighter to
him, a slight moan escaping her lips.
Louis
frowned. Maybe he should heed his lover's unspoken warning. From here, they
should proceed with more caution, more stealth. The other team had almost been
destroyed by these aquatic predators, something never seen before. A clear sign
they were probably on the right path. But what if there are more hidden dangers
out there?
As he
pondered this risk, he realized his team possessed a certain inherent
advantage. Last night, it had taken all his opponents' cunning and ingenuity to
survive the assault-a battle which inadvertently had opened a safer path for
Louis's group to follow. So why not again? Why not let the other team flush out
any other threats?
Louis
mumbled, "Then we'll waltz in over their dead bodies and collect the
prize:" Pleased once again, he leaned and kissed the top of Tshui's head.
"Fear not, my love. We cannot lose:"
10:09
A. M.
HOSPITAL
WARD OF THE INSTAR INSTITUTE
LANGLEY
VIRGINIA
Lauren
O'Brien sat beside the bed, a book forgotten in her lap. Dr. Seuss's Green Eggs
and Ham, Jessie's favorite. Her grandchild was asleep, curled on her side. Her
fever had broken with the rising of the sun. The cocktail of
anti-inflammatories and antipyretics had done the job, slowly dropping the
child's temperature from 102 back to 98.6. No one was sure if Jessie had
contracted the jungle contagion-childhood fevers were common and plentiful-but
no one was taking any chances.
The
ward in which her granddaughter now slept was a closed system, sealed and
vented against the spread of any potential germ. Lauren herself wore a
one-piece disposable quarantine suit, outfitted with a selfbreathing mask. She
had refused at first, fearing the garb would further alarm Jessie. But policy
dictated that all hospital staff and visitors wear proper isolation gear.
When
Lauren had first entered the room, all suited up, Jessie had indeed appeared
frightened, but the clear faceplate of the mask and a few reassuring words
calmed her. Lauren had remained bedside all morning as Jessie was examined,
blood samples collected, and drugs administered. With the resilience of the
young, she now slept soundly.
A
slight whoosh announced a newcomer to the room. Lauren awkwardly turned in her
suit. She saw a familiar face behind another mask. She placed the book on a
table and stood. "Marshall:"
Her
husband crossed to her and enveloped her in his plastic-clad arms. "I read
her chart before coming in," he said, his voice sounding slightly tinny
and distant. "Fever's down:"
"Yes,
it broke a couple of hours ago:"
"Any
word yet on the lab work?" Lauren heard the fear in his voice.
"No
. . . it's too soon to tell if this is the plague:" Without knowing the
causative agent, there was no quick test. Diagnosis was made on a trio of
clinical signs: oral ulcerations, tiny submucosal hemorrhages, and a dramatic
drop in total white blood cell counts. But these symptoms typically would not
manifest until thirty-six hours after the initial fever. It would be a long
wait. Unless . . .
Lauren
tried to change the subject. "How did your conference call go with the CDC
and the folks in the Cabinet?"
Marshall
shook his head. "A waste of time. It'll be days until all the politicking
settles and a true course of action can be administered. The only good news is
that Blaine at the CDC supported my idea to close Florida's border. That
surprised me:"
"It
shouldn't," Lauren said. "I've been sending him case data all week.
including what's happening in Brazil. The implications are pretty damn
frightening."
"Well,
you must have shaken him up:" He squeezed her hand. "Thanks:"
Lauren
let out a long rattling sigh as she stared at the bed.
"Why
don't you take a break? I can watch over Jessie for a while. You should try to
catch a nap. You've been up all night:"
"I'll
never be able to sleep:"
Marshall
put his arm around her waist. "Then at least get some coffee and a little
breakfast. We have the midday call with Kelly and Frank scheduled in a couple
hours:"
Lauren
leaned against him. "What are we going to tell Kelly?"
"The
truth. Jessie has a fever, but it's nothing to panic about. We still don't know
for sure if it's the disease or not:"
Lauren
nodded. They remained silent for a bit, then Marshall guided her gently to the
door. "Go:"
Lauren
passed through the air-locked doors and crossed down the hall to the locker
room, where she stripped out of the suit and changed into scrubs. As she left
the locker room, she stopped by the nurses' station. "Did any of the labs
come back yet?"
A
small Asian nurse flipped a plastic case file to her. "These were faxed
just a minute ago:"
Lauren
flipped the file open and thumbed to the page of blood chemistries and
hematology results. Her finger ran down the long list. The chemistries were all
normal, as expected. But her nail stopped at the line for the total white blood
cell count:
TWBC:
2130 (L) 6,000-15,000
It was
low, significantly low, one of the trio of signs expected with the plague.
With
her finger trembling, she ran down the report to the section that detailed the
different white blood cell levels. There was one piece of news that the team's
epidemiologist, Dr. Alvisio, had mentioned to her late last night, a possible
pattern in the lab data that his computer model for the disease had noted: an
unusual spike of a specific line of white blood cells, basophils, that occurred
early in the disease as the total white blood cell levels were dropping. Though
it was too soon to say for certain, it seemed to be consistent in all cases of
the disease. It was perhaps a way to accelerate early detection.
Lauren
read the last line.
Basophil
count: 12 (H) 0-4
"Oh,
God:" She lowered the chart to the nurses' station. Jessie's basophil
levels were spiked above normal, well above normal.
Lauren
closed her eyes.
"Are
you okay, Dr. O'Brien?"
Lauren
didn't hear the nurse. Her mind was too full of a horrifying realization:
Jessie had the plague.
1 1:48
A.M.
AMAZON
JUNGLE
Kelly
followed the line of the others, bone tired but determined to keep moving. They
had been walking all night with frequent rest breaks. After the attack, they
had marched for a solid two hours, then made a temporary camp at dawn while the
Rangers contacted the field base in Wauwai. They had decided to push on until
at least midday, when they would use the satellite link to contact the States.
Afterward, the team would rest the remainder of the day, regroup, and decide
how to proceed.
Kelly
glanced at her watch. Noon approached. Thank God. Already she heard Waxman
grumbling about choosing a site for the day's camp. "Well away from any
waterways," she heard him warn.
All
day long, the team had been wary of streams and pools, skirting them or
crossing in a mad rush. But there were no further attacks.
Manny
had offered a reason. "Perhaps the creatures were local to just that small
territory. Maybe that's why the buggers were never seen before:"
"If
so, good riddance," Frank had voiced sourly.
They
had trudged onward, the morning drizzle drying slowly to a thick humid mist.
The moisture weighed everything down: clothes, packs, boots. But no one
complained about the march. All were glad to put distance between them and the
horror of the previous night.
From
up ahead, a Ranger scout called back. "A clearing!" It was Corporal
Warczak. As the unit's tracker, his scouting served double duty. He was also
watching for any physical evidence of Gerald Clark's passage. "The spot
looks perfect for a campsite!"
Kelly
sighed. "About time:"
"Check
it out!" Waxman said. "Make sure there are no close streams:"
"Yes,
sir! Kostos is already reconnoitering the area:"
Nate,
just a couple steps ahead of her, called forward, "Be careful There could
be-"
A
pained shout rose from ahead.
Everyone
froze, except Nate who rushed forward. "Damn it, doesn't anyone listen to
what I tell them?" he muttered as he ran. He glanced back to Kelly and
Kouwe and waved an arm. "We'll need your help! Both of you."
Kelly
moved to follow. "What is it?" she asked Kouwe.
The
Indian professor was already slinging his pack forward and working the straps
loose. "Supay chacra, I'd imagine. The devil's garden. C'mon:"
Devil's
garden? Kelly did not like the sound of that.
Captain
Waxman ordered the bulk of his Rangers to remain with the other civilians. He
and Frank joined in following Nate.
Kelly
hurried forward and saw a pair of Rangers on the ground ahead They seemed to be
fighting, one rolling in the dirt, the other striking him with the flat of his
hand.
Nate
ran toward them.
"Get
these goddamn shits off me!" the Ranger on the ground yelled, rolling
through the underbrush. It was Sergeant Kostos.
"I'm
trying," Corporal Warczak replied, continuing to slap at the man.
Nate
knocked the corporal aside. "Stop! You're only making them angrier."
Then to the soldier on the ground, he ordered, "Sergeant Kostos, lie
still!"
"They're
stinging me all over!"
Kelly
was now close enough to see that the man was covered with large black ants,
each about an inch long. There had to be thousands of them.
"Quit
moving and they'll leave you alone:"
Kostos
glanced to Nate, eyes burning and angry, but he did as told. He stopped
thrashing in the brush and lay panting.
Kelly
noticed the blistered welts all over his arms and face. It looked as if he had
been attacked with a burning cigarette butt.
"What
happened?" Captain Waxman asked.
Nate
held everyone away from Kostos. "Stand back:"
Kostos
trembled where he lay. Kelly saw the tears of pain at the corners of the man's
eyes. He must be in agony. But Nate's advice proved sound. As he lay, unmoving,
the ants stopped biting and crawled from his arms and legs, disappearing into
the leafy brush.
"Where
are they going?" Kelly asked.
"Back
home," Kouwe said. "They were the colony's soldiers:" He pointed
past a few trees. A few yards ahead opened a jungle clearing, so empty and bare
it looked as if someone had taken a broom and hedge clippers to the area. In
the center stood a massive tree, its branches spread through the space, a
solitary giant.
"It's
an ant tree," the professor continued to explain. "The ant colony
lives inside it:"
"Inside
it?"
Kouwe
nodded. "It's just one of the many ways rain forest plants have adapted to
animals or insects. The tree has evolved with special hollow branches and
tubules that serve the ants, even feeding the colony with a special sugary sap.
The tree in turn is serviced by the ants. Not only does the colony's debris
help fertilize the tree, but they're active in protecting it, too-from other
insects, from birds and animals:" Kouwe nodded to the clearing. "The
ants destroy anything that grows near the tree, trimming away stranglers or
climbers from the branches themselves. It's why such spots in the jungle are
called supay chacra, or a devil's garden:'
"What
a strange relationship."
"Indeed.
But the relationship is mutually beneficial to both species, tree and insect.
In fact, one cannot live without the other:"
Kelly
stared toward the clearing, amazed at how intertwined life was out here. A few
days back, Nate had shown her an orchid whose flower was shaped like the
reproductive parts of a certain species of wasp. "In order to lure the
insect over to pollinate it:" Then there were others that traded sugary
nectars to lure different pollinators. And such relationships weren't limited
to insect and plant. The fruit of certain trees had to be consumed by a
specific bird or animal and pass through its digestive tract before it could
root and grow. So much strangeness, all life dependent and twined to its
neighbors in a complex evolutionary web.
Nate
knelt beside the sergeant, drawing back her attention. By now, the ants had
vacated the soldier's body. "How many times have I warned you to watch
what you lean against?"
"I
didn't see them;" Kostos said, his voice pained and belligerent. "And
I needed to take a leak:"
Kelly
saw the man's zipper was indeed down.
Nate
shook his head. "Against an ant tree?"
Kouwe
explained as he rummaged through his pack. "Ants are tuned to chemical
markers. The man's urine would have been taken as an assault on the colony
living in the tree:"
Kelly
broke out a syringe of antihistamine, while Kouwe removed a handful of leaves
from his own pack and began to rub them together. She recognized the leaves and
the scent of the oily compound. "Ku-run-yeh?" she asked.
The
Indian smiled at her. "Very good:" It was the same medicinal plant
that Kouwe had used to treat her blistered fingers when she had touched the
fire liana vine. A potent analgesic.
The
two doctors began to work on their patient. As Kelly injected a combination of
an antihistamine and a steroidal anti-inflammatory, Kouwe smeared some of the
ku-run-yeh extract on the soldier's arm, showing him how to apply it.
The
sergeant's face reflected the immediate soothing relief. He sighed and took the
handful of leaves. "I can do the rest myself," he said, his voice
hard with embarrassment.
Corporal
Warczak helped his sergeant stand.
"We
should skirt around this area," Nate said. "We don't want to camp too
near an ant tree. Our food might draw their scouts:"
Captain
Waxman nodded. "Then let's get going. We've wasted enough time here:"
His glance toward the limping sergeant was not sympathetic.
Over
the next half hour, the group wound again under the forest canopy, accompanied
by the hoots and calls of capuchin and wooly monkeys. Manny pointed out a tiny
pigmy anteater nestled atop a branch. Frozen in place by fear, it looked more
like a stuffed animal with its large eyes and silky coat. And of more menace,
but appearing just as artificial due to its fluorescent-green scales, was a
forest pit viper, wrapped and dangling from a palm frond.
At
last, a shout arose from up ahead. It was Corporal Warczak. "I've found
something!"
Kelly
prayed it wasn't another ant tree.
"I
believe it's a marker from Clark!"
The
group converged toward the sound of his voice. Up a short hi' they found a
large Brazil nut tree. Its bower shaded a great area littered with old nuts and
leaves. Upon the trunk, a small strip of torn cloth hung. soaked and limp.
The
others approached, but Corporal Warczak waved them all away. "I've found
boot tracks," he said. "Don't trample them:"
"Boot
tracks?" Kelly said in a hushed voice as the soldier slowly circled the
tree, then stopped on the far side.
"I
see a trail leading here!" he called back.
Captain
Waxman and Frank crossed over to him.
Kelly
frowned. "I thought Gerald Clark came out of the forest barefooted:"
"He
did," Nate answered as they waited. "But the Yanomamo shaman we
captured mentioned that the Indian villagers had stripped Clark of his
possessions. They must have taken his boots:"
Kelly
nodded.
Richard
Zane pointed toward the tree. "Is there another message?"
They
all waited for the okay to enter the area. Captain Waxman and Frank returned,
leaving Corporal Warczak crouched by the trail.
The
group was waved forward. "We'll camp here," Waxman declared.
Sounds
of relief flowed, and the team approached the tree, decaying nuts crackling
underfoot. Kelly was one of the first to the trunk. Again, deeply incised in
the bark were clear markings.
"G.
C.: Clark again," Nate said. He pointed in the direction of the arrow.
"Due west. Just like the boot trail Warczak found. Dated May
seventh."
Olin leaned
against the tree. "May seventh? That means it took Clark ten days to reach
the village from here? He must have been moving damn slowly."
"He
probably didn't make a beeline like we did," Nate said. "He probably
spent a lot of time searching for some sign of habitation or civilization,
tracking back and forth."
"Plus
he was getting sick by this time," Kelly added. "According to my
mother's examination of his remains, the cancers would've been starting to
spread through his body. He probably had to rest often:"
Anna
Fong sighed sadly. "If only he could've reached civilization sooner . . .
been able to communicate where he'd been all this time:"
Olin
shoved away from the tree. "Speaking of communication, I should get the
satellite uplink set up. We're due to conference in another half hour."
"I'll
help you;" Zane said, heading off with him.
The
rest of the group dispersed to string up hammocks, gather wood, and scrounge up
some local fruits. Kelly busied herself with her own campsite, spreading her
mosquito netting like a pro.
Frank
worked beside her. "Kelly . . . ?" From her brother's tone, she could
tell he was about to tread on cautious ground.
"What?"
"I
think you should go back:"
She
stopped tugging her netting and turned. "What do you mean?"
"I've
been talking to Captain Waxman. When he reported the attack this morning to his
superiors, they ordered him to trim nonessential personnel after a safe camp
had been established. Last night was too close. They don't want to risk
additional casualties. Plus the others are slowing the Rangers down:"
Frank glanced over his shoulder. "To expedite our search, it's been
decided to leave Anna and Zane here, along with Manny and Kouwe:"
"But-"
"Olin,
Nate, and I will continue with the Rangers."
Kelly
turned fully around. "I'm not nonessential, Frank. I'm the only physician
here, and I can travel just as well as you:"
"Corporal
Okamoto is a trained field medic:"
"That
doesn't make him an M.D."
"Kelly.
. ."
"Frank,
don't do this:"
He
wouldn't meet her eyes. "It's already been decided:"
Kelly
circled to make him look at her. "You decided this. You're the leader of
this operation:"
He
finally looked up. "Okay, it was my decision." His shoulders sagged,
and he swung away. "I don't want you at risk:"
Kelly
fumed, trembling with frustration. But she knew the decision was indeed
ultimately her brother's.
"We'll
send out a GPS lock on our current position and leave two Rangers as guards.
Then a team will evacuate you as soon as a Brazilian supply helicopter with the
range to reach camp can be coordinated. In the meantime, the remaining
party-the six Rangers and the three of us-will strike out from here:"
"When?"
"After
a short rest break. We'll leave this afternoon. March until sundown. Now that
we're on Clark's trail, a smaller party can travel faster."
Kelly
closed her eyes, huffing out a sigh. The plan was sound. And with the contagion
spreading here and in the States, time was essential. Besides, if something was
found, a scientific research team could always be airlifted to the site to
investigate. "I guess I have no choice:"
Frank
remained silent, cinching his hammock for his short rest break.
A call
broke the tension. Olin, busy establishing the satellite uplink, shouted,
"We're ready here!"
Kelly
followed Frank to the laptop, again protected under a rain tarp.
Olin
hunched over the keyboard, tapping rapidly. "Damn it, I'm having trouble
getting a solid feed:" He continued working. "All this dampness . . .
ah, here we go!" He sat up. "Got it!"
The
ex-KGB agent slid to the side. Kelly crouched with Frank. A face formed on the
screen, jittering and pixellating out of focus.
"It's
the best I can manage," Olin whispered from the side.
It was
their father. Even through the interference, his hard face did not look
pleased. "I heard about last night," he said as introduction.
"It's good to see you're both safe:"
Frank
nodded. "We're fine. Tired but okay."
"I
read the report from the army, but tell me yourselves what happened:"
Together
Frank and Kelly quickly related the attack by the strange creatures.
"A
chimera?" her father said as they finished, eyes narrowed. "A mix of
frog and fish?"
"That's
what the biologist here believes," Kelly said pointedly, glancing to
Frank, stressing that even Manny had proven useful to the expedition.
"Then
that settles matters;" her father said, straightening and staring directly
at Kelly. "An hour ago I was contacted by the head of Special Forces out
of Fort Bragg and was informed of the revised plan:"
"What
revised plan?" Zane asked behind them.
Frank
waved away his question.
Their
father continued, "Considering what's happening with this damn disease, I
totally concur with General Korsen. A cure must be found, and time has become a
critical factor:"
Kelly
thought about protesting her expulsion, but bit her lip, knowing she would find
no ally in her father. He had not wanted his little girl to come out here in
the first place.
Frank
leaned closer to the screen. "What's the condition in the States?"
Their
father shook his head. "I'll let your mother answer that:" He slid
aside.
She
looked exhausted, her eyes shadowed with fatigue. "The number of cases. .
:" Lauren coughed and cleared her throat. "The number of cases has
trebled in the last twelve hours:"
Kelly
cringed. So fast . . .
"Mostly
in Florida, but we're now seeing cases in California, Georgia, Alabama, and
Missouri:'
"What
about in Langley?" Kelly asked. "At the Institute?"
A
glance was shared between her parents.
"Kelly.
. :" her father began. His tone sounded like Frank's from a moment ago,
cautionary. "I don't want you to panic:'
Kelly
sat up straighter, her heart already climbing into her throat. Don't panic? Did
those words ever calm someone? "What is it?"
"Jessie's
sick-"
The
next few words were lost on Kelly. Her vision darkened at the corners. She had
been dreading hearing those words since first learning of the contagion.
Jessie's sick . . .
Her
father must have noticed her falling back in her seat, pale and trembling.
Frank put his arm around her, holding her.
"Kelly,"
her father said. "We don't know if it's the disease. It's just a fever,
and she's already responding to medications. She was eating ice cream and
chattering happily when we came to make this call:"
Her
mother placed a hand on her father's shoulder, and they exchanged a look.
"It's probably not the disease, is it, Lauren?"
Their
mother smiled. "I'm sure it's not:"
Frank
sighed. "Thank God. Is anyone else showing symptoms?"
"Not
a one," her father assured them.
But
Kelly's eyes were fixed on her mother. Her smile now looked sickly and wan. Her
gaze slipped down.
Kelly
closed her own eyes. Oh, God . . .
"We'll
see you soon;" her father concluded.
Frank
nudged her.
She
nodded. "Soon..."
Zane
again spoke behind her. "What did your father mean that he'd see you soon?
What's this about revised plans? What's going on?"
Frank
gave Kelly a final squeeze. "Jessie's fine," he whispered to her.
"You'll see when you get home:" He then turned to answer Zane's
question.
Kelly
remained frozen before the laptop as the arguments began to rage behind her. In
her mind's eye, she again saw her mother's smile fade, her eyes lower in shame.
She knew her mother's moods better than anyone, possibly even better than her
father did. Her mother had been lying. She had seen the knowledge hidden behind
the reassuring words.
Jessie
had the disease. Her mother believed it. Kelly knew this with certainty. And if
her mother believed it . . .
Kelly
could not stop the tears. Busily arguing about the change in plans, the others
failed to notice her.
She
covered her face with her hand. Oh, God . . . no . . .
CHAPTER
ELEVEN
Aerial
Assault
AUGUST,
14, 1:24 PM.
AMAZON
JUNGLE
Nate
could not sleep. As he lay in his hammock, he knew he should be resting for the
next leg of the journey. In only another hour, his group was due to depart, but
questions still persisted. He stared around the campsite. While half the camp
napped, the other half were still quietly arguing about the split-up.
"We
can just follow them," Zane said. "What are they going to do, shoot
us?"
"We
should mind their orders," Kouwe said calmly, but Nate knew the older
professor was no more pleased with being abandoned than the Tellux rep.
Nate
turned his back on them, but he understood their frustration. If he had been
one of those left behind, they would've had to hog-tie him to stop him from
continuing on his own.
From
this new vantage, he spotted Kelly lying in her hammock. She was the only one
who had not protested. Her concern for her daughter was clearly foremost in her
mind. As he watched, Kelly rolled over and their gazes met. Her eyes were puffy
from tears.
Nate
gave up trying to nap and slid from his hammock. He crossed to her side and
knelt. "Jessie will be fine," he said softly.
Kelly
stared at him in silence, then spoke through her pain, her voice small.
"She has the disease:'
Nate
frowned. "Now that's just your fear talking. There's no proof that-"
"I
saw it in my mother's eyes. She could never hide anything from me. She knows
Jessie has the disease and is trying to spare me."
Nate
didn't know what to say. He reached through the netting and rested a hand on
her shoulder. He quietly comforted her, willing her strength, then spoke with
his heart, softly but earnestly, "If what you say is true, I'll find a
cure out there somewhere. I promise:"
This
earned a tired smile. Her lips moved, but no words came out. Still, Nate read
those lips easily. Thank you. A single tear rolled from her eyes before she
covered her face and turned away.
Nate
stood, leaving her to her grief. He noticed Frank and Captain Waxman conferring
over a map splayed across the ground and headed toward them. With a glance back
at Kelly, he silently repeated his promise. 1 will find a cure.
The
map the two were surveying was a topographic study of the terrain. Captain
Waxman drew a finger across the map. "Following due west of here, the land
elevates as it approaches the Peruvian border. But it's a broken jumble of
cliffs and valleys, a veritable maze. It'll be easy to get lost in there:"
"We'll
have to watch closely for Gerald Clark's signposts," Frank said, then
looked up to acknowledge Nate's presence. "You should get your pack ready.
We're gonna head out shortly and take advantage of as much daylight as we
can:"
Nate
nodded. "I can be ready in five minutes:"
Frank
stood. "Let's get moving then:"
Over
the next half hour, the team was assembled. They decided to leave the Rangers'
SATCOM radio equipment with the remaining party, who needed to coordinate the
retrieval effort by the Brazilian army. The group heading out would continue to
use the CIA's satellite array to maintain contact.
Nate
hoisted his shotgun to one shoulder and shifted his backpack to a comfortable
spot. The plan was to move swiftly, with few rest breaks, until sunset.
Waxman
raised an arm and the group headed off into the forest, led by Corporal
Warczak.
As
they left, Nate looked behind him. He had already said good-bye to his friends,
Kouwe and Manny. But behind the pair stood the two Rangers who would act as
guards: Corporal Jorgensen and Private Camera. The woman lifted her weapon in
farewell. Nate waved back.
Waxman
had originally slated Corporal Graves to remain behind, to be evacuated out, on
account of the death of his brother Rodney. But Graves had argued, "Sir,
this mission cost my brother's life along with my fellow teammates. With your
permission, I'd like to see it through to the end. For the honor of my brother
. . . for all my brothers:"
Waxman
had consented.
With
no further words, the group set off through the jungle. The sun had finally
broken through the clouds, creating a steam bath under the damp canopy. Within
minutes, everyone's face shone with sweat.
Nate
marched beside Frank O'Brien. Every few steps, the man slid off his baseball
cap and wiped the trickling dampness from his brow. Nate wore a handkerchief as
a headband, keeping the sweat from his own eyes. But he couldn't keep the black
flies and gnats, attracted by the salt and odor, from plaguing him.
Despite
the heat, humidity, and constant buzzing in their ears, they made good
progress. Within a couple of hours, Nathan estimated they had covered over
seven miles. Warczak was still finding bootprints in the bare soil as they
headed west into the jungle. The prints were barely discernable, pooled with
water from yesterday's rains.
Ahead
of him marched Corporal Okamoto, whistling his damn tune again. Nate sighed.
Didn't the jungle offer enough aggravations?
As
they continued, Nate kept wary watch for any perils: snakes, fire liana, ant
trees, anything that might slow them down. Each stream was crossed with
caution. But no sign of the piranha-frogs appeared. Overhead, Nate saw a
three-toed sloth amble along a branch high in the canopy, oblivious to the
intrusion. He watched its passage, glancing over his shoulder as he walked
under it. Sloths seemed slow and amiable, but when injured, they were known to
gut those who came too close. Their climbing claws were dagger-sharp. But this
great beast just continued its arboreal journey.
Turning
back around, Nate caught the barest flicker of something reflecting from high
in a tree, about half a mile back. He paused to study it.
"What
is it?" Frank asked, noticing Nate had stopped.
The
flickering reflection vanished. He shook his head. Probably just a wet leaf
fluttering in the sunlight. "Nothing," he said and waved Frank on.
But throughout the remainder of the afternoon, he kept glancing over his
shoulder. He could not escape the feeling that they were being watched, spied
upon from on high. The feeling grew worse as the day wore on.
Finally,
he turned to Frank. "Something's bothering me. Something we neglected to
address after the attack back at the village:"
"What?"
"Remember
Kouwe's assessment that we were being tracked?"
"Yeah,
but he wasn't a hundred percent sure. Just some picked fruit and bushes
disturbed during the night. No footprints or anything concrete:"
Nate
glanced over his shoulder. "Let's say the professor was correct. If so,
who's tracking us? It couldn't have been the Indians at the village. They were
dead before we even entered the jungle. So who was it?"
Frank
noticed the direction of Nate's stare. "You think we're still being
tracked. Did you see something?"
"No,
not really . . . just an odd reflection in the trees a while back. It's
probably nothing:"
Frank
nodded. "All the same, I'll let Captain Waxman know. It wouldn't hurt to
be on extra guard out here:" Frank dropped back to speak with the Rangers'
leader, who was marching with Olin Pasternak.
Alone,
Nate stared into the shadowy forest around him. He was suddenly less sure that
leaving the others behind was such a wise move.
5:12
PM.
Manny
ran a brush through Tor-tor's coat. Not that the bit of hygiene was necessary.
The jaguar did a good enough job with his own bristled tongue. But it was a
chore that both cat and human enjoyed. Tor-tor responded with a slow growl as
Manny groomed the cat's belly. Manny wanted to growl himself, but not in
contentment and pleasure.
He
hated being left behind by the others.
Hearing
a rustle at his side, Manny glanced up. It was the anthropologist, Anna Fong.
"May I?" She pointed to the jaguar.
Manny
lifted an eyebrow in mild surprise. He had noticed the woman eyeing the cat
before, but he had thought it was with more fear than interest.
"Sure:" He patted the spot next to him. She knelt, and he handed her
the brush. "He especially likes his belly and ruff worked over."
Anna
took the brush and bent over the sleek feline. She stretched her arm,
cautiously wary as Tor-tor watched her. She slowly lowered the brush and drew
it through his thick coat. "He's so beautiful. Back at home, in Hong Kong,
I watched the cats stalk back and forth in their cages at the zoo. But to raise
one of them yourself, how wonderful that must be:"
Manny
liked the way she talked, soft with a certain stilted diction, oddly formal.
"Wonderful, you say? He's been eating through my household budget, chewed
through two sofas, and shredded I don't know how many throw rugs:"
She
smiled. "Still . . . it must be worth it:"
Manny
agreed, but he was reluctant to speak it aloud. It was somehow unmanly to
express how much he loved the great big lug. "I'll have to release him
soon:"
Though
he tried to hide it, she must have heard the sorrow in his words. Anna glanced
up to him, her eyes supportive. "I'm sure it's still worth it"
Manny
grinned shyly. It sure was.
Anna
continued to massage the cat with the brush. Manny watched her from the side.
One fall of her silky hair was tucked behind an ear. Her nose crinkled ever so
slightly as she concentrated on the cat's grooming.
"Everyone!"
a voice called out, interrupting them.
They
both turned.
Nearby,
Corporal Jorgensen lowered the radio's receiver and shook his head. He turned
and faced the camp. "Everyone. I've got good news and bad news:"
A
universal grumbling met the soldier's attempt at joviality.
"The
good news is that the Brazilian army has rousted up a helicopter to fly us out
of here:"
"And
the bad?" Manny asked.
Jorgensen
frowned. "It won't be here for another two days. With the plague spreading
through the region, the demand for aircraft is fierce. And for the moment, our
evac is a low priority."
"Two
days?" Manny spoke up, accepting the brush back from Anna. Irritation
entered his voice. "Then we could've traveled with the others until then:"
"Captain
Waxman had his orders," Jorgensen said with a shrug.
"What
about the Comanche helicopter stationed at Wauwai?" Zane asked. He had
been lounging in his hammock, quietly fuming.
Private
Camera answered from where she was cleaning her weapon. "It's a two-Beater
attack chopper. Besides, the Comanche's held in reserve to back up the other
team as necessary."
Manny
shook his head and furtively glanced at Kelly O'Brien. She sat in her hammock,
eyes tired, dull, defeated. The waiting would be the worst for her. Two more
days lost before she could join her sick daughter.
Kouwe
spoke from near the large Brazil nut tree. He had been examining the crude
markings knifed in the bark by Clark, and now had his head cocked
questioningly. "Does anyone else smell smoke?"
Manny
sniffed, but the air seemed clear.
Anna
crimped her brow. "I smell something. . :'
Kouwe
swung around the base of the large Brazil nut tree, nose half raised. Though
long out of the forests, the professor's Indian senses were still keen.
"There!" he called out from the far side.
The
group followed after him. Camera quickly slapped her M-16 back together,
hauling it up as she stood.
To the
south of their camp, about a hundred feet into the forest, small flames
flickered in the shadows, low to the ground. Through breaks in the canopy, a
thin column of gray smoke drifted skyward.
"I'll
investigate," Jorgensen said. "The rest hang back with Camera:"
"I'm
going with you," Manny said. "If anyone's out there, Tor-tor will
scent them:"
As
answer, Jorgensen unstrapped the M-9 pistol from his belt and passed it to
Manny. Together they cautiously passed into the deeper jungle. Manny signaled
with his hand, and Tor-tor trotted ahead of them, taking the point.
Back
behind them, Camera ordered everyone together. "Keep alert!"
Manny
followed after his cat, walking abreast of Corporal Jorgensen. "The fire's
burning on the ground," Manny whispered.
As
they neared the spot, the corporal signaled for silence.
Both men's
senses were stretched, watching for any shift of shadows, listening for the
telltale snap of a twig, searching for any sign of a hidden threat. But with
the twittering of birds and mating calls of monkeys, it was difficult work.
Their steps slowed as they neared the smoldering glow.
Ahead
Tom-tom edged closer, his natural feline curiosity piqued. But once within a
few yards of the smoky fire, he suddenly crouched, growling. He stared at the
flames and slowly backed away.
The
men stopped. Jorgensen lifted a hand, a silent warning. The jaguar sensed
something. He motioned for Manny to sink lower and take up a guard position.
Once set, Jorgensen proceeded ahead. Manny held his breath as the corporal
moved silently through the forest, stepping carefully, weapon ready.
Manny
kept watch all around them, unblinking, ears straining. Tor-tor backed to his
side, now silent, hackles raised, golden eyes aglow. Beside him, Manny heard
the cat chuffing at the air. Manny remembered the cat's reaction to the caiman urine
beside the river. He smells something . . . something that has him spooked.
With
adrenaline doped in Manny's blood, his own senses were more acute. Alerted by
the jaguar, Manny now recognized an odd scent to the smoke: metallic, bitter,
acrid. It was not plain wood smoke.
Straightening,
Manny wanted to warn Jorgensen, but the soldier had already reached the site.
As the soldier eyed the burning patch, Manny saw the man's shoulders jerk with
surprise. He slowly circled the smoldering fire, rifle pointed outward. Nothing
came out of the forest to threaten. Jorgenson maintained his watch for a full
two minutes, then waved Manny over.
Letting
out his held breath, Manny approached. Tor-tor hung back, still refusing to
approach the fire.
"Whoever
set this must have run off," Jorgensen said. He pointed at the fire.
"Meant to scare us:"
Manny
moved close enough to see the spread of flames on the forest floor. It was not
wood that burned, but some thick oily paste painted atop a cleared section of
dirt. It cast a fierce brightness but little heat. The smoke rising from it was
redolent and cloying, like some musky incense.
But it
was not the smoke nor the strange fuel of this fire that sent icy chills along
Manny's limbs-it was the pattern.
Painted
and burning on the jungle floor was a familiar serpentine coiled symbol-the
mark of the Ban-ali, burning bright under the canopy's gloom.
Jorgensen
used the tip of his boot to nudge the oily substance. "Some combustible
paste:' He then used his other foot to kick dirt over the spot, smothering the
flames. He worked along the burning lines, and with Manny's help, they doused
the fire. Once they were done, Manny stared up, following the smoke into the
late afternoon sky.
"We
should get back to camp:"
Manny
nodded. They retreated back to the bower under the large Brazil nut tree.
Jorgensen reported what they discovered. "I'll radio the field base. Let
them know what we found:" He crossed to the bulky radio pack and picked up
the receiver. After a few moments, the soldier swore and slammed the receiver
down.
"What
is it?" Manny asked.
"We've
missed SATCOM's satellite window by five minutes:'
"What
does that mean?" Anna asked.
Jorgensen
waved an arm at the radio unit, then at the sky overhead. "The military's
satellite transponders are out of range:"
"Until
when?"
"Till
four o'clock tomorrow morning:'
"What
about reaching the other team?" Manny asked. "Using your personal
radios?"
"I
already tried that, too. The Sabers only have a range of six miles. Captain
Waxman's team is beyond our reach:"
"So
we're cut off?" Anna asked.
Jorgensen
shook his head. "Just until morning."
"And
what then?" Zane paced nervously, eyes on the forest. "We can't stay
here for two more days waiting for that damned helicopter."
"I
agree," Kouwe said, frowning deeply. "The village Indians found the
same mark on their shabano the very night they were assaulted by the piranha
creatures:"
Private
Camera turned to him. "What are you suggesting?"
Kouwe
frowned. "I'm not sure yet:" The professor's eyes were fixed on the
smoggy smudge in the sky. The forest still reeked of the bitter fumes.
"But we've been marked:"
5:33
PM.
Frank
was never happier to see the sun sink toward the horizon. They should be
stopping soon. Every muscle ached from so many hours of hiking and so little
sleep. He stumbled in step with the Ranger ahead of him, Nate marching behind.
Someone
yelled a short distance away. "Whoa! Check this out!"
The
straggling team members increased their pace. Frank climbed a short rise and
saw what had triggered the startled response. A quarter mile ahead, the jungle
was flooded by a small lake. Its surface was a sheet of silver from the setting
sun to the west. It blocked their path, spreading for miles in both directions.
"It's
an igapo," Nate said. "A swamp forest:"
"It's
not on my map," Captain Waxman said.
Nate
shrugged. "Such sections dot the Amazon basin. Some come and go according
to the rainfall levels. But for this region still to be so wet at the end of
the dry season suggests it's been here a while:" Nate pointed ahead.
"Notice how the jungle breaks down here, drowned away by years of
continual swamping:"
Frank
indeed noticed how the dense canopy ended ahead. What remained of the jungle
here were just occasional massive trees growing straight out of the water and
thousands of islands and hummocks. Otherwise, above the swamp, the blue sky was
open and wide. The brightness after so long in the green gloom was sharp and
biting.
The
group cautiously hiked down the long, low slope that headed toward the swamp.
The air seemed to grow more fecund and thick. Around the swamp, spiky
bromeliads and massive orchids adorned their view. Frogs and toads set up a
chorus, while the chattering of birds attempted to drown out their amphibious neighbors.
Near the water's edges, spindly-limbed wading birds, herons and egrets, hunted
fish. A handful of ducks took wing at their noisy approach.
Once
within fifty feet of the water's edge, Captain Waxman called a halt.
"We'll search the bank for any sign of a marker, but first we should make
sure the water is safe to be near. I don't want any surprises:"
Nate
moved forward. "We may be okay. According to Manny, those predatory
creatures were part piranha. Those fish don't like standing water like this. They
prefer flowing streams:"
Captain
Waxman glanced to him. "And the last time I checked, piranhas didn't chase
their prey onto dry land either."
Frank
saw Nate blush slightly and nod.
Waxman
sent Corporal Yamir forward toward the swamp's edge. "Let's see if
anything stirs up:"
The
Pakistani soldier raised his M-16 and shot a grenade from its attached launcher
toward the shallows off to the side. The explosion geysered water high into the
air, startling birds and monkeys from their perches. Water and bits of lily
pads rained down upon the forest.
The
party waited for ten minutes, but nothing responded. No venomous predators fled
the assault or attacked from the water's edge.
Captain
Waxman waved his men forward to begin the search for another tree marker.
"Be careful. Stay away from the water's edge and keep your eyes
open!"
They
didn't have long to wait. Again Corporal Warczak, the team's tracker, raised
his voice. "Found it!" He stood only ten yards to the right, not far
from the sludgy water.
Upon the
bole of a palm that leaned over the water was the now familiar strip of
polyester cloth, nailed to the tree with a thorn. The markings were almost
identical to the last one. The initials and an arrow pointing due west again,
right toward the swamp. Only the date was different. "May fifth,"
Olin read aloud. "Two days from the last marker:"
Warczak
stood a few paces away. "It looks like Clark came from this way."
"But
the arrow points across the water," Frank said. He tipped the bill of his
baseball cap to shadow his eyes and stared over the water. Distantly, beyond
the swamp, he could see the highlands that Captain Waxman had shown him on the
topographic map: a series of red cliff faces, broken with jungle-choked chasms
and separated into tall forest-crowned mesas.
At his
side, Corporal Okamoto passed him a set of binoculars. "Try these."
"Thanks:"
Frank fitted the scopes in place. Nate was also offered a pair. Through the
lenses, the cliffs and mesas grew clearer. Small waterfalls tumbled from the
towering heights into the swampy region below, while thick mists clung to the
lower faces, obscuring the forested chasms that stretched from the swamp and up
into the highlands.
"Those
small streams and falls must feed the swamp," Nate said. "Keeping the
area wet year round:"
Frank
lowered his glasses and found Captain Waxman studying a compass.
Nate
pointed to the tree. "I wager that this marker points to Clark's next
signpost. He must have had to circle around the swamp:" Nate stared at the
huge boggy spread of the water. "It would've taken him weeks to skirt the
water."
Frank
heard the despair in Dr. Rand's voice. To hike around the swamp would take them
just as long.
Captain
Waxman lifted his eyes from the compass and squinted across the swamp. "If
the marker lies straight across, that's where we'll go:" He pointed an
arm. "It'll only take us a day to raft across here, rather than losing a
week hiking:"
"But
we have no rubber raiders," Frank said.
Waxman
glanced to him condescendingly. "We're Army Rangers, not Boy Scouts:"
He waved to the forest. "There are plenty of downed logs, acres of bamboo,
and with the rope we have with us and the vines around us, we should be able to
lash together a couple of rafts. It's what we're trained to do-improvise with
the resources available:" He glanced to the distant shore. "It can't
be more than a couple miles to cross here:"
Nate
nodded. "Good. We can shave days off the search:"
"Then
let's get to work! I want to be finished by nightfall, so we're rested and
ready in the morning to cross:" Waxman assembled various teams: to roll
and manhandle logs to the swamp's edge, to go out with axes and hack lengths of
bamboo, and to strip vines for lashing material.
Frank
assisted where needed and was surprised how quickly the building material
accumulated on the muddy shore. They soon had enough for a flotilla of rafts.
The assembling took even less time. Two matching logs were aligned parallel and
topped with a solid layer of bamboo. Ropes and vines secured it all together. The
first raft was shoved through the slick mud and into the water, bobbing in the
shallows.
A
cheer rose from the Rangers. Nate grinned approvingly as he sculpted paddles
from bamboo and dried palm fronds.
A
second raft was soon finished. The entire process took less than two hours.
Frank
watched the second raft drift beside its mate. By now, the sun was setting. The
western sky was aglow with a mix of reds, oranges, and splashes of deep indigo.
Around
him, the camp was being set up. A fire lit, hammocks strung, food being
prepared. Frank turned to join them when he spotted a dark streak against the
bright sunset. He pinched his eyebrows, squinting.
Corporal
Okamoto was passing Frank with an armful of tinder. "Can I borrow your
binoculars?" Frank asked.
"Sure.
Grab 'em from my field jacket." The soldier shifted his burden.
Frank
thanked him and took the glasses. Once Okamoto had continued past, Frank raised
the binoculars to his eyes. It took him a moment to find the dark streak rising
in the sky. Smoke? It rose from the distant highlands. A sign of habitation? He
followed the curling black line.
"What
do you see?" Nate said.
"I'm
not sure:" Frank pointed to the sky. "I think it's smoke. Maybe from
another camp or village:"
Nate
frowned and took the glasses. "Whatever it is," he said after a
moment, "it's drifting this way."
Frank
stared. Even without the binoculars, he could see that Nate was correct. The
column of smoke was arching toward them. Frank lifted a hand. "That makes
no sense. The wind is blowing in the opposite direction."
"I
know," Nate said. "It's not smoke. Something is flying this way."
"I'd
better alert the captain:"
Soon
everyone was outfitted with binoculars, staring upward. The ribbon of darkness
had become a dense black cloud, sweeping directly toward them.
"What
are they?" Okamoto mumbled. "Birds? Bats?"
"I
don't think so," Nate said. The smoky darkness still appeared to be more
cloud than substance, its edges billowing, ebbing, flowing as it raced toward
them.
"What
the hell are they?" someone mumbled.
In a
matter of moments, the dark cloud swept over the campsite, just above tree
level, blocking the last of the sunlight. The team was immediately flooded by a
high-pitched droning. After so many days in the jungle, it was a familiar
sound-but amplified. The tiny hairs on Frank's body vibrated to the subsonic
whine.
"Locusts,"
Nate said, craning upward. "Millions of them:"
As the
cloud passed overhead, the lower edges of the swarm rattled the leafy foliage.
The team ducked warily from the creatures, but the locusts passed them without
pausing, sweeping east.
Frank
lowered his binoculars as the tail end of the cloud droned over them.
"What are they doing? Migrating or something?"
Nate
shook his head. "No. This behavior makes no sense:'
"But
they're gone now," Captain Waxman said, ready to dismiss the aerial show.
Nate
nodded, but he glanced to the east, one eye narrowed. "Yes, but where are
they going?"
Frank
caught Nate's glance. Something did lie to the east: the other half of their
party. Frank swallowed back his sudden fear. Kelly . . .
7:28
PM.
As the
day darkened into twilight, Kelly heard a strange noise, a sharp whirring or
whine. She walked around the Brazil nut tree. Squinting her eyes, she tried to
focus on its source.
"You
hear it, too?" Kouwe asked, meeting her on the far side of the trunk.
Nearby,
the two Rangers stood with weapons raised. Others stood by the camp's large
bonfire, feeding more dry branches and bamboo to the flames. With the threat of
someone stalking around their camp, they wanted as much light as possible.
Stacked beside the fire was a large pile of additional fodder for the flames,
enough to last the night.
"That
noise . . . it's getting louder," Kelly mumbled. "What is it?"
Kouwe
cocked his head. "I'm not sure."
By
now, others heard the noise, too. It rose quickly to a feverish pitch. Everyone
started glancing to the sky.
Kelly
pointed to the rosy gloaming to the west. "Look!"
Cast
against the glow of the setting sun, a dark shadow climbed the skies, a black
cloud, spreading and sweeping toward them.
"A
swarm of locusts;" Kouwe said, his voice tight with suspicion.
"They'll do that sometimes in mating season, but it's the wrong time of
the year. And I've never seen a swarm this big:"
"Is
it a threat?" Jorgensen asked from a few steps away.
"Not
usually. More a pest for gardens and jungle farms. A large enough cloud of
locusts can strip leaf, vegetable, and fruit from a spot in mere minutes."
"What
about people?" Richard Zane asked.
"Not
much of a threat. They're herbivorous, but they can bite a little when
panicked. It's nothing more than a pinprick:" Kouwe eyed the swarm.
"Still. . ."
"What?"
Kelly asked.
"I
don't like the coincidence of such a swarm appearing after finding the Ban-ali mark."
"Surely
there can't be any connection," Anna said at Richard's side.
Manny
approached with Tor-tor. The great cat whined in chorus with the locusts, edgy
and padding a slow circle around his master. "Professor, you aren't
thinking the locusts might be like the piranha creatures? Some new threat from
the jungle, another attack?"
Kouwe
glanced to the biologist. "First there was the mark at the village, then
piranhas. Now a mark here, and a strange swarm rises:" Kouwe strode over
to his pack. "It's a coincidence that we shouldn't dismiss:"
Kelly
felt a cold certainty that the professor was right.
"What
can we do?" Jorgensen asked. His fellow soldier, Private Carrera, kept
watch with him. The front edge of the swarm disappeared into the twilight gloom
overhead, one shadow merging with another.
"First
shelter. . ." Kouwe glanced up, his eyes narrowing with concentration.
"They're almost here. Everyone into their hammocks! Close the mosquito
netting tight and keep your flesh away from the fabric."
Zane
protested. "But-"
"Now!"
Kouwe barked. He began to dig more purposefully in his pack.
"Do
as he says!" Jorgensen ordered, shouldering his useless weapon.
Kelly
was already moving. She ducked into her tent of mosquito netting, glad that
they had set up camp earlier. She closed the opening and positioned a stone
atop the flap to hold the cheesecloth netting in place. Once secure, she
clambered onto her hammock, tucking her legs and arms tight around herself,
keeping her head ducked from the tent's top.
She
glanced around her. The rest of her party were digging in, too, each hammock a
solitary island of shrouded material. Only one member of the camp was still
outside.
"Professor
Kouwe!" Jorgensen called from his spot. The soldier began to clamber out
of his netted tent.
"Stay!"
Kouwe ordered as he rummaged in his pack.
Jorgensen
froze with indecision. "What're you doing?"
"Preparing
to fight fire with fire:"
Suddenly,
from clear skies, it began to rain. The canopy rattled with the familiar sounds
of heavy drops striking leaves. But it was not water that cascaded from the
skies. Large black insects pelted through the dense canopy and dove earthward.
The
swarm had reached them.
Kelly
saw one insect land on her netting. It was three inches long, its black
carapace shining like oil in the firelight. Trebled wings twitched on its back
as it fought to keep its perch. She balled her limbs tighter around herself.
She had seen locusts and cicadas before, but nothing like this monstrous bug.
It had no eyes. Its face was all clashing mandibles, gnashing at the air.
Though blind, it was not senseless. Long antennae probed through the netting's
mesh, swiveling like a pair of divining rods. Other of its brethren struck the
netting with little smacks, clinging with segmented black legs.
A cry
of pain drew her attention to Kouwe. The professor stood five yards away, still
crouched by the fire. He swatted a locust on his arm.
"Professor!"
Jorgensen called out.
"Stay
where you are!" Kouwe fought the leather tie on a tiny bag. Kelly saw the
blood dripping from his arm from the locust's bite. Even from here, she could
tell it was a deep wound. She prayed the bugs were not venomous, like the
piranhas. Kouwe crouched closer to the fire, his skin ruddy and aglow. But the
flames' intense heat and smoke seemed to keep the worst of the swarm at bay.
All
around the forest, locusts flitted and whined. With each breath, more and more
filled the space.
"They're
chewing through the netting!" Zane cried in panic.
Kelly
turned her attention to the bugs closer at hand. The first attacker had
retracted its antennae and was indeed gnashing at the netting, slicing through
with its razored jaws. Before it could burrow inside, Kelly struck out with the
back of her hand and knocked it away. She didn't kill it, but her netting was
protected from further damage. She went to work on the other clinging insects.
"Smack
them loose!" she yelled back to the others. "Don't give them a chance
to bite through!"
Another
yelp erupted from nearby. "Goddamn it!" It was Manny. A loud slap
sounded, followed by more swearing.
Kelly
couldn't get a good look at his position since his hammock was behind hers.
"Are you okay?"
"One
crawled under the netting!" Manny called back. "Be careful! The
buggers pack a vicious bite. The saliva burns with some type of digestive
acid:"
Again
she prayed the insects weren't toxic. She twisted around to get a look at
Manny, but all she could make out was Tor-tor pacing at the edge of his
master's tent. Clusters of the black insects crawled across the cat's fur,
making it look as if his spots were squirming. The jaguar ignored the pests,
its dense coat a natural barrier. One landed on the cat's nose, but a paw
simply batted it away.
By
now, the area buzzed with wings. The constant whine set Kelly's teeth on edge.
In moments, the swarm thickened. It grew difficult to see much outside her
tent. It was as if a swirling black fog had descended over them. The bugs
coated everything, chewing and biting. Kelly focused her attention on knocking
the insects off her netting, but it quickly became a losing battle. The bugs
crawled and skittered everywhere.
As she
struggled, sweat dripped down her face and into her eyes. Panicked, she batted
and swung at the clinging insects and began to lose hope.
Then
in her mind's eye, she pictured Jessie in a hospital bed, arms stretched out
for her missing mother, crying her name. "Damn it!" She fought the
insects more vigorously, refusing to give up.
I
won't die here . . . not like this, not without seeing Jessie.
A
sharp sting flamed from her thigh. Using the flat of her hand, she crushed the
insect with a gasp. Another landed on her arm. She shook it away in disgust. A
third scrabbled in her hair.
As she
fought, a scream built like a storm in her chest. Her tent had been breached.
Cries arose from other spots in the camp. They were all under assault.
They
had lost.
Jessie
. . . Kelly moaned, striking a locust from her neck. I'm sorry, baby. New
stings bloomed on her calves and ankles. She futilely kicked, eyes weeping in
pain and loss.
It
soon became hard to breathe. She coughed, choking. Her eyes began to sting
worse. A sharp smell filled her nostrils, sweet with resins, like green pine
logs in a hearth. She coughed again.
What
was happening?
Through
her tears, she watched the dense swarm disperse as if blown by a mighty gust.
Directly ahead, the camp's bonfire grew clearer. She spotted Kouwe standing on
the far side of the flames, waving a large palm frond over the fire, which had
grown much smokier.
"Tok-tok
powder!" Kouwe called to her. His body was covered with bleeding bites.
"A headache medicine and, when burned, a powerful insect repellent:"
The
locusts clinging to her netting dislodged and winged away from the odor. Kelly
vaguely remembered Nate telling her how the Indians would stake their gardens
with bamboo torches and burn some type of powder as an insect repellent to
protect their harvest. She silently thanked the Indians of the forest for their
ingenuity.
Once
the locusts had dwindled to only a few stragglers, Kouwe waved to her, to all
of them. "Come here!" he called. "Quickly!"
She
climbed from her hammock, and after a moment's hesitation, she slipped through
her netting, now ragged and frayed. Ducking low, she crossed to the fire.
Others followed in step behind her.
The
smoke was choking and cloying, but the insects held back. The locusts had not
dispersed. The swarm still whined and whirred overhead in a dark cloud.
Occasional bombers would dive toward them and away, chased off by the fire's
smoke.
"How
did you know the smoke would work?" Jorgensen asked.
"I
didn't. At least not for sure:" Kouwe panted slightly and continued to
waft his palm frond as he explained. "The flaming Ban-ali symbol in the
jungle . . . the amount of smoke and the strong scent of it. I thought it might
be some sort of signal:"
"A
smoke signal?" Zane asked.
"No,
more of a scent signal," Kouwe said. "Something in the smoke drew the
locusts here specifically."
Manny
grunted at this idea. "Like a pheromone or something:"
"Perhaps.
And once here, the little bastards were bred to lay waste to anything in the
area:"
"So
what you're saying is that we were marked for death," Anna commented.
"The locusts were sent here on purpose:"
Kouwe
nodded. "The same could be true with the piranha creatures. Something must
have drawn them specifically to the village, maybe another scent trace,
something dribbled in the water that guided them to the shabano:" He shook
his head. "I don't know for sure. But for a second time, the Ban-ali have
called the jungle down upon us:"
"What
are we going to do?" Zane asked. "Will the powder last till dawn?"
"No:"
Kouwe glanced to the dark swarm around them.
8:O5
PM.
Nate
was tired of arguing. He, Captain Waxman, and Frank were still in the midst of
a debate that had been going on for the past fifteen minutes. "We have to
go back and investigate," he insisted. "At least send one person to
check on the others. He can be there and back before dawn:"
Waxman
sighed. "They were only locusts, Dr. Rand. They passed over us with no
harm. What makes you think the others are at risk?"
Nate
frowned. "I have no proof. Just my gut instinct. But I've lived all
my
life in these jungles and something was unnatural about the way those locusts
were swarming:'
Frank
initially had been on Nate's side, but slowly he had warmed to the Ranger's
logic of wait-and-see. "I think we should consider Captain Waxman's plan.
First thing tomorrow morning, when the satellites are overhead, we can relay a
message to the others and make sure they're okay"
"Besides,"
Waxman added, "now that we're down to six Rangers, I'm not about to risk a
pair on this futile mission-not without some sign of real trouble:"
"I'll
go myself." Nate balled a fist in frustration.
"I
won't allow it:" Waxman shook his head. "You're just jumping at
shadows, Dr. Rand. In the morning, you'll see they're okay."
Nate's
mind spun, trying to find some way past the captain's obstinate attitude.
"Then at least let me head out with a radio. See if I can get close enough
to contact someone over there. What's the range on your personal radios?"
"Six
or seven miles:"
"And
we traveled roughly fifteen miles. That means I would only have to hike back
eight miles to be within radio range of the others. I could be back before
midnight:'
Waxman
frowned.
Frank
moved a step closer to Nathan. "Still . . . it's not a totally foolhardy
plan, Captain. In fact, it's a reasonable compromise:"
Nate
recognized the pained set to Frank's eyes. It was his sister out there. So far
the man had been balancing between fear for his sister and Waxman's reasonable
caution, trying his best to be a logical operations leader while reining in his
own concern.
"I'm
sure the others are okay," Nate pressed. "But it doesn't hurt to be a
little extra wary . . . especially after the last couple of days:"
Frank
was now nodding.
"Let
me take a radio," Nate urged.
Waxman
puffed out an exasperated breath and conceded. "But you're not going
alone:"
Nate
bit back a shout. Finally . . .
"I'll
send one of the Rangers with you. I won't risk two of my men:'
"Good
. . . good:" Frank seemed almost to sag with relief. He turned to Nate, a
look of gratitude in his eyes.
Captain
Waxman turned. "Corporal Warczak! Front and center!"
8:23
PM.
Manny and
the others stood by the fire, smoke billowing around them. The pall from the
powder kept the locusts in check. All around, the swarm swirled, a black
cocoon, holding them trapped. Manny's eyes stung as he studied the flames. How
long would the professor's tok-tok powder last? Already the smoke seemed less
dense.
"Here!"
Kelly said behind him. She passed him a two-foot length of bamboo from the pile
of tinder beside the fire, then returned to work, kneeling with Professor
Kouwe. The Indian shaman was packing a final piece of bamboo with a plug of
tok-tok powder.
Manny
shifted his feet nervously. The professor's plan was based on too many
assumptions for his liking.
Finished
with the last stick of bamboo, Kelly and Kouwe stood. Manny stared around the fire.
Everyone had packs in place and was holding a short length of bamboo, like his
own.
"Okay,"
Jorgensen said. "Ready?"
No one
answered. Everyone's eyes reflected the same mix of panic and fear.
Jorgensen
nodded. "Light the torches:"
As a
unit, each member reached and dipped the ends of their bamboo in the bonfire's
flames. The powder ignited along with the dry wood. As they pulled the bamboo
free, smoke wafted in thick curls up from their makeshift torches.
"Keep
them close, but held aloft," Kouwe instructed, demonstrating with his own
torch. "We must move quickly."
Manny
swallowed. He eyed the whirring wall of locusts. He had been bitten only twice.
But the wounds still ached. Tor-tor kept close to his side, rubbing against
him, sensing the fear in the air.
"Keep
together," Kouwe hissed as they began to walk away from the sheltering
fire and toward the waiting swarm.
The
plan was to use the tiki torches primed with tok-tok powder to breach the swarm
while holding the locusts at bay. Under this veil of smoky protection, the team
would attempt to flee the area. As Kouwe had explained earlier, "The
locusts were drawn specifically here by the scent from the burning Ban-ali
symbol. If we get far enough away from this specific area, we might escape
them:"
It was
a risky plan, but they didn't have much choice. The shaman's supply of powder
was meager. It would not keep the bonfire smoking for more than another hour or
two. And the locusts seemed determined to remain in the area. So it was up to
them-they would have to vacate the region.
"C'mon,
Tor-tor:' Manny followed after Corporal Jorgensen. Behind and to the side, the
group moved in a tight cluster, torches held high. Manny's ears were full of
the swarm's drone. As he walked, he prayed Kouwe's assumptions were sound.
No one
spoke . . . no one even breathed. The group trod slowly forward, heading west,
in the direction the other team had taken. It was their only hope. Manny
glanced behind him. The comforting light of their bonfire was now a weak glow as
the swarm closed in behind them.
Underfoot,
Manny crushed straggling locusts on the ground.
Silently,
the group marched into the forest. After several minutes, there was still no
end to the cloud of insects. The team remained surrounded on all sides. Locusts
were everywhere: buzzing through the air, coating the trunks of trees,
scrabbling through the underbrush. Only the smoke kept them away.
Manny
felt something vibrating on his pantleg. He glanced down and used his free hand
to swat the locust away. The bugs were getting bolder.
"We
should be through them by now," Kouwe muttered.
"I
think they're following us," Anna said.
Kouwe
slowed, and his eyes narrowed. "I believe you're right:"
"What
are we going to do?" Zane hissed. "These torches aren't gonna last
much longer. Maybe if we ran. Maybe we could-"
"Quiet
. . . let me think!" Kouwe scolded. He stared at the swarm and mumbled.
"Why are they following us? Why aren't they staying where they were
summoned?"
Camera
spoke softly at the rear of the group. She held her torch high. "Maybe
they're like those piranha creatures. Once drawn here, they caught our scent.
They'll follow us now until one or the other of us is destroyed:"
Manny
had a sudden idea. "Then why don't we do what the Ban-ali do?"
"What
do you mean?" Kelly asked.
"Give
the buggers something more interesting than our blood to swarm after."
"Like
what?"
"The
same scent that drew the locusts here in the first place:" Words tumbled
from Manny in his excitement. He pictured the flaming symbol of the Blood
Jaguars. "Corporal Jorgensen and I doused the flames that produced the
smoky pheromone or whatever-but the fuel is still there! Out in the
forest." He pointed his arm.
Jorgensen
nodded. "Manny's right. If we could relight it. . :'
Kouwe
brightened. "Then the fresh smoke would draw the swarm away from us, keep
it here while we ran off."
"Exactly,"
Manny said.
"Let's
do it," Zane said. "What are we waiting for?"
Jorgensen
stepped in front. "With our torches burning low, time is limited. There's
no reason to risk all of us going back:"
"What
are you saying?" Manny asked.
Jorgensen
pointed. "You all continue on the trail after the others. I'll backtrack
and light the fire on my own:"
Manny
stepped forward. "I'll go with you:"
"No.
I won't risk a civilian:" Jorgensen backed away. "And besides, I can
travel faster on my own:"
"But-"
"We're
wasting time and powder," the corporal barked. He turned to his fellow
Ranger. "Camera, get everyone away from here. Double time. I'll join up
with you after I've lit the motherfucker."
"Yes,
sir:'
With a
final nod, Jorgensen turned and began to trot back toward the camp, torch held
high. In moments, his form was swallowed away as he dove through the swarm.
Just the bobbing light of his torch illuminated
his progress,
then even that vanished amid the dense mass of swirling insects.
"Move
out!" Camera said.
The
group turned and once again headed down the trail. Manny prayed the corporal
succeeded. With a final glance behind him, Manny followed the others.
Jorgensen
rushed through the swarm. With only his single torch protecting him, the swarm
grew tighter. He was stung a few times by bolder bugs, but he ignored the
discomfort. A Ranger went through vigorous training programs across a multitude
of terrains: mountains, jungles, swamps, snow, desert.
But
never this . . . never a goddamn cloud of carnivorous bugs!
With
his weapon on his shoulder, he shrugged his pack higher on his back, both to
make it easier to run and to shield him from the swarm overhead.
Though
he should have been panicked, an odd surge of zeal fired his blood. This was
why he had volunteered for the Rangers, to test his mettle and to experience
balls-out action. How many farm boys from the backwaters of Minnesota had a
chance to do this?
He
thrust his torch forward and forged ahead. "Fuck you!" he yelled at
the locusts.
Focusing
on the abandoned campfire as a beacon, Jorgensen worked across the dizzying
landscape of whirling bugs. Smoke from his torch wafted around him, redolent
with the burning powder. He circled around the Brazil nut tree and headed
toward where the Ban-ali's burning signature had been set in the forest.
Half
blind, he ran past the site before realizing it and doubled back. He fell to
his knees beside the spot. "Thank God:"
Jorgensen
planted his torch in the soft loam, then leaned over and swept free the dirt
and scrabbling bugs from the buried resinous compound. Locusts lay thick over
this site. Several bites stung his hand as he brushed them away. Leaning close,
the residual fumes from the oil filled his nostrils, bitter and sharp. The
professor was right. It certainly attracted the buggers.
Working
quickly, Jorgensen continued to uncover the original marker.
He
didn't know how much of the black oil should be lit to keep the swarm's
attention here, but he wasn't taking any chances. He didn't want to have to
return a second time. Crawling on his knees, his hands sticky with the black
resin, he worked around the site. He soon had at least half of the serpentine
pattern exposed.
Satisfied,
he sat back, pulled free a butane lighter, and flicked a flame. He lowered the
lighter to the oil. "C'mon . . . burn, baby."
His
wish was granted. The oil caught fire, flames racing down the twists and curls
of the exposed symbol. In fact, the ignition was so fiercely combustible that
the first flames caught him off guard, burning his fingers.
Jorgensen
dropped the lighter and pulled his hand away, his fingers on fire.
"Shit!" The smattering of sticky oil on his hand had caught the flames.
"Shit!"
He
rolled to the side and shoved his hands into the loose dirt to stanch the fire.
As he did so, his elbow accidentally struck the planted bamboo torch, knocking
it into a nearby bush, casting embers in a fiery arc. Jorgensen swore and
snatched at the torch-but he was too late. The powder stored in the hollow top
of the bamboo had scattered into the dirt and bush, sizzling out. The top of
the torch still glowed crimson, but it was no longer smoking.
Jorgensen
sprang to his feet.
Behind
him, the symbol of the Ban-ali flamed brightly, calling the swarm to its meal.
"Oh,
God!"
Kelly
heard the first scream, a horrible sound that froze everyone in place.
"Jorgensen
. . :" Private Camera said, swinging around.
Kelly
stepped beside the Ranger.
"We
can't go back," Zane said, shifting further down the trail.
A
second scream, bone-chilling, garbled, echoed from the forest.
Kelly
noticed the swarm of locusts whisk from around them, retreating back toward the
original campsite. "They're leaving!"
Professor
Kouwe spoke at her shoulder. "The corporal must have succeeded in
relighting the symbol:"
By
now, the agonized cries were constant, prolonged, bestial. No human could
scream like that.
"We
have to go help him," Manny said.
Camera
clicked on a flashlight in her free hand. She pointed it back toward the
campsite. Fifty yards away, the condensed swarm was so thick, the trees
themselves were invisible, swallowed by the black cloud. "There's not
enough time," she said softly and lifted her own bamboo torch. It was
already sputtering. "We don't know how long a distraction Jorgensen has
bought us:"
Manny
turned to her. "We could at least still try. He might be alive:"
As if
hearing him, the distant cries died away.
Camera
glanced to him and shook her head.
"Look!"
Anna called out, pointing her arm.
Off to
the left, a figure stumbled out of the swarm.
Camera
pointed her flashlight. "Jorgensen!"
Kelly
gasped and covered her mouth.
The
man was impossible to identify, covered from crown to ankle with crawling
locusts. His arms were out, waving, blind. His legs wobbled, and he tripped in
the underbrush, falling to his knees. All the while, he remained eerily silent.
Only his arms stretched out for help.
Manny
took a step in the man's direction, but Camera held him back.
The
swarm rolled back over the kneeling man, swallowing him.
"It's
too late," Camera said. "And we're all running out of time:"
Punctuating her statement, her own torch cast a final sputter of fiery ash,
then dimmed. "We need to get as far from here as possible before we lose
our advantage:"
"But-"
Manny began.
He was
cut off by a hard stare from the Ranger. Her words were even harder. "I
won't have Jorgensen's sacrifice be meaningless:" She pointed toward the
deeper wood. "Move out!"
Kelly
glanced back as they headed away. The swarm remained behind them, a featureless
black cloud. But at its heart was a man who had given his life to save them
all. Tears filled her eyes. Her legs were numb with exhaustion and despair, her
heart heavy.
Despite
the loss of the corporal, one thought, one face remained fore-
most
in Kelly's mind. Her daughter needed her. Her mind roiled with flashes of her
child in bed, burning with fever. I'll get back to you, baby, she promised
silently.
But
deep in her heart, she now wondered if it was a pact she could keep. With each
step deeper into the forest, more men died. Graves, DeMartini, Conger, Jones .
. . and now Jorgensen . . .
She
shook her head, refusing to give up hope. As long as she was alive, putting one
foot in front of the other, she would find a way home.
Over
the next hour, the group forged through the forest, following the path the
other half of their team had taken the previous afternoon. One by one, their
torches flickered out. Flashlights were passed around. So far, no sign of
renewed pursuit by the swarm manifested. Maybe they were safe, beyond the
interest of the blind locusts, but no one voiced such a hope aloud.
Manny
marched close to the Ranger. "What if we miss the other team?" he asked
softly. "Jorgensen had our radio equipment. It was our only way of
contacting the outside world:"
Kelly
hadn't considered this fact. With the radio gone, they were cut off.
"We'll
reach the others," Camera said with a steely determination.
No one
argued with her. No one wanted to.
They
marched onward through the dark jungle, concentrating on just moving forward.
As hours ticked by, the tension blended into a blur of bone-weary exhaustion
and endless fear. Their passage was marked with hoots and strange cries.
Everyone's ears were pricked for the telltale buzz of the locusts.
So
they were all startled when the small personal radio hanging from Private
Camera's field jacket squawked with static and a few scratchy words. "This
is . . . if you can hear . . . radio range. . :"
Everyone
swung to face the Ranger, eyes wide. She pulled her radio's microphone from her
helmet to her mouth. "This is Private Camera. Can you hear me? Over:"
There
was a long pause, then. . . "Read you, Camera. Warczak here. What's your
status?"
The
Ranger quickly related the events in a dispassionate and professional manner.
But Kelly saw how the soldier's fingers trembled as she held
the
microphone to her lips. She finished, "We're following your trail. Hoping
to rendezvous with the main team in two hours."
Corporal
Warczak responded, "Roger that. Dr. Rand and I are already under way to
meet you. Over and out:'
The
Ranger closed her eyes and sighed loudly. "We're gonna be okay," she
whispered to no one in particular.
As the
others murmured in relief, Kelly stared out at the dark jungle.
Out
here in the Amazon, they were all far from okay.
ACT
FOUR-Blood Jaguars
HORSETAIL
FAMILY:
Equisetaceae
GENUS:
EqUlSetum
SPECIES:
Arvense
COMMON
NAME: Field Horsetail
ETHNIC
NAMES: At Quyroughi, Atkuyrugu, Chieh Hsu
Ts'Ao,
Cola de Caballo, Equiseto Menor, Kilkah Asb,
Prele,
Sugina, Thanab al Khail, Vara de Oro, Wen Ching
PROPERTIES/ACTIONS:
Astringent, Antiinflammatory,
Diuretic,
Antihemorrhagic
CHAPTER
TWELVE
Lake
Crossing
AUGUST
15, B:i i A.M.
INSTAR
INSTITUTE
LANGLEY
VIRGINIA
Lauren
slid the magnetic security card through the lock on her office door and
entered. It was the first chance she'd had to return to her office in the past
day. Between stretches in the institute's hospital ward visiting Jessie and
meetings with various MEDEA members, she hadn't had a moment to herself. The
only reason she had this free moment was that Jessie seemed to be doing very
well. Her temperature continued to remain normal, and her attitude was growing
brighter with every passing hour.
Cautiously
optimistic, Lauren began to hope that her initial diagnosis had been mistaken.
Maybe Jessie did not have the jungle disease. Lauren was now glad she had kept
silent about her fears. She could have needlessly panicked Marshall and Kelly.
Lauren may have indeed placed too much confidence in Alvisio's statistical
model. But she could not fault the epidemiologist. Dr. Alvisio had indeed
warned her his results were far from conclusive. Further data would need to be
collected and correlated.
But
then again, that pretty much defined all the current levels of investigation.
Each day, as the disease spread through Florida and the southern states,
thousands of theories were bandied about: etiological agents, therapeutic
protocols, diagnostic parameters, quarantine guidelines. Instar had become the
nation's think tank on this contagion. It was their job to ferret through the
maze of scientific conjecture and fanciful epidemiological models to glean the
pearls from the rubbish. It was a daunting task as data flowed in from all
corners of the country. But they had the best minds here.
Lauren
collapsed into her seat and flicked on her computer. The chime for incoming
mail sounded. She groaned as she slipped on a pair of reading glasses and
leaned closer to the screen. Three hundred and fourteen messages waited. And
this was just her private mailbox. She scrolled down the list of addresses and
skimmed the subject lines, searching through the little snippets for anything
important or interesting.
Inbox
From
Subject
jptdvm@davls.ut.arg re: simian blosimilarities
treat
magnus@scriabs.com call for sample
standardization
5y5telnattCa@fdC.gaV prog. report
xreynalds@largebio.cam large stale
biological labs
synergyrneds@phdrugs.torn pharmacv question
gerard@dadecounty.tfil.gov quarantine projection
brt@washingtonpost.org request for Interview
As she
scrolled down, one name caught her eye. It was oddly familiar, but she could
not remember exactly why. She brought her computer's pointer to the name: Large
Scale Biological Labs. She crinkled her nose in thought, then it came to her.
The night Jessie's fever developed, she had been paged by this same outfit.
Well after midnight, she recalled. But the sick child had distracted her from
following up on the page.
It
probably wasn't important, but she opened the e-mail anyway, her curiosity now
aroused. The letter appeared on the screen. Dr. Xavier Reynolds. She smiled,
instantly recognizing the name. He had been a grad student of hers years ago
and had taken a position at some lab in California, perhaps this same lab. The
young man had been one of her best students. Lauren had attempted to recruit
him into the MEDEA group here at Instar, but he had declined. His fiance had accepted
an associate professorship at Berkeley, and he had naturally not wanted to be
separated.
She
read his note. As she did, the smile on her lips slowly faded.
From:
xreynolds@largebio.com
Date:
14 Aug 13:48:28
To:
lauren obrienQinstar.org
Subject:
Large Scale Biological Labs
Dr.
O'Brien:
Please
excuse this intrusion. I attempted to page you last night, but I assume you're
very busy. So I'll keep this brief.
As
with many labs around the country, our own is involved in researching the
virulent disease, and I think I've come across an intriguing angle, if not a
possible answer to the root puzzle: What is causing the disease? But before
voicing my findings, I wanted to get your input.
As
head of the proteonomic team here at Large Scale Biological Labs, I have been
attempting to index mankind's protein genome, similar to the Human Genome
Project for DNA. As such, my take on the disease was to investigate it
backward. Most disease-causing agents-bacteria, viruses, fungi, parasites-do
not cause illness by themselves. It is the proteins they produce that trigger
clinical disease. So I hunted for a unique protein that might be common to all
patients.
And I
found one! But from its folded and twisted pattern, a new thought arose. This
new protein bears a striking similarity to the protein that causes bovine
spongiform encephalopathy. Which in turn raises the question: Have we been
chasing the wrong tail in pursuing a viral cause for this disease?
Has
anyone considered a prion as the cause?
For
your consideration, I've modeled the protein below.
Title:
unknown prion (?)
Compound:
folded protein w/ double terminal alpha helixes
Model:
Exp.
Method: X-ray diffraction
EC
Number: 3.4.1.18
Source:
Patient #24-b12, Anawak Tribe, lower Amazon
Resolution:
2.00 R-Value:
0.145
Space
Group: P21 20 21
Unit
cell:
dim: a
60.34 b 52.02 c 44.68
angles:
alpha 90.00 beta
90.00 gamma 90.00
Polymer
chains: 156L Residues:
144
Atoms:
1286
So
there you have the twisted puzzle. As I value your expertise, Dr. O'Brien, I
would appreciate your thoughts, opinions, or judgments before promoting this
radical theory.
Sincerely,
Xavier Reynolds, Ph.D.
"A
prion:" Lauren touched the diagram of the molecule. Could this indeed be
the cause?
She
pondered the possibility. The word prion was scientific shorthand for
"proteinaceous infectious particle:" The role of prions in disease
had only been documented within the last decade, earning a U.S. biochemist the
1997 Nobel Prize. Prion proteins were found in all creatures, from humans down
to single-celled yeast. Though usually innocuous, they had an insidious duality
to their molecular structure, a Jekyll-and-Hyde sort of thing. In one form,
they were safe and friendly to a cell. But the same protein could fold and
twist upon itself, creating a monster that wreaked havoc on cellular processes.
And the effect was cumulative. Once a twisted prion was introduced into a host,
it would begin converting the body's other proteins to match, which in turn
converted its neighbors, spreading exponentially through the host's systems.
Worse, this host could also pass the process to another body, a true infectious
phenomenon.
Prion
diseases had been documented both in animals and man: from scabies in sheep to
Creutsfeldt-Jacob disease in humans. The most well-known prion disease to date
was one that crossed between species. Dr. Reynolds had mentioned it in his
letter: bovine spongiform encephalopathy, or more commonly, mad cow disease.
But
these human diseases were more of a degenerative nature, and none were known to
be transmitted so readily. Still, that did not rule out prions as a possibility
here. She had read research papers on prions and their role in genetic
mutations and more severe manifestations. Was something like that happening
here? And what about airborne transmission? Prions were particulate and
subviral in size, so since certain viruses could be airborne, why not certain
prions?
Lauren
stared at the modeled protein on the computer screen and reached for her desk
phone. As she dialed, an icy finger ran up her spine. She prayed her former
student was mistaken.
The
phone rang on the other end, and after a moment, it was answered. "Dr.
Reynolds, proteonomics lab."
"Xavier?"
"Yes?"
"This
is Dr. O'Brien."
"Dr.
O'Brien!" The man began talking animatedly, thanking her, thrilled.
She
cut him off. "Xavier, tell me more about this protein of yours." She
needed as much information from him as possible, the sooner the better. If
there was even a minute possibility that Dr. Reynolds was correct . . .
Lauren
bit back a shudder as she stared at the crablike molecule on her computer
monitor. There was one other fact she knew about priontriggered diseases.
There
were no known cures.
9:1 B
A.M.
AMAZON
JUNGLE
Nate
looked over Olin Pasternak's shoulder. The CIAs communications expert was
growing ever more frustrated with the satellite computer system. Beads of sweat
bulleted his forehead, both from the morning's steaming heat and his own
consternation.
"Still
no feed... goddamn it!" Olin chewed his lower lip, eyes squinting.
"Keep
trying," Frank urged on the other side.
Nate
glanced to Kelly, who stood beside her brother. Her eyes were haunted and dull.
Nate had heard various versions of last night's attack: the strange swarm of
giant locusts attracted to the camp by the burning Ban-ali marker. It was too
horrible to imagine, impossible, but Jorgensen's death made it all too real.
Once
the entire group had been reassembled at the swamp-side camp last night, the
Ranger team had remained on guard. The group kept a posted watch throughout the
night, in and around the surrounding forest, alert for any danger, watchful for
any flare of flames, ears keened for the whine of locusts. But nothing
happened. The few hours until dawn had been uneventful.
As
soon as the communication satellite was in range, Olin had set about trying to
reach the States and to relay messages to the Wauwai field base. It was vital
to radio the change in plans to all parties. With unknown hunters dogging their
trail, it was decided to continue with the goal of rafting across the swamp.
Captain Waxman hoped to get a couple of days' jump on his pursuers, leave their
trackers traipsing around the swamp on foot. Once across, Waxman would keep a
constant watch on the waters for any Ban-ali canoes and keep the group intact
on the far shore until the evac helicopter could arrive. He planned to trade
each civilian with another Ranger from the field base at the mission. With
these new forces, he would continue on Gerald Clark's trail.
There
was only one problem with his plan.
"I'm
gonna have to rip the laptop down to the motherboard," Olin said.
"Something is damnably fritzed. Maybe a faulty chip or even a loose one
knocked out of place by the manhandling these past two days. I don't know. I'll
have to tear it down and check it all:"
Waxman
had been speaking with his staff sergeant, but he overheard Olin. The captain
stepped nearer. "We don't have time for that. The third raft is ready, and
it'll take a good four hours to cross the waters. We need to get moving:"
Nate
glanced to the swamp's edge and saw four Rangers positioning the newly
constructed raft so that it floated beside the two prepared last night. The
additional raft was necessary to carry everyone in their expanded party.
Olin
hovered over his computer and satellite dish with a small screwdriver.
"But I've not been able to reach anyone. They won't know where we
are:" He wiped his forehead with the back of his wrist. His features were
pale.
Zane
stood, shifting his feet uneasily and rubbing at a Band-Aid on his cheek that
covered a locust bite. "We could send someone back and retrieve
Jorgensen's pack with the military radio," he suggested.
Everyone
began talking at once, arguing both sides.
"We'd
lose another day waiting:" "We'd risk more of our people:"
"We need to reach someone!" "Who knows if his radio will even
work, what with all those locusts. They could've chewed through the wiring
and-"
Waxman
interrupted, his voice booming. "There is no reason to panic!" He
directed his comment to all of them. "Even if we can't raise the outside,
the field base knows our rough location from yesterday's report. When the
Brazilian evac copter comes tomorrow as previously arranged, we'll hear it-even
from across the swamp. We can send up orange smoke flares to draw their
attention to our new location:"
Nate
nodded. He had not participated in the argument. In his mind, there was only
one way to go forward.
Waxman
pointed to Olin. "Pack it up. You can work on the problem once we're on
the far side:"
Resigned,
Olin nodded. He returned his tiny screwdriver to his repair kit.
With
the matter settled, the others dispersed to gather their own gear, readying for
the day's journey.
"At
least we won't have to walk," Manny said, patting Nate on the shoulder as
he passed on his way to wake Tor-tor. The jaguar was asleep under a palm,
oblivious to the world after last night's trek.
Nate
stretched a kink from his neck and approached Professor Kouwe. The Indian
shaman stood near the swamp, smoking his pipe. His eyes were as haunted as
Kelly's had been. When Nate and Corporal Warczak had met the fleeing group on
the trail, the professor had been unusually quiet and somber, more than could
be attributed to the loss of Jorgensen.
Nate
stood silently beside his old friend, studying the lake, too.
After
a time, Kouwe spoke softly, not looking at Nate. "They sent the locusts .
. . the Ban-ali . . :" The shaman shook his head. "They wiped out the
Yanomamo tribe with the piranha creatures. I've never seen anything like it.
It's as if the Blood Jaguar tribe could indeed control the jungle. And if that
myth is true, what else?" He shook his head again.
"What's
troubling you?"
"I've
been a professor of Indian Studies for close to two decades. I grew up in these
jungles:" His voice grew quiet, full of pain. "I should have known .
. . the corporal . . . his screams. . :"
Nate
glanced to Kouwe and placed a hand on the man's shoulder. "Professor, you
saved everyone with the tok-tok powder."
"Not
everyone:" Kouwe drew on his pipe and exhaled. "I should've thought
to relight the Ban-ali symbol before we left the camp. If I had, the young
corporal would be alive:"
Nate
spoke sharply, trying to cut through the man's remorse and guilt. "You're
being too hard on yourself. No amount of study or experience could prepare you
to deal with the Ban-ali and their biological attacks. Nothing like it has ever
been documented before:"
Kouwe
nodded, but Nate sensed that the man was hardly convinced.
Captain
Waxman called from near the water's edge. "Let's load up! Five to a
raft!" He began assigning Rangers and dividing the civilians accordingly.
Nate
ended up with Kouwe and Manny, along with Tor-tor. Their two mates were
Corporal Okamoto and Private Camera. The group was forced to wade through the
shallows to reach the bamboo-and-log constructions. As Nate heaved himself
onboard, he appreciated its sturdy construction. Reaching out, Nate helped
Manny guide the large cat atop the bobbing raft.
Tor-tor
was not pleased about getting wet. As the cat shook the swamp water from its
pelt, the rest of the group mounted their own boats.
On the
neighboring raft, Kelly and Frank stood with Captain Waxman, along with
corporals Warczak and Yamir. The last five teammates climbed onto the farthest
raft. Olin was careful to carry his pack with the satellite gear high above his
head. Richard Zane and Anna Fong helped him aboard, flanked by a stoic Tom
Graves and a scowling Sergeant Kostos.
Once
everyone was mounted, lengths of bamboo were used as poles to push away from
shore and through the shallows. But the swamp's banks dropped steeply. Within a
hundred feet of the shore, the poles no longer touched bottom, and the paddles
were taken up. With four paddles per raft, it allowed one person to rotate out
and rest. The goal was to continue straight across without a break.
Nate
manned the raft's starboard side as the tiny flotilla slowly drifted toward the
far bank. Out on the waters, the distant roar of multiple waterfalls, muffled
and threatening, echoed over the swamp lake. Nate stared, shading his eyes. The
highlands across the way remained shrouded in mist: a mix of green jungle, red
cliffs, and a fog of heavy spray. Their goal was a narrow ravine between two
towering, flat-topped mesas, a yawning misty channel into the highlands. It had
been where Clark's last carved message had pointed.
As
they glided, the denizens of the swamp noted their passage. A snow-white egret
skimmed over the water, a hand span above the surface. Frogs leaped from boggy
hummocks with loud splashes, and hoatzin birds, looking like some ugly cross
between a turkey and a pterodactyl, screeched at them as they circled over
their nests atop the palms that grew from the island hummocks. The only
inhabitants that seemed pleased with their presence were the clouds of
mosquitoes, buzzing with joy at the floating smorgasbord.
"Damned
bugs," Manny griped, slapping his neck. "I've had it with flying
insects making a meal out of me:"
To
make matters even worse, Okamoto began to whistle again, tunelessly and without
the vaguest sense of rhythm.
Nate
sighed. It would be a long trip.
After
an hour, the little muddy islands vanished around them. In the swamp's center,
the water was deep enough to drown away most of the tiny bits of land and
jungle. Only an occasional hummock, mostly bare of trees, dotted the smooth
expanse of the swamp's heart.
Here
the sun, scorching and bright, shone incessantly down on them.
"It's
like a steam bath," Camera said from the raft's port side.
Nate
had to agree. The air was thick with moisture, almost too heavy to breathe.
Their speed across the swamp slowed as exhaustion set in. Canteens were passed
around and around the raft. Even Tor-tor lounged in the middle of the bamboo
planking, his mouth open, panting.
The
only consolation was being temporarily free of the jungle's snug embrace. Here
the horizons opened up, and there was a giddy sense of escape. Nate glanced
frequently back the way they had come, expecting to see a tribesman on the bank
back there, shaking a fist. But there remained no sign of the Ban-ali. The
trackers of the ghost tribe remained hidden. Hopefully the group was leaving
them behind and getting a few days head start on their pursuers.
Nate
was tapped on the shoulder. "I'll take a shift," Kouwe said, emptying
his pipe's bowl of tobacco ash into the water.
"I'm
okay," Nate said.
Kouwe
reached and took the paddle. "I'm not an invalid yet:"
Nate
didn't argue any further and slid to the raft's stern. As he lounged, he
watched their old campsite get smaller and smaller. He reached back for the
canteen and caught movement to the right of their raft. One of the bare
hummocks, rocky and black, was sinking, submerging so slowly that not a ripple
was created.
What
the hell?
Off to
the left another was sinking. Nate climbed to his feet. As he began to comment
on this unusual phenomenon, one of the rocky islands opened a large glassy eye
and stared back at him. Instantly Nate knew what he was seeing.
"Oh,
crap!"
With
his attention focused, he now recognized the armored scales and craggy
countenance of a crocodilian head. It was a caiman! A pair of giants. Each head
had to be four feet wide from eye to eye. If its head was that big . . .
"What's
wrong?" Private Camera asked.
Nate
pointed to where the second of the two caimans was just slipping under the
surface.
"What
is it?" the Ranger asked, eyes wide, as confused as Nate had been a moment
before.
"Caimans,"
Nate said, his voice hoarse with shock. "Giant ones!"
By
now, his entire raft had stopped paddling. The others stared at him.
Nate
raised his voice, yelling so all three rafts could hear him. He waved his arms
in the air. "Spread out! We're about to be attacked!"
"From
what?" Captain Waxman called from his raft, about fifty yards away.
"What did you see?"
As
answer, something huge slid between Nate's boat and its neighbor, nudging both
rafts and spinning them ever so slightly. Through the swamp's murk, the twin
lines of tail ridges were readily evident as the beast slid sinuously past.
Nate was
familiar with this behavior. It was called bumping. The kings of the caimans,
the great blacks, were not carrion eaters. They liked to kill their own food.
It was why drifting motionless could often protect someone from the predators.
Often they would bump something that they considered a meal, testing to see if
it would move.
They
had just been bumped.
Distantly,
the third raft suddenly bobbed and turned. The second caiman was also testing
these strange intruders.
Nate
yelled again, revising his initial plan. "Don't move! No one paddle!
You'll attract them to attack!"
Waxman
reinforced his order. "Do as he says! Weapon up. Grenades hot!"
Manny
now crouched beside Nate, his voice hushed with awe. "It had to be at
least a hundred feet long, over three times larger than any known caiman.
Camera
had her M-16 rifle in hand and was quickly fitting on her grenade launcher.
"No wonder Gerald Clark circled around the swamp:"
Okamoto
finished prepping his rifle, kissed the crucifix around his neck, then nodded
to Professor Kouwe. "I pray you have another one of your magical powders
up your sleeve:"
The
shaman shook his head, eyes wide, unblinking. "I pray you're all good
shots:"
Okamoto
glanced at Nate.
Nate
explained, "With their armored body plating, the only sure kill shot is
the eye:"
"No,
there's also through the upper palate," Manny added, pointing a finger
toward the roof of his mouth. "But to take that shot, you'd have to be
damn close:"
"Starboard
side!" Camera barked, kneeling with her rifle on her shoulder.
A
rippling line disturbed the flat waters, ominous and long.
"Don't
take a shot unless you're sure," Nate hissed, dropping beside her.
"You could provoke it. Only shoot if you've got a kill shot:"
With
everyone dead quiet, Waxman heard Nate's warning. "Listen to Dr. Rand.
Shoot if you have a chance-but make it count!"
Rifles
bristled around the periphery of each raft. Nate grabbed up his shotgun with
one hand. They all waited, baking in the heat, sweat dripping into eyes, mouths
drying. Around and around, the caimans circled, leaving no sign of their
passage but ripples. Occasionally a raft would be bumped, tested.
"How
long can they hold their breath?" Camera asked.
"Hours,"
Nate said.
"Why
aren't they attacking?" Okamoto asked.
Manny
answered this question. "They can't figure out what we are, if we're
edible:"
The
Asian Ranger looked sick. "Let's hope they don't find out."
The
waiting stretched. The air seemed to grow thicker around them.
"What
if we shot a grenade far from here?" Camera offered. "As a
distraction, something to draw them off."
"I'm
not sure it would help. It might just rile them up, get them snapping at
anything that moves, like us:"
Zane
spoke from the farthest raft, but his words easily reached Nate's boat. "I
say we strap some explosives to that jaguar and push it overboard. When one of
the crocodiles goes for the cat, we trigger the bomb:"
Nate
shuddered at this idea. Manny looked sick. But other eyes were glancing their
way with contemplative expressions.
"Even
if you succeeded in doing that, you'd only kill one of them," Nate said.
"The other, clearly its mate, would go into a rampage and attack the
rafts. Our best bet is to hope the pair lose interest in us and drift away,
then we can paddle out of here:"
Waxman
turned to Corporal Yamir, the demolition expert. "In case the crocodiles
don't get bored, let's be prepared to entertain them. Prime up a pair of the
napalm bombs:'
The
corporal nodded and turned to his pack.
Once
again, the waiting game began. Time stretched.
Nate
felt the raft tremble under his knees as one of the pair rubbed the underside
of the logs with its thick tail. "Hang on!"
Suddenly
the raft bucked under them. The stern was tossed high in the air. The group
clung like spiders to the bamboo. Loose packs rolled into the lake with
distinct splashes. The raft crashed back to the water, jarring them all.
"Is
everyone okay?" Nate yelled.
Murmurs
of assent rose.
"I
lost my rifle," Okamoto said, his eyes angry.
"Better
your gun than you," Kouwe said dolefully.
Nate
raised his voice. "They're getting bolder!"
Okamoto
reached out to one of their floating packs. "My gear."
Nate
saw what he was doing. "Corporal! Stop!"
Okamoto
immediately froze. "Shit . . :' He already had the strap of his rucksack
in hand, half pulled out of the water.
"Leave
it," Nate said. "Get away from the edge:'
The
corporal released his pack with a slight splash and yanked his arm back.
But he
moved too slowly.
The
monster lunged up out of the depths, jaws open, water sluicing from its scales.
It shot ten feet out of the swamp, a tower of armor plating and teeth as long
as a man's forearm. The Ranger was pulled off his feet and shoved high into the
air, screaming in shock and terror. The huge jaws clamped shut with an audible
crunch of bones. Okamoto's scream changed in pitch to pain and disbelief. His
body was shaken like a rag doll, legs flailing. Then the creature's bulk
dropped back into the depths.
"Fire!"
Waxman called.
Nate
had been too stunned to move. Camera blazed with her M-16. Bullets peppered the
underside of the giant, prehistoric caiman, but its yellowed belly scales were
as hard as Kevlar. Even at almost point-blank range, it looked like little harm
was done. Its weak points, the eyes, were hidden on the far side of its bulk.
Nate
swung up his own shotgun, stretched his arm over Manny's head, and fired. A
load of pellet sprayed through the empty air as the beast dropped out of range.
A wasted, panicked shot.
The
caiman was gone. Okamoto was gone.
Everyone
was frozen in shock.
Nate's
raft bobbed in the wake of the creature's passing. He stared out at the spot
where the Ranger had vanished, Okamoto with his damn whistling. A red stain
bubbled up from below.
Blood
on the water . . . now the monsters know there's food here.
Kelly
crouched with her brother in the center of their raft. Captain Waxman and
Corporal Warczak knelt with their weapons ready. Yamir was finalizing his prep
on two black bombs, each the size of a flat dinner plate with an electronic
timer/receiver atop it. The demolitions expert leaned back. "Done,"
he said with a nod to his captain.
"Retrieve
your weapon," Waxman said. "Be ready."
Yamir
picked up his M-16 rifle and took up watch on his side of the raft.
A
splintering crash sounded behind them. Kelly swung around in time to see the
third raft in their flotilla knocked high into the air, the same as Nate's raft
had done a moment before. But this time, its occupants were not as lucky. Anna
Fong, her grip broken, went flying, catapulted through the air by the sudden
attack. The anthropologist struck the water at the same time the raft crashed
back down. Zane and Olin had managed to cling to the raft, as had Sergeant
Kostos and Corporal Graves.
Anna
popped to the surface, coughing and choking on water. She was only yards from
the raft.
"Don't
move, Anna!" Nate called. "Tuck your arms and legs together and
float:"
She
clearly tried to obey, but her pack, waterlogged, dragged her underwater unless
she kicked to keep herself afloat. Her eyes were white with panic; both the
fear of drowning and the fear of what lurked in the waters shone bright in her
eyes.
Movement
drew her attention back to the assaulted raft. Sergeant Kostos was leaning out
with one of the long bamboo poles that they had used to propel themselves away
from shore.
"Grab
on!" Kostos called to her.
Anna
reached to the bamboo, fingers scrabbling for a moment, then clinging.
"I'm
gonna pull you toward the raft:"
"No!"
she moaned.
Nate
again called. "Anna, it should be okay as long as you don't make any
sudden moves. Kostos, pull her very slowly toward you. Try not to raise a
ripple:"
Kelly
trembled. Frank put his arm around her.
Ever
so slowly, the sergeant drew Anna back to the raft.
"Good,
good..." Nate mumbled in a tense mantra.
Then,
behind Anna, an armored snout appeared, just the nose, its eyes hidden
underwater still.
"No
one shoot!" Nate called. "Don't rile it!"
Guns
pointed, but there was no kill shot anyway.
Kostos
had stopped pulling on the bamboo with the appearance of the caiman. No one
moved.
A moan
flowed from the woman in the water.
Ever
so slowly the snout inched forward, rising slightly as its massive jaws yawned
open.
Kostos
was forced to slowly draw Anna toward him, keeping her just a couple of feet
ahead of the approaching monster.
"Careful!"
Nate called.
It was
like some macabre slow-motion chase . . . and they were losing.
The
snout of the creature was now less than a foot from the woman, the jaws gaping
open behind her head. There was no way Anna could be pulled aboard without the
creature attacking.
Someone
else came to this same realization.
Corporal
Graves ran across their raft and leaped over Anna's head like an Olympic long
jumper.
"Graves!"
Kostos yelled.
The
corporal landed atop the creature's open snout, driving its jaws closed and
shoving it underwater.
"Pull
her aboard!" Graves hollered as he was sucked under by the caiman.
Kostos
yanked Anna back to the raft and Olin helped haul her on board.
A
moment later, the beast reared up out of the water, Graves still clinging to
the top of its wide head. The caiman thrashed, trying to dislodge its strange
rider. Its jaws reared open, and a bellow of rage escaped from it.
"Fuck
you!" Graves said. "This is for my brother!" Clinging fast with
his legs, he yanked something from his field jacket and tossed it down the
beast's gullet.
A
grenade.
The
massive jaws snapped at the Ranger, but he was out of reach.
"Everybody
down!" Waxman bellowed.
Graves
leaped from his perch aiming for the raft, a shout on his lips. "Chew on
that, you bastard!"
Behind
him, the explosion ripped through the silent swamp. The head of the caiman blew
apart, shredded by shrapnel.
Graves
flew through the air, a roar of triumph flowing from his lips.
Then
up from the depths shot the other caiman. Jaws wide, it lunged at the flying
corporal, snatching him out of midair, like a dog catching a tossed ball, then
crashed away, taking its prey with it. It had all happened in seconds.
The
bulk of the slain caiman slowly rose to the surface of the lake, belly up,
exposing the gray and yellow scaling of its underside.
The
slack body of the huge creature was nudged from below. Ripples slowly circled
it as the large beast was examined by the survivor.
"Maybe
it'll leave," Frank said. "Maybe the other's death will spook it
away."
Kelly
knew this wouldn't happen. These creatures had to be hundreds and hundreds of
years old. Mates for life, the only pair of its kind sharing this ecosystem.
The
ripples faded. The lake grew quiet again.
Everyone
kept eyes fixed on the waters around them, holding their breath or wheezing
tensely. Minutes stretched. The sun baked everyone.
"Where
did it go?" Zane whispered, hovering beside his ashen colleague. Anna,
soaked and terrified, just trembled.
"Maybe
it did leave," Frank mumbled.
The
trio of rafts, rudderless, slowly drifted alongside the bulk of the dead
monster. Nate's boat was on the far side of the body. Kelly met his eye. He
nodded, trying to convey calm assurance, but even the experienced jungle man
looked scared. Behind him, the jaguar crouched beside its master, hackles
raised.
Frank
shifted his legs slightly. "It must have fled. Maybe-"
Kelly
sensed it a moment before it struck: a sudden welling of the water under their
raft. "Hang on!"
"What
"
The
raft exploded under them-not just bumped up, but driven skyward. Shattering up
from the center of the raft jammed the massive armored snout of the angered
caiman.
Kelly
flew, tumbling through the air. She caught glimpses of the others falling amid
the rain of bamboo and packs. "Frank!" Her brother splashed on the
far side of the monster.
Then
she hit the water-hard, on her stomach. The wind was knocked out of her. She
spluttered up, remembering Nate's warning to remain as still as possible. She
glanced up in time to see a chunk of the raft's log dropping through the air
toward her face.
Dodging,
she missed a fatal blow, but the edge of the flying log clipped the side of her
head. She collapsed backward, driven underwater, darkness swallowing her away.
From
the far side of the dead caiman's bulk, Nate watched Kelly get hit by debris
and go under-dead or unconscious, he didn't know. All around the ruined raft,
people, packs, and bits of debris floated. "Float as still as possible!"
Nate called out, frantically searching for what had happened to Kelly.
The
caiman had vanished underwater again.
"Kelly!"
Frank called.
His
sister bobbed to the surface on the far side of the debris field. She was
facedown in the water, limp.
Nate
hesitated. Was she dead? Then he saw one arm move, flailing weakly. Alive! But
for how long? As dazed as she was by the blow, she risked drowning.
"Damn
it!" He searched for some plan, some way to rescue her. Just beyond her
body was one of the small hummocks of land with a single large mangrove tree
sprouting up from it. Its thick trunk sprang from a tangle of exposed buttress
roots, then fanned out into a branched canopy hanging over the waters. If Kelly
could reach there . . .
A
shout arose from the waters, drawing back his attention. The caiman's head
appeared, rising like a submarine amid the debris. A large eye studied its
surroundings. Shots were fired toward it, but it remained low in the water,
blocked by the debris and the people. Then it sank quickly away.
Frank
finally spotted his sister. "Oh, God . . . Kelly!" He turned, ready
to swim to her aid.
"Frank!
Don't move!" Nate called. "I'll get to her!" He dropped his
shotgun to the bamboo planking.
"What
are you doing?" Manny asked.
As
answer, Nate leaped across the gap between the raft and the dead caiman. He
landed on its exposed belly, landing in a half crouch, then ran down the length
of the beast's slippery bulk, trying to get as close to Kelly as possible.
A
scream rose on his right. He watched Corporal Yamir, struggling then suddenly
Yamir was yanked under the water, large bubbles trailing down into the depths.
The caiman was picking off the survivors in the water.
Time
was running out.
Nate
ran and leaped from the belly of the floating caiman, flinging his body with
all the strength in his legs. Flying out, he dove smoothly for Kelly, reaching
her in a heartbeat. He rolled her face out of the water. She struggled weakly
against him.
"Kelly!
It's Nate! Lie still!"
Something
must have registered, for her struggling slowed.
Nate
kicked strongly toward the nearby hummock. He scrabbled through the debris. His
hand hit something: a black dinner plate decorated with blinking red lights.
One of the dead corporal's bombs.
Instinctively,
Nate grabbed it up in his free hand and continued to kick.
"Behind
you!" Sergeant Kostos called from across the water.
Nate
glanced back.
A
rippling wake aimed in his direction, then the tip of the snout broke the
surface, then more of the bull's black-scaled head. Nate found himself staring
eye-to-eye with the beast. He sensed the intelligence behind that gaze. No dumb
brute. Playing dead wouldn't work here.
He
turned and kicked and paddled with the napalm bomb toward the swamp island. His
feet hit muddy ground.
With a
strength born of fear and panic, he scooped Kelly under his arm and hauled them
through the shallows, climbing the banks.
"It's
right on top of you!"
Nate
didn't bother to turn. He ran toward the tangle of mangrove roots, shoved Kelly
between them, then dove in after her. There was a cramped natural cavity behind
the main buttress roots.
Kelly
groggily awoke, coughing out gouts of water and staring around in panic. Nate
fell atop her in the small space.
"What
. . . ?"
Then,
over his shoulder, she must have spotted their pursuer. Her eyes grew large.
"Oh, shit!"
Nate
rolled around and saw the monster hurling itself up out of the lake, scrabbling
up the short bank. It struck like a locomotive hitting a car on the tracks. The
whole tree shook. Nate was sure it would crash atop them. But the tree held.
The caiman stared at Nate between the roots, mouth gaping open, teeth glinting
with menace. It paused, glaring at him, then backpedaled and slid into the
waters.
Kelly
turned to him. "You saved me:"
He
glanced to her, their noses almost touching in the cramped root prison.
"Or almost got you killed. It's all perspective, really." Nate pushed
to his knees. He grabbed one of the roots to haul himself to his feet.
"And we're not out of the woods yet:"
Nate
studied the waters, watching for any telltale ripple. It seemed quiet. But he
knew the caiman was still out there, watching. Taking a deep breath, he
squeezed back out between the roots.
"Where
are you going?"
"There
are still others in the water . . . including your brother." Nate shoved
the napalm bomb under his shirt and began to climb the mangrove, a plan slowly
forming. Once high enough, he picked a good branch, clambered atop it, and
slowly crawled down its length to where it hung over the water. As the branch
thinned, it began to bend under his weight. He moved more cautiously.
At
last, he could risk going no farther. He glanced down and around his perch.
This would have to do.
He
called to the other raft while pulling out the bomb. "Does anyone know how
to arm one of these explosives?"
Sergeant
Kostos answered, "Type in the time delay manually! Then hit the red
button!"
Waxman
yelled from where he floated in the water. Nate had to respect how calm the
captain's voice was as he added a warning. "It's got an explosive radius
of a couple hundred meters. Blow it wrong and you'll kill us all!"
Nate
nodded, staring at the bomb. A simple sealed keyboard glowed atop it, not
unlike a calculator. Nate prayed it hadn't been damaged by the dunking or
abuse. He set the timer for fifteen seconds. That should be long enough.
Next,
Nate cradled the bomb to his chest and snapped free his work knife. Clenching
his teeth, he dug the blade into the meat of his thumb and sliced a deep gash.
He needed the wound to bleed freely.
Once
done, he used a secondary branch as support and climbed to his feet on the
swaying perch. He pulled the bomb out with his bloodied hand and made sure he
had a good grip. Stretching out over the water, Nate extended his arm, bomb in
hand. Blood dripped over the weapon's surface and down to the waters below,
plopping in thick drops and sending out ripples.
He
held steady, his thumb on the trigger button. "C'mon, damn you." In
Australia, he had once visited a live animal park and had seen a thirty foot
saltwater crocodile trained to leap after a freshly decapitated chicken on a
pole.
Nate's
plan wasn't much different. Only he was the chicken.
He
slightly shook his arm, scattering more drops. "Where are you?" he
hissed. His arm was getting tired.
Down
below, he watched a small pool of his own blood forming on the surface of the
water. A caiman could smell blood in the water from miles away.
"C'mon!"
Squinting,
he risked a peek toward the others still afloat in the debris field. With no
way of knowing where the caiman was, neither of the other two rafts dared
paddle to their mates' rescue.
Distracted,
Nate almost missed the flash of something large heaving through the shallows
toward him.
"Nate!"
Kelly called.
He saw
it.
The caiman
lunged out of the water, blasting straight out of the lake and springing toward
him, jaws wide open, roaring.
Nate
hit the bomb's trigger, then dropped the blood-slick device down the open
mouth. He realized at the same time that he had vastly underestimated how high
a giant swamp caiman could leap.
Nate
crouched on his branch, then leaped straight up, propelled by both his legs and
the spring in the branch. Crashing through leaves, Nate grabbed a limb
overhead. He yanked his feet out of the way just as the monster's jaws snapped
shut under the seat of his pants. He felt its huffed breath on his back. Denied
its prey, it fell back to the water, shooting spray almost as high as its leap.
Staring
down, Nate saw the branch he had been perched on. It was gone, a stump, cleaved
clean through by those mighty jaws. If he had still been standing there . . .
Nate
saw the caiman again glide from the shallows into the deeper waters, but now it
remained floating on the surface, revealing its length. A male, 120 feet if it
was an inch.
Hanging
from the branch, Nate caught a frustrated glower directed up at him. It slowly
turned toward where the others were floating, giving up on him for the moment
and going after easier prey.
Before
it could complete its turn, Nate saw the beast suddenly shudder. He had
forgotten to count the seconds.
Suddenly
the belly of the beast swelled immensely. It opened its maw to scream but all
that came out were jets of flame. The caiman had become a veritable flaming
dragon. It rolled on its side and sank into the murkier depths, then a huge
whoosh exploded upward in a column of water, flames, and caiman.
Nate
clung to his perch with his arms and legs. Down below in the roots, Kelly
yelled in shock.
The
blast ended as quickly as it blew. In the aftermath, bits and pieces of flaming
flesh showered harmlessly around the swamp. Insulated by the armored bulk of
the great giant, the worst of the bomb's effect had been contained.
A
shout of triumph arose from the others.
Nate
climbed down the tree and retrieved Kelly. "Are you okay?" he asked
her.
She
nodded, fingering a gash at her hairline. "Head hurts a little, but I'll
be fine:" She coughed hoarsely. "I must've swallowed a gallon of
swamp water."
He
helped her down to the water's edge. While Kostos's raft went to collect the
swimmers and packs, Nate's own raft, manned by his friends and Ranger Camera,
glided over to the pair to keep them from having to swim.
Camera
helped pull Kelly aboard. Manny grabbed Nate's wrist and hauled him up onto the
bamboo planks. "That was some pretty fast thinking, doc," Manny said
with a grin.
"Necessity
is the mother of invention," Nate said, matching his expression with a
tired smile. "But I'll be damned glad to be on dry land again.
"Could
there be more of them out there?" Kelly asked as the group paddled toward
the other raft.
"I
doubt it," Manny said with a strange trace of regret. "Even with an
ecosystem this large, I can't imagine there's enough food to support more than
two of these gigantic predators. Still, I'd keep a watch out for any offspring.
Even baby giants could be trouble:"
Camera
kept watch with her rifle as the others paddled. "Do you think that the
Ban-ali sent these after us, like the locusts and piranhas?"
Kouwe
answered, "No, but I would not put it past them to have nurtured this pair
as some de facto gatekeepers to their lands, permanently stationed guards
against any who dared to enter their territory"
Gatekeepers?
Nate stared at the far shore. The broken highlands were now clear in the
afternoon brightness. Waterfalls were splashes of silver flowing down cliffs
the color of spilled blood. The jungled summits and valleys were verdant.
If the
professor was right about the caiman being gatekeepers, then ahead of them
stretched the lands of the Ban-ali, the heart of their deadly territory.
He
stared at the other raft, counting heads. Waxman, Kostos, Warczak, and Camera.
Only four Rangers remained of the twelve sent out here-and they hadn't even
crossed into the true heart of the Ban-ali lands. "We'll never make
it," he mumbled as he paddled.
Camera
heard him. "Don't worry. We'll dig in until reinforcements can be flown
here. It can't take more than a day."
Nate
frowned. They had lost three men today, elite military professionals. A day was
not insignificant. As he stared at the growing heights of the far shore, Nate
was suddenly less sure he wanted to reach dry land, especially that dry land.
But they had no choice. A plague was spreading through the States, and their
small party was as close to an answer to the puzzle as anyone. There was no
turning back.
Besides,
his father had taken this route, run this biological gauntlet. Nate could not
retreat now. Despite the deaths, the dangers, and the risks, he had to find out
what had happened to his father. Plague or not, he could only go forward.
Waxman
called as they neared the far shore. "Stay alert! Once we pull up, move
quickly away from the swamp. We'll set up a base camp a short distance into the
forest:"
Nate
saw the way the captain kept scanning the swamps. Waxman was clearly worried
about other caiman predators. But Nate kept his gaze focused on the jungles
ahead. In his blood, he knew that was where the true danger lay-the Ban-ali.
Across
the water, Nate heard the captain fall upon Olin Pasternak. "And you, get
that uplink running as soon as possible. We have a three hour window before the
satellites are out of range for the night"
"I'll
do my best," Olin assured him.
Waxman
nodded. Nate caught the look in the captain's eyes: full of grief and worry.
Despite his booming confident voice, the leader of the Rangers was as nervous
as Nate. And this realization was oddly reassuring. Nervous men kept a keen eye
on their surroundings, and Nate suspected that their survival would depend on
this.
The
pair of rafts reached the shallows and soon were bumping into solid ground. The
Rangers offloaded first, rifles ready. They fanned out and checked the
immediate forest. Soon, calls of "All clear!" rang out from the dark
jungles fringing the swamp.
Nate
glanced up as he waited for the okay to disembark from the rafts. Around him,
the soft roar of countless waterfalls echoed. To either side, towering cliffs
framed the narrow defile ahead, choked with jungle. Down the center of the
canyon a wide stream flowed, emptying sluggishly into the swamp.
Warczak
shouted from near the forest's edge. "Found it!" The corporal leaned
out of the shadowy fringe and waved to his captain. "Another of Clark's
markers:"
Waxman
motioned with his rifle. "Everybody on land!"
Nate
did not wait. He hurried with the others toward Warczak. A few steps into the
forest, a large Spanish cedar had been pegged with a strip of cloth. And under
it, another carved marking. Each member stared at it with a growing sense of
dread. An arrow pointed up the defile. The meaning was clear.
"Skull
and crossbones," Zane muttered.
Death
lay ahead.
3:40
PM.
"Now
that was quite entertaining," Louis said to his lieutenant, lowering his
binoculars. "When that caiman exploded. . :" He shook his head.
"Resourceful:"
Earlier
that morning, radioed by his mole, Louis had learned of the Rangers' plan to
camp near the far shore until reinforcements could be flown in. He imagined the
loss of three more men would cement Captain Waxman's plan. The group was now
down to four Rangers. No threat.
Louis's
team could take the other at any time-and Louis didn't want those odds changed.
He
turned to Jacques. "We'll let them rest until midnight, then rouse the
little sleepyheads and get them running forward. Who knows what other dangers
they'll prepare us for?" Louis pointed to the swamp.
"Yes,
sir. I'll have my team suited up and ready by nightfall. We're draining several
lanterns now to collect enough kerosene:"
"Good:"
Louis turned his back on the swamp. "Once the others are or. the run,
we'll follow behind you in the canoes."
"Yes,
sir, but . . :" Jacques bit his lower lip and stared out at the swamp.
Louis
patted his lieutenant on the shoulder. "Fear not. If there had been any
other beasties lurking in the swamp, they would've attacked the Rangers. You
should be safe:" But Louis could understand his lieutenant's concern.
Louis would not be the one using scuba gear to cross the swamp on motorized
sleds, with nothing between him and the denizens of the swamp except a wet
suit. Even with the night-vision lamps, it would be a dark and murky crossing.
But
Jacques nodded. He would do as ordered.
Louis
crossed back into the jungle, heading to the camp. Like his lieutenant, many
others were on edge, the tension thick. They all had seen the remains of the
Ranger back in the woods. The soldier looked like he had been eaten alive, down
to the bone, eyes gone. A scattering of locusts had still crawled around the
site, but most of the swarm had dispersed. Alerted by his mole, Louis had
carefully kept burners of tok-tok powder smoldering as they crossed through the
forest this morning, just in case. Luckily Tshui had been able to harvest
enough dried liana vines to produce the protective powder.
Despite
the threats, Louis's plan was proceeding smoothly. He was not so vain as to
think his group moved unseen, but so far the Ban-ali were concentrating all
their resources on the foremost group, the Rangers.
Still,
Louis could not count on this particular advantage lasting much longer,
especially once they entered the heart of the secretive tribe's territory. And
he was not alone in these thoughts. Earlier, three mercenaries from his party
had attempted to sneak off and flee, abandoning their obligations, fearful of
what lay ahead. The cowards had been caught, of course, and Tshui had made an
example of them.
Louis
reached their temporary jungle campsite. He found his mistress, Tshui, kneeling
by his tent. Across the way, strung spread-eagle between various trees, were
the AWOL trio. Louis averted his eyes. There was surely artistry to Tshui's
work, but Louis had only so strong a stomach.
She
glanced up at his approach. She was cleaning her tools in a bowl of water.
Louis
grinned at her. She stood, all legs and sinewy muscle. He took her under his
arm and guided her toward their tent.
As
Tshui ducked past the flap, she growled deep in her chest and, impatient,
tugged his hand to draw him into the dark heat of the tent.
For
the moment, it seemed rest would have to wait.
CHAPTER
THIRTEEN
Shadows
AUGUST
15, 3:23 PM. INSTAR INSTITUTE LANGLEY VIRGINIA
Lauren
knocked on Dr. Alvisio's office door. Earlier this morning, the epidemiologist
had requested, rather urgently, a moment with her. But this was the first chance
she'd had to break away and meet with him.
Instead,
she had spent the entire morning and afternoon in video conference with Dr.
Xavier Reynolds and his team at Large Scale Biological Labs in Vacaville,
California. The prion protein they had discovered could be the first clue to
solving this disease, a contagion that had claimed over sixty lives so far with
another several hundred sick. Lauren had arranged for her former student's data
to be cross-referenced and double-checked by fourteen other labs. As she waited
for confirmation, she had time to meet with the epidemiologist.
The
door opened. The young Stanford doctor looked as if he hadn't slept in weeks. A
bit of dark stubble shadowed his cheeks, and his eyes were bloodshot. "Dr.
O'Brien. Thank you for coming:" He ushered her into the room.
Lauren
had never been in his office, so she was surprised to see a whole array of
computer equipment lining one entire wall. Otherwise, the room was rather
Spartan: a cluttered desk, an overflowing bookcase, a few chairs The only
personal touch was a lone Stanford Cardinals banner hanging or the far wall.
But Lauren's eye was drawn back to the computer bank. The monitors were full of
graphs and flowing numbers.
"What
was so urgent, Hank?" she asked him.
He
waved her to the computers. "I need you to see this:" His voice was
grim.
She
nodded and took the seat he offered before one of the monitors.
"Do
you remember when I told you about the possible signature spike of basophils
early in the disease process? How this clinical finding might be a way to
detect and specify cases more quickly?"
She
nodded, but since hearing his theory, she had already begun to doubt it.
Jessie's basophils had spiked, but the child was recovering very well. There
had even been talk of letting her out of the hospital ward as soon as tomorrow.
This rise in basophils could be something that occurs with many different
fevers and is not specific to this disease.
She
opened her mouth to say just that, but Dr. Alvisio interrupted, turning to his
computer keyboard. He typed rapidly. "It took me a full twenty-four hours
to gather data from around the entire country, specifically searching for fever
cases in children and the elderly with characteristic basophil spikes. I wanted
to run a model for the disease using this new criteria:"
On the
monitor, a map of the United States appeared in yellow with each state mapped
out in black lines. Small pinpoints of red dotted the map, most clustered in
Florida and other southern states. "Here is the old data. Each area of red
indicates current documented cases of the contagion:"
Lauren
slipped on her reading glasses and leaned closer.
"But
using the basophil spike as the marker for designating cases, here is a truer
picture of the disease's present status in the United States:" The
epidemiologist hit a keystroke. The map bloomed brighter with red dots. Florida
was almost a solid red, as were Georgia and Alabama. Other states, empty
before, now were speckled with red spots.
Hank
turned to her. "As you can see, the number of cases skyrockets. Many of
these patients are in unquarantined wards due to the fact that the trio of
signs designated by the CDC have not shown up yet. They're exposing
others:"
Despite
her doubts, Lauren felt a sick churn in her belly. Even if Dr. Alvisio was
wrong about the basophils, he had made a good point. Early detection was
critical. Until then, all feverish children or elderly should be quarantined
immediately, even if they weren't in hot zones like Florida and Georgia.
"I see what you're saying," she said. "We should contact the CDC
and have them establish nationwide quarantine policies:"
Hank
nodded. "But that's not all:" He turned back to his computer and
typed. "Based on this new basophil data, I ran an extrapolation model. Here
is what the disease picture will look like in two weeks:" He pressed the
ENTER key.
The
entire southern half of the country went red.
Lauren
sat back in shock.
"And
in another month:" Hank struck the ENTER key a second time.
The
red mottling spread to consume almost the entire lower forty eight states.
Hank
glanced at her. "We have to do something to stop this. Every day is
critical:"
Lauren
stared at the bloodstained screen, her mouth dry, her eyes wide. Her only
consolation was that Dr. Alvisio's basis for this model was probably overly
grim. She doubted the basophil spike was truly an early marker for the disease.
Still, the warning here was important. Every day was critical.
Her
pager vibrated on her hip, reminding her that the war against this disease had
to be fought with every resource. She glanced down to her pager's screen. It
was Marshall. He had followed his numeric code with a 911. Something urgent.
"Can
I use your phone?" she asked.
"Of
course:"
She
stood and crossed to his desk. Hank returned to his computers and statistical
models. She dialed the number. The phone was answered in half a ring.
"Lauren.
. :'
"What
is it, Marshall?"
His
words were rushed, full of fear. "It's Jessie. I'm at the hospital:"
Lauren
clutched the phone tighter. "What is it? What's wrong?"
"Her
temperature is up again:" His voice cracked. "Higher than it's ever
been. And three other children have been admitted. Fevers, all of them:"
"Wh
. . . what are you saying?" she stammered, but she knew the answer to her
own question.
Her
husband remained silent.
"I'll
be right there," she finally said, dropping the phone and scrabbling to
replace it in its cradle.
Hank
turned to her, noticing her reaction. "Dr. O'Brien?"
Lauren
could not speak. Jessie . . . the basophil spike . . . the other children. Dear
God, the disease was here!
Lauren
stared glassily at the monitor with the map of the United States mottled
entirely in red. The epidemiologist's theory was not a mistake. It wasn't
overly pessimistic.
"Is
everything all right?" Hank asked softly.
Lauren
slowly shook her head, eyes fixed on the screen.
One
month.
5:23
PM.
AMAZON
JUNGLE
Kelly
sat hunched with her brother, both flanking Olin Pasternak. The Russian
computer expert was screwing down the cover piece to reassemble the satellite
communication system. He had been working on it all afternoon, trying to raise
the States.
"This
had better work," he mumbled. "I've torn it down to the motherboard
and built it back up. If this doesn't work, I don't know what else to
try."
Frank
nodded. "Fire it up:"
Olin
checked the connections one final time, adjusted the satellite dish, then
returned his attention to the laptop computer. He switched on the solar power,
and after a short wait, the operating system booted up and the screen hummed to
life.
"We've
got a connection to the HERMES satellite!" Olin said, and sighed with
relief.
A
cheer went up around Kelly. The entire camp, except for the pair of Rangers on
guard by the swamp, was gathered around Olin and his communication equipment.
"Can
you get an uplink established?" Waxman asked.
"Keep
your fingers crossed," Olin said. He began tapping at the keyboard.
Kelly
found herself holding her breath. They needed to reach someone Stateside.
Reinforcements were certainly needed here. But more important to her, Kelly
couldn't stand not knowing Jessie's status. She had to find a way to get back
to her.
"Here
we go:" Olin struck a final sequence of keys. The familiar connection
countdown began.
Richard
Zane mumbled behind her. "Please, please work..."
His
prayer was in all their hearts.
The
countdown blipped to zero. The computer screen froze for an interminably long
second, then a picture of Kelly's mother and father appeared. The pair looked
shocked and relieved.
"Thank
God!" her father said. "We've been trying to reach you for the past
hour:"
Olin
moved aside for Frank. "Computer problems," her brother said,
"among many others:"
Kelly
leaned in. She could not wait a moment longer. "How's Jessie?"
Her
mother's face answered the question. Her eyes fidgeted, and she paused before
speaking. "She's . . . she's doing fine, dear."
The
image on the screen fritzed as if the computer had become a lie detector.
Static and snow ate away the picture. Her mother's next words became garbled.
"Lead on a cure . . . prion disease . . , sending data as we speak. .
:"
Her
father spoke, but the interference grew worse. They seemed unaware that their
message was corrupted. ". . . helicopter on its way . . . Brazilian army..
:'
Frank
hissed to Olin, "Can you fix the reception?"
He
leaned in and tapped quickly. "I don't know. I don't understand. We've
just received a file. Maybe that's interfering with our downstream feed:'
But
for each key the man tapped, the signal deteriorated.
Static
whined and hissed with occasional words coming through. "Frank. . . losing
you . . . can you . . . tomorrow morning . . . GPS locked.. :" Then the
entire feed collapsed. The screen gave one final frazzled burst, then froze up.
"Damn
it!" Olin swore.
"Get
it back up," Waxman said behind them.
Olin
bent over his equipment and shook his head. "I don't know I can. I've
troubleshot the motherboard and rebooted all the software:"
"What's
wrong then?" Kelly asked.
"I
can't say for sure. It's almost like a computer virus has corrupted the entire
satellite communication array."
"Well,
keep trying," Waxman said. "You've got another half hour before the
satellite is out of range:"
Frank
stood, facing everyone. "Even if we can't link up, from what we did hear,
it sounds like the Brazilian helicopter may be on its way here. Maybe as soon
as tomorrow morning:"
Beside
him, Olin stared at the frozen screen. "Oh, God:"
All
eyes turned to the Russian communications expert. He tapped the screen,
pointing to a set of numbers in the upper right-hand corner. "Our GPS
signal. . :"
"What's
the matter?" Waxman asked.
Olin
glanced over to them. "It's wrong. Whatever glitched the satellite system
must've corrupted the feed to the GPS satellites, too. It sent a wrong signal
back to the States:" He stared back at the screen. "It places us
about thirty miles south of our current position:"
Kelly
felt the blood rush from her head. "They won't know where we are.
"I've
got to get this up and running;" Olin said. "At least long enough to
correct the signal:" He rebooted the computer and set to work.
For
the next half hour, Olin worked furiously with his equipment. Oaths and curses,
both in English and Russian, flowed from the man. As he labored, everyone found
busy work to occupy the time. No one bothered to try resting. Kelly helped Anna
prepare some rice, the last of their supplies. As they worked, they kept
looking over to Olin, silently praying.
But
for all the man's efforts and their prayers, nothing was gained.
After
a time, Frank crossed and placed a hand on Olin's shoulder. He raised his other
arm, exposing his wristwatch. "It's too late. The communication satellites
are out of range:"
Olin
sagged over his array, defeated.
"We'll
try again in the morning," Frank said, his encouragement forced. "You
should rest. Start fresh tomorrow."
Nate,
Kouwe, and Manny returned from a fishing expedition by the swamp. Their catch
was bountiful, strung on a line between them. They dropped their load beside
the fire. "I'll clean;" Kouwe said, settling easily to the ground.
Manny
sighed. "No argument here:"
Nate
wiped his hands and stared at Olin and his computer. He crossed toward the man.
"There was something I was wondering about while fishing. What about that
other file?"
"What
are you talking about?" Olin asked blearily.
"You
mentioned something about a file being downloaded during the feed:"
Olin
scrunched his face, then nodded with understanding. "Da. Here it is. A
data file:"
Kelly
and Manny hurried over. Kelly now remembered her mother had mentioned sending
something just before the system crashed.
Olin
brought up the file.
Kelly
leaned closer. On the screen appeared a 3-D model of a molecule spinning above
pages of data. Intrigued, she settled nearer. Her eyes scanned through the
report. "My mother's work," she mumbled, glad to occupy her mind on
something other than her own worries. But the topic was troublesome
nonetheless.
"What
is it?" Nate asked.
"A
possible lead on the cause of the disease," Kelly added.
Manny answered,
peering over her shoulder. "A prion:"
"A
what?"
Manny
quickly explained to Nate, but Kelly's attention remained focused on the
report. "Interesting," Kelly mumbled.
"What?"
Manny asked.
"It
says here that this prion seems to cause genetic damage:" She quickly read
the next report.
Manny
read over her shoulder. He whistled appreciatively.
"What?"
Nate asked.
Kelly
spoke excitedly. "This could be the answer! Here's a paper from
researchers at the University of Chicago, published in Nature back in September
of 2000. They hypothesized through the study of yeast that prions may hold the
key to genetic mutations, even play a role in evolution:"
"Really?
How?"
"One
of the major mysteries of evolution has been how survival skills that require
multiple genetic changes could happen so spontaneously. Such changes are termed
macroevolution, like the adaptation of certain algae to toxic environments or
the rapid development of antibiotic resistance in bacteria. But how such a
series of simultaneous mutations could be generated was not understood. But
this article offers a possible answer. Prions:" Kelly pointed to the
computer screen. "Here the researchers at the University of Chicago have
shown that a yeast's prions can flip an all-or-nothing switch in the genetic
code, causing massive mutations to develop in unison, to spark an evolutionary
jump start, so to speak. Do you know what this suggests?"
Kelly
saw realization dawn in Manny's eyes.
"The
piranha creatures, the locusts . . :" the biologist mumbled.
"Mutations
all of them. Maybe even Gerald Clark's arm!" Kelly said. "A mutation
triggered by prions:"
"But
what does this have to do with the disease?" Nate asked.
Kelly
frowned. "I don't know. This discovery is a good start, but we're a long
way from a complete answer."
Manny
pointed to the screen. "But what about here in the article where it
hypothesizes. . :"
Kelly
nodded. The two began to discuss the article, speaking rapidly, sharing ideas.
Beside
them, Nate had stopped listening. He had scrolled back to the spinning model of
the prion protein.
After
a time, he interrupted. "Does anyone else see the similarity?"
"What
do you mean?" Kelly asked.
Nate
pointed to the screen. "See those two spiraling loops at either end?"
"The
double alpha helixes?" Kelly said.
"Right
. . . and here the corkscrewing middle section," Nate said, tracing the
screen with his finger.
"So?"
Kelly asked.
Nate
turned and reached to the ground beside him. He picked up a stick and drew in
the dirt, speaking as he worked. "The middle corkscrew . . . spreading out
in double loops at either end:" When he was done, he glanced up.
Stunned,
Kelly stared at what Nate had drawn in the dirt.
Manny
gasped, "The Ban-ali symbol!"
Kelly
stared between the two pictures: one, a high-tech computer map; the other, a
crude scrawl in the soft dirt. But there was no disputing the similarity. The
corkscrew, the double helixes . . . It seemed beyond coincidence, even down to
the clockwise spin of the molecular spiral.
Kelly
turned to Nate and Manny. "Jesus Christ."
The
Ban-ali symbol was a stylized model of the same prion.
1 1:32
PM.
Jacques
still had an unnerving terror of dark waters, born from the piranha attack that
had left him disfigured when he was only a boy. Despite these deep fears, he
glided through the swamp with nothing but a wet suit between him and the toothy
predators of this marsh. He had no choice. He had to obey the doctor. The price
of disobedience was worse than any terrors that might lurk in these waters.
Jacques
clung to his motorized attack board as the silent fans dragged his body toward
the far shore of the swamp. He was outfitted in an LAR V Draeger UBA, gear used
by Navy SEALs for clandestine shallow-water operations. The closed-circuit
system, strapped to his chest, rather than his back, produced no telltale
bubble signature, making his approach undetectable. The final piece of his gear
was a night-vision mask, giving him adequate visibility in the murky waters.
Still,
the dark waters remained tight around him. His visibility was only about ten
yards. He would periodically use a small mirrored device to peek above the
water's surface and maintain his bearing.
His
two teammates on this mission trailed behind him, also gliding with tiny
motorized sleds held at arms' length.
Jacques
checked one last time with his tiny periscope. The two bamboo rafts that the
Rangers had used to cross the swamp were directly ahead. Thirty yards away.
In the
woods, he spotted the camp's fire, blazing bright. Shadowy figures, even at
this late hour, moved around the site. Satisfied, he motioned to his two men to
continue on ahead, one to each raft. Jacques would drift behind them, on guard
with his scope.
The
trio moved slowly forward. The rafts were tethered to the shore and floating in
waters less than four feet deep. They would all have to be even more careful
from here.
With
determined caution, the group converged on the rafts. Jacques watched above and
below the surface. His men waited in position, hovering in the shadows of their
respective rafts. He studied the woods. He suspected that hidden in the dark
jungle were guards, Rangers on patrol. He watched for a full five minutes, then
signaled his men.
From
under the rafts, the men produced small squeeze bottles full of kerosene. They
sprayed the underside of the bamboo planks. Once each bottle emptied, the men
gave Jacques a thumbs-up signal.
As his
men worked, Jacques continued to watch the woods. So far, there was no sign
that anyone had noticed their handiwork. He waited a full minute more, then
gave the final signal, a slashing motion across his neck.
Each
man lifted a hand above the water and ignited a butane lighter. They lifted the
tiny flames to the kerosene-soaked bamboo. Flames immediately leaped and spread
over the rafts.
Without
waiting, the two men grabbed up their sleds and sped toward Jacques. He turned
and thumbed his own motor to high and led his men off in a swooping curve out
into the swamp, then back around, aiming for a spot on the shore a
half-kilometer from the enemy's camp.
Jacques
watched behind him. Men appeared out of the wood, outlined by the burning
rafts, weapons pointing. Even underwater, he heard muffled shouts and sounds of
alarm.
It had
all gone perfectly. The doctor knew the other camp, after the locust attack,
would be spooked by fires in the night. They would not likely remain near such
a burning pyre.
Still,
they were to take no unnecessary chances. Jacques led his men back toward the
shallows, and the group slowly rose from the lake, spitting out regulator
mouthpieces and kicking off fins. The second part of his mission was to ensure
the others did indeed flee.
Slogging
out of the water, he breathed a sigh of relief, glad to leave the dark swamp
behind. He fingered the unmangled half of his nose, as if making sure it was
still there.
Jacques
slipped out a pair of night-vision binoculars. He fitted them in place and
stared back toward the camp. Behind him, his men whispered, energized from the
adventure and the successful completion of their task. Jacques ignored them.
Outlined
in the monochrome green of his night scope, a pair of men-Rangers, to judge by
the way they carried their weapons-slipped away from the fiery rafts and called
back into the forest. The group was pulling back. In the woods, new lights
blinked on. Flashlights. Activity bustled around the campfire. Slowly, the
lights began to shift away from the fire, like a line of fireflies. The parade
marched toward the deeper ravine, up the chasm between the flat-topped
highlands.
Jacques
smiled. The doctor's plan had worked.
Still
spying through his scope, he reached for his radio. He pushed the transmitter
and brought the radio to his lips. "Mission successful. Rabbits are
running.
"Roger
that:" It was the doctor. "Canoes heading out now. Rendezvous at
their old camp in two hours. Over and out:"
Jacques
replaced the radio.
Once
again, the hunt was on.
He
turned to his other men to report the good news-but there was no one behind
him. He instantly crouched and hissed their names. "Manuel! Roberto!"
No
answer.
The
night remained dark around him, the woods even darker. He slipped his
night-vision diving mask back over his face. The woods shone brighter, but the
dense vegetation made visibility poor. He backed away, his bare feet striking
water.
Jacques
stopped, frozen between the terrors of what lay behind him and in front of him.
Through
his night-vision mask, he spotted movement. For the barest flicker of a
heartbeat, it looked like the shadows had formed the figure of a man, staring
back at him, no more than ten yards away. Jacques blinked, and the figure was
gone. But now all the jungle shadows flowed and slid like living things toward
him.
He
stumbled backward into the waters, one hand scrambling to shove in his
regulator mouthpiece.
One of
the shadows broke out of the jungle fringe, outlined against the muddy bank.
Huge, monstrous . . .
Jacques
screamed, but his regulator was in the way. Nothing more than a wet gurgle
sounded. More of the dark shadows flowed out of the woods toward him. An old
Maroon tribal prayer rose to his lips. He scrambled backward.
Behind
his fear of dark waters and piranhas was a more basic terror: of being eaten alive.
He
dove backward, twisting around to get away.
But
the shadows were faster.
1 : 51
PM.
With a
flashlight duct-taped to his shotgun, Nate followed near the rear of the group.
The only ones behind him were Private Camera and Corporal Kostos. Everyone had
lights, spearing the darkness in all directions. Despite the night, they moved
quickly, trying to put as much distance as possible between them and whoever
had set the rafts on fire.
The
plan, according to Captain Waxman, was to seek a more defensible position. With
the swamp on one side of them, the jungle on the other, it was not a secure
spot to wait for whatever attack the fires would draw down upon them. And none
of their group was delusional enough to think another attack wouldn't come.
Always
planning one step ahead, the Rangers had a fallback position already picked
out. Corporal Warczak had reported spotting caves in the cliffs a short way up
the chasm. That was their goal.
Shelter
and a defensible position.
Nate
followed the others. Camera marched at his side. In her arms was a strange
shovel-nosed weapon. It looked like a Dustbuster vacuum attached to a rifle
stock. She held it out toward the black jungle.
"What
is that?" he asked.
She
kept her attention on the jungle. "With all we lost in the swamp, we're
short on M- 16s." She hefted the strange weapon. "It's called a
Bailey. Prototype weapon for jungle warfare." She thumbed a switch and a
targeting laser pierced the darkness. She glanced over her shoulder to her
superior. "Demonstration?"
Staff
Sergeant Kostos, armed with his own M-16, grunted. "Testing weapon fire!"
he barked forward to alert the others.
Camera
lifted her weapon, pivoting it for a target. She centered the red laser on the
bole of a sapling about twenty yards away. "Shine your flashlight
here:"
Nate
nodded and swung his flashlight up. Other eyes turned their way.
Camera
steadied her weapon and squeezed the trigger. There was no blast, only a
high-pitched whistle. Nate caught a flash of silver, followed by a ringing
crack. The sapling toppled backward, its trunk sliced cleanly through. Beyond
it, a thick-boled silk cotton tree shook with the impact of something slamming
into its trunk. Nate's flashlight focused on the distant tree. A bit of silver
was embedded deep in the trunk.
Camera
nodded toward her target. "Three-inch razor disks, like Japanese throwing
stars. Perfect for jungle combat. Set to automatic fire, it can mow down all
the loose vegetation around you."
"And
anything else in its path," Kostos added, waving the group onward.
Nate
eyed the weapon with respect.
The
group continued up the jungle-choked ravine, led by Corporal Warczak and
Captain Waxman. They were roughly paralleling the small stream that drained
down the chasm, but they kept a respectable distance from the water, just in
case. After a half hour of trekking, Warczak led them off to the south, heading
for the red cliffs.
So
far, there appeared to be no evidence of pursuit, but Nate's ears remained
alert for any warning, his eyes raking the shadowy jungle. At last the canopy
began to thin enough to see stars and the bright glow of the moon. Ahead the
world ended at a wall of red rock, aproned by loose shale and crumbled
boulders.
At the
top of the sloped escarpment, the cliff face was pocked with multiple caves and
shadowed cracks.
"Hang
back," Captain Waxman hissed, keeping them all hidden in the thicker
underbrush that fringed the lower cliffs. He signaled for Warczak to forge
ahead.
The
corporal flicked off his flashlight, slipped on a pair of night-vision goggles,
and ducked into the shadows with his weapon, vanishing almost instantly.
Nate
crouched. Flanking him, the two Rangers took firm stances, watching their rear.
Nate kept his shotgun ready. Most of the others were also armed. Olin, Zane,
Frank, even Kelly had pistols, while Manny bore a Beretta in one hand and his
whip in the other. Tor-tor had his own built-in weapons: claws and fangs. Only
Professor Kouwe and Anna Fong remained unarmed.
The
professor crept backward to Nate's side. "I don't like this," Kouwe
said.
"The
caves?"
"No
. . . the situation:"
"What
do you mean?"
Kouwe
glanced back down toward the swamp. Distantly the two rafts still burned
brightly. "I smelled kerosene from those flames:"
"So?
It could be copal oil. That stuff smells like kerosene and that's abundant
around here:"
Kouwe
rubbed his chin. "I don't know. The fire that drew the locusts was
artfully crafted into the Ban-ali symbol. This was sloppy."
"But
we were on guard. The Indians had to move fast. It was probably the best they
could manage."
Kouwe
glanced to Nate. "It wasn't Indians:"
"Then
who else?"
"Whoever's
been tracking us all along:" Kouwe leaned in and whispered in an urgent
hiss. "Whoever set the flaming locust symbol crept upon our camp in broad
daylight. They left no trace of their passage into or out of the area. Not a
single broken twig. They were damned skilled. I doubt I could've done it:"
Nate
began to get the gist of Kouwe's concerns. "And the ones who have been
dogging our trail were sloppy."
Kouwe
nodded toward the swamp. "Like those fires:"
Nate
remembered the reflected flash high in the treetops as they hiked through the
forest yesterday afternoon. "What are you suggesting?"
Kouwe
spoke between clenched teeth. "We have more than one threat here. Whatever
lies ahead-a new regenerative compound, a cure for this plague-it would be
worth billions. Others would pay dearly for the knowledge hidden here:"
Nate
frowned. "And you think this other party set those fires? Why?"
"To
drive us forward in a panic, like it did. They didn't want to risk us being
reinforced with additional soldiers. They're probably using us as a human
shield against the natural predatory traps set by the Ban-ali. We're just so
much cannon fodder. They'll waste our lives until we are either spent on this
trail or reach the Ban-ali. Then they'll sweep in and steal the prize.
Nate
eyed the professor. "Why not mention this before we set off?"
Kouwe
stared hard at Nate, and the answer to his question dawned in his own mind.
"A traitor," Nate whispered. "Someone working with the trackers."
"I
find it much too convenient that our satellite feed went on the fritz just as
we drew close to these Ban-ali lands. Plus it then sends off a false GPS
signal:"
Nate
nodded. "Sending our own backup on a wild-goose chase."
"Exactly."
"Who
could it be?" Nate eyed the others crouched in the underbrush.
Kouwe
shrugged. "Anyone. Highest on the list would be the Russian. It's his
system. It would be easy for him to feign a breakdown. But then again both Zane
and Ms. Fong have been hovering around the array whenever Olin has stepped
away. And the O'Briens have a background tied to the CIA, who have been known
to play many sides against one another to achieve their ends. Then, finally, we
can't rule out any of the Rangers:'
"You're
kidding:"
"Enough
money can sway almost anyone, Nate. And Army Rangers are trained extensively in
communications."
Nate
swung back around. "That leaves only Manny as someone we can trust:"
"Does
it?" Kouwe's expression was pained.
"You
can't be serious? Manny? He's a friend to both of us:"
"He
also works for the Brazilian government. And don't doubt that the Brazilian
government would want this discovery solely for itself. Such a medical
discovery would be an economic boon:"
Nate
felt a sick sense of dread. Could the professor be right? Was there no one they
could trust?
Before
he could question Kouwe's assessment further, a scream split the night.
Something huge came flying through the air. People scattered out of the way.
Nate backpedaled with Kouwe in tow.
The
large object landed in the middle of the crouched group. Flashlights swung
toward the crumpled figure in their midst.
Anna
cried out.
Transfixed
in the spears of light, Corporal Warczak lay on his back, covered in blood and
gore. One arm scrabbled up as if he were drowning in the spreading pool of his
own blood. He tried to scream again, but all that came out was a croaking
noise.
Nate
stared, frozen. He could not tear his eyes from the sight of the ruined
corporal.
From
the waist down, Warczak's body was gone. He had been bitten in half.
"Weapons
ready!" Waxman shouted, breaking through the horrified trance.
Nate
dropped to a knee, swinging his shotgun out to the darkness. Kelly and Kouwe
dove to aid the downed corporal, but Nate knew it was a futile gesture. The man
was already dead.
He
pointed his weapon. Throughout the jungle, dark shadows flowed and shifted,
jiggled by the play of the group's flashlights. But Nate knew it wasn't all
illusion. These shadows were all flowing toward the trapped group.
One of
the Rangers shot a flare into the sky. The whistling trail arced high and
exploded into a magnesium brightness that cast the jungle in silver and black.
The sudden brightness gave those who crept up on them reason to pause.
Nate
found himself staring into the eyes of a monster, caught in the shine of the
flare. It crouched in the lee of a boulder on the cliff's escarpment, a massive
creature, the size of a bull, but sleek and smooth. A cat. It studied him with
eyes as black and cold as chunks of obsidian. Others lay nestled in the jungle
and boulders around them. A pack of the creatures, at least twenty.
"Jaguars,"
Manny mumbled in shock over his shoulder. "Black jaguars.
Nate
recognized the physique similar to Tor-tor's, but these creatures were three
times as large, half a ton each. Prehistoric in size.
"They're
all around us," Camera whispered.
In her
words, Nate heard the echo of his father's last radioed message: Can't last
much longer . . . oh, God, they're all around us! Had this been his fate?
For
another breath, neither group moved. Nate held his breath, hoping the nighttime
prowlers would be intimidated by the flare's brightness and retreat. As if this
thought were shared by one of the Rangers, a second flare jetted into the sky
and burst with brightness, floating down on a tiny parachute.
"Hold
steady," Waxman hissed.
The
impasse stretched. The pack was not leaving.
"Sergeant,"
Waxman said, "on my mark, lay a path of grenades up toward the cliffs.
Everyone else, keep weapons ready. Haul ass for the centermost cave on my
signal:'
Nate's
eyes flicked to the yawning cavern in the cliff face. If they could make it
there, the group could be attacked from only one direction. It was defensible.
Their only hope.
"Camera,
use the Bailey to cover our-"
The
sharp crack of a pistol cut off the captain's order. Off to the side, Zane
stumbled backward from the recoil of his smoking gun.
One of
the cats spat and leaped in rage. Other jaguars responded growling low and
bounding toward the group.
"Now!"
Waxman yelled.
Kostos
dropped to one knee, aimed his M-16 toward the cliffs, and fired. Camera spun
with her new weapon, blasting from her hip, laying down a swath of fire across
their rear. A flashing arc of flying silver disks flew out, shredding the
jungle.
One of
the jaguars was caught in midleap, its exposed belly sliced open. It howled and
collapsed to the jungle, writhing.
Its
cries were cut off as Kostos's grenade barrage began booming, echoing off the
cliffs, deafening. Rock dust and dirt flumed up.
Shots
were fired all around. Frank guarded his sister and the professor as they knelt
beside the slack form of Corporal Warczak. Manny was on one knee beside
Tor-tor, whose eyes were wide, hackles raised. Zane and Olin stood with Anna
Fong, firing blindly into the dark.
Nate
kept his shotgun raised and centered on the giant fellow he had first seen,
crouched by the boulder off to the left. Despite the noises and the chatter of
rattling rock debris, the creature had remained stone still.
Other
shadowy figures fled from the bombarded slope. Others lay unmoving, dead,
shredded.
"Go!"
Waxman barked sharply, his command cutting through the explosions. "Make
for the cave!"
The
group lurched through the fringe of brush and jungle toward the open rocky
landscape at the foot of the towering cliffs. Nate kept his shotgun pointed at
the cat, finger tensed on the shotgun's trigger. If it even flicks its tail . .
.
Waxman
waved them on, Kostos in the lead. "Get up there before they
regroup!" The captain dropped beside Camera. Behind them, the pack
converged along their trail. Several limped or sniffed at a dead mate, but they
kept a wary distance now.
Nate
sidled past the silent cat off to the left. Only its eyes followed their
passage. Nate suspected this was the leader of the pack. Behind that cold gaze,
Nate could almost see the thing weighing these strangers, judging them.
Camera
had switched her weapon off automatic, conserving her ammunition. She fired at
a lone cat getting too near. Her aim was off. The silver disk shaved the
jaguar's ear and whizzed off into the jungle. The wounded cat dropped to its
belly, glowering with pain and anger.
"Keep
moving!" Waxman yelled.
By
now, the cave was in direct sight. The group's tense pace collapsed into a
panicked rout. Kostos led the way. He raised a flare pistol and fired it into
the opening. A bright trace flashed out of the pistol's muzzle and exploded
with light inside the cavern.
The
deep cave was illuminated all the way to its rocky end.
"All
clear!" Kostos hollered. "Move it!"
Olin,
Zane, and Anna were the first to race inside. The sergeant stood at the
entrance, M-16 in hand, waving his arm. "Move, move, move.. :"
Frank
pushed Kelly ahead of him. Professor Kouwe ran beside him.
As the
flares died out overhead, Nate took up a position on the other side of the
entrance, shotgun ready.
Manny
and Tor-tor followed with Waxman and Camera on their heels.
They
were going to make it, Nate realized.
Then a
jaguar leaped from the deepening shadows, landing atop a boulder right beside
the last two Rangers. Camera dropped and aimed her weapon, but before she could
fire, a paw struck out and raked into the chest of the team's captain.
Waxman
was yanked off his feet, sailing into the air, claws sunk deep into his field
jacket and chest. He bellowed, bringing up his own weapon. He fired over his
head, striking the cat in the shoulder. The beast toppled backward, dragging
the hooked captain with it. His body flew over the boulder, limbs kicking.
Camera
lunged up and ran around the boulder, going to the aid of her captain. Out of
sight, Nate heard the characteristic whir of her weapon. Then suddenly she was
backing into sight again. On her trail were a pair of jaguars. They were
bleeding, embedded bits of silver decorated their flesh. Camera was obviously
struggling with the cartridge to her weapon, out of ammo disks.
Nate
leaped away from the cave wall and ran toward her. As he reached her side, he
shoved his shotgun to arms' length, the muzzle only a foot away from the
snarling face of one of the jaguars. He pulled the trigger, and the beast flew
back, howling.
Camera
unholstered her 9mm pistol. She fired and fired at the other jaguar, unloading
the clip. It fell back, then collapsed.
They
stumbled up the slope.
Around
the other side of the boulder, the captain fell into sight, crawling, one arm
gone. His face was a bloody ruin.
"I
. . . I thought he was dead," Camera said with shock, stepping in his
direction.
The
captain crawled half a step, then a paw shot out and dug into the meat of his
thigh. He was pulled back toward the hidden shadows. He screamed, fingers
digging at the loose shale, finding no purchase.
A shot
cracked. The captain's head flew back, then forward, striking the rock hard.
Dead. Nate glanced behind him and saw Kostos crouched with his M-16 in hand,
eyes fixed to its sniper scope. The sergeant slowly lowered his weapon, his
expression pained and ripe with hard guilt.
"Everyone,
get inside!" he yelled.
The
party had remained clustered near the entrance.
Nate
and Camera hurried toward the cavern mouth.
Frank
and Kostos flanked the threshold, weapons ready. The men were limned against
the glare of the dying flare inside the passage. Frank waved to them.
"Hurry!"
From
Nate's position several yards down the escarpment, he spotted a deeper shadow
shift along the base of the rocky cliff. To the left of the cave opening.
"Watch out!"
It was
the largest of the jaguars, the one Nate had first spotted.
It
sprang past the mouth of the cave. Frank was bowled over, flying high into the
air and landing on his back. Kostos was slammed into the wall. Then the cat was
gone, racing back into the shadows below.
Kelly
screamed. "Frank!"
Nate
ran with Camera. Kostos picked himself off the ground, wheezing and holding his
chest, dazed.
"Help
me!" Kelly yelled.
Frank
lay writhing in the shale. Kelly's brother hadn't just been
knocked
off his feet. Both his legs were gone from the knees down. Blood spurted and
jetted across the stones. In those few seconds, the giant jaguar had sheared
off the limbs, as cleanly as a guillotine.
Kouwe
fell to Frank's other side. Olin helped drag the moaning man into the cave.
Kelly followed, yanking tourniquets from her pack. Plastic vials of morphine
tumbled to the floor. Nate retrieved them.
Near
the entrance, a shot was fired. Light burst outside. Another flare. Nate held
out the vials of morphine, feeling useless, stunned.
Kouwe
took them. "Go watch our back:" He nodded to the entrance.
Olin
and Kelly worked on the stricken man. Tears flowed down Kelly's cheeks, but her
face was tight with determination and concentration. She refused to lose her
brother.
Nate
turned with his shotgun and joined Kostos and Camera at the cave's opening. The
new flare showed that the jungle still moved with shadows. The bouldered slope
offered additional cover for the cats.
Manny
joined them, pistol in one hand. Tor-tor sniffed at Frank's blood on the rock
and growled.
"I
count at least another fifteen," Camera said, face half covered with
night-vision goggles. "They're not leaving:'
Kostos
swore. "If they rush us, we couldn't hope to stop them all. We're down to
one grenade launcher, two M-16s, and a handful of pistols:'
"And
my shotgun," Nate added.
Camera
spoke, "I've fitted a new cartridge into the Bailey. But it's my
last."
Manny
crouched with his pistol, "There's some old debris blown in the back of
the cave-branches, leaves, whatnot. We could light a fire at the entrance:'
"Do
it;" Kostos said.
As
Manny turned, a long, low growl rumbled up the slope. Everyone froze.
Illuminated by the flare, a large shape revealed itself on the rocky slope.
Weapons were raised.
Note
recognized the shadow as the largest cat.
"A
female," Manny mumbled.
It
remained in plain sight, studying them, challenging them. Behind it, the jungle
churned with sleek bodies, muscled and clawed.
"What
do we do?" Camera asked.
"The
bitch is trying to psych us out," Kostos grumbled, lowering his eye to the
sight on his rifle.
"Don't
fire;" Nate hissed. "If you shoot now, you'll have the whole pack on
us.
"Nate's
right," Manny said. "Their blood lust is up. Anything could set them
off. At least wait until we have a fire going here:"
The
cat seemed to hear him and let out a piercing yowl. In a surge of pure muscle,
she leaped toward them, charging at an astounding speed, a precision machine.
The
Rangers fired, but the she-beast was too fast, gliding with preternatural
swiftness. Bullets chewed at the rock, sparking, missing, as if she were a true
phantom. A single razored disk whizzed from the Bailey and zinged off a boulder
to skitter harmlessly down the slope.
Nate
dropped to one knee, shotgun pointed. "Here, kitty-kitty," he hissed
under his breath. Once she was close enough . . .
Camera
repositioned her weapon, but before she could fire another shot, she was bumped
aside. Tor-tor lunged past her, leaping from his master's side to the slope
beyond.
"Tor-tor!"
Manny called.
The
smaller jaguar bounded a few yards down the slope and stopped, digging in,
blocking the path of the larger cat. With a sharp snarl, he crouched low, rear
haunches raised and bunched to spring, tail flicking with menace. He bared his
long yellow claws and sharp fangs.
The
giant black jaguar rushed at him, prepared to bowl him over, but at the last
moment, she pulled up and stopped in front of Tor-tor, matching his stance,
snarling. The two cats hissed and challenged each other.
Kostos
lifted his weapon. "You're dead, bitch:"
Manny
motioned him not to shoot. "Wait!"
The
two cats slowly padded around each other, circling, only a yard apart. At one
point, the giant female's back was toward them. Nate could tell both Rangers
had to restrain themselves not to fire.
"What
are they doing?" Carrera asked.
Manny
answered, "She can't understand why one of her own species, even a small
one like Tor-tor, is protecting us. It has her perplexed."
By
now, the two had stopped snarling. They cautiously approached one another, now
almost nose to nose. Sharing some silent communication, the circling continued.
Raised hackles settled back to sleek fur. A soft chuffing sounded as the larger
cat took in the scent of this strange little jaguar.
Eventually
they both stopped their dance, once again back to their original positions.
Tor-tor crouched between the cave and the giant cat.
With a
final grunt, the large jaguar leaned forward and rubbed her jowl against the
side of Tor-tor's cheek, some understanding reached, a truce. With a blur of
black fur, the giant cat spun and slipped back down the slope.
Slowly
Tor-tor straightened from his crouch. His eyes glowed golden. With a feline
casualness, he licked a patch of ruffled fur back into perfect place and turned
to them. He padded back to the entrance as if he'd just come back from a
stroll.
Camera
lowered her weapon and shifted her night-vision goggles. "They're pulling
back," she said, amazed.
Manny
hugged his pet. "You stupid bastard," he mumbled.
"What
just happened?" Kostos asked.
"Tor-tor's
close to being sexually mature," Manny said. "A juvenile male. The
female, though huge, appears proportionally to be about the same age. And with
all the blood in the air, tensions were high, including sexual tension. From
their actions, Tor-tor's challenge was construed as both a threat and a sexual
display."
Kostos
scowled. "So you're saying he was making a play for her ass:"
"And
she accepted," Manny said, patting his jaguar's side proudly. "Since
Tor-tor came out and met her challenge, she probably believes him to be our
pack leader. An acceptable mate:"
"What
now?" Camera asked. "They've pulled back, but haven't left. As a
matter of fact, they seem to be massing down the chasm a bit, blocking any
retreat back to the swamp lake:"
Manny
shook his head. "I don't know what they're doing. But Tor-tor has bought
us some time. I say we use it. Get that fire lit and keep our guard up:'
Nate
watched the bulk of the pack flow down into the jungle chasm. What were they
doing?
"We've
got company," Camera said, voice tense again. She pointed in the opposite
direction, deeper up the canyon.
Nate
turned his attention. In that direction, he saw nothing but the dark jungle and
the broken landscape of rock at the foot of the cliff. "What did
you-"
Then
movement caught his eye.
A
short way up the chasm, a dark figure stepped more fully out of the jungle
fringe and onto the exposed shale. It was a human figure. A man. He was as much
a shadow as the cats, black from head to toe. He lifted an arm, then turned and
began to walk up the canyon, keeping in plain sight. They watched him, stunned.
"It
must be one of the Ban-ali," Nate said.
The
figure stopped, turned their way, and seemed to be waiting.
"I
think he wants us to follow him," Manny said.
"And
the jaguars aren't leaving us much choice," Camera said. "They've
settled into the jungle below us:"
The
distant figure simply stood.
"What
do we do?" Camera asked.
Nate
answered, "We follow him. It's why we came. To find the Ban-ali Perhaps
this was their last test, the jaguar pack:"
"Or
it could be another trap," Kostos said.
"I
don't see we have much choice," Camera said. "I have a feeling we go
or the pack will finish us off."
Nate
glanced over his shoulder to the deeper depths of the cave. Ten yards back,
Kelly, Kouwe and the others were still gathered around Frank, now stripped to
his boxers. The man seemed to be sedated. Anna stood; holding an IV bag at
shoulder height. Kelly had one of her brother's stumped limbs already wrapped
in a bandage and was tying off a vessel in the other. Kouwe knelt beside her,
ready with the bandages for this other limb. Around them, empty syringe
wrappers and small plastic drug bottle littered the cave floor.
"I'll
see if Frank can be moved:"
"We
leave no one behind," Kostos said.
Nate
nodded, glad to hear it. He crossed to the others. "How's Frank
doing?" he asked Kouwe.
"He's
lost a lot of blood. Once he's stable, Kelly wants to transfuse him:
Nate
sighed. "We may have to move him:"
"What?"
Kelly asked, tying off a suture. "He can't be moved!" Panic,
exhaustion, and disbelief hardened her words.
Nate
crouched as Kelly and Kouwe began bandaging the second stump. Frank moaned
softly as his leg was jarred.
As
they worked, Nate explained what had happened at the cave's entrance.
"We've been contacted by the Ban-ali. Perhaps invited to continue on to
their village. I suspect the invitation is a one-time offer:"
Kouwe
nodded. "We must've passed some last challenge, survived some gauntlet;'
the professor said, parroting Nate's early assessment. "Now we've earned
the right to move onward by proving ourselves worthy."
"But
Frank . . . ?" Kelly said.
"I
can rig up a stretcher out of bamboo and palm fronds," Kouwe said softly,
touching Kelly's hand. "Knowing these tribesmen, if we don't move him,
he'll be killed. We'll all be killed:"
Nate
watched the woman's face tighten with fear. Her eyes glazed. First her
daughter, now her brother.
Nate
sank down beside her and put his arm around her. "I'll make sure he gets
where we're going safely. Once there, Olin can get the radio up and
running:" Nate glanced to the Russian.
Olin
nodded his head vigorously. "I know I can at least get the GPS working
properly to send out a decent signal:"
"And
once that's done, help will arrive. They'll airlift your brother out. He'll
make it. We all will:"
Kelly
leaned into him, softening against him. "Do you promise?" she said,
her voice soft with tears.
He
tightened his embrace. "Of course I do:" But as Nate stared at the
pale face of her brother, with blood slowly seeping through the man's new
bandages, he prayed it was a promise he could keep.
Kelly
shifted in his hold, and her voice was stronger when she spoke. "Then
let's go:"
He
helped her to her feet.
They
quickly began arranging for their departure. Kostos and Manny crossed to the
jungle and gathered material to construct the makeshift stretcher, while Kelly
and Kouwe stabilized Frank as well as they could. Soon they were ready to head
out again into the night.
Nate
met Camera at the cave entrance.
"Our
visitor's still out there," she said.
In the
distance, the lone shadowy figure stood.
Kostos
raised his voice, returning to make sure everything was in order. "Keep
together! Keep alert!"
Nate
and Camera separated. The group filed out between them with the sergeant in the
lead. Near the end of the line, Manny and Olin carried the stretcher, the
patient lashed to the bamboo for extra security. The men in the party would
take turns hauling Frank.
As the
stretcher passed, Kelly followed last. Then Nate and Camera moved in step
behind her.
Just
past the entrance, the toe to Nate's boot knocked an object from the shale,
something dusty and discarded. Nate bent to pick it up and inspected it.
They
couldn't leave this behind.
He
knocked off the dirt and stepped forward. He slipped in front of Manny, wiped
the last bit of dust from the brim of Frank's Red Sox cap, and placed it back
on the stricken man's head.
As
Nate turned to return to his place in line, he found Kelly's eyes on his, tears
glistening. She offered him a shadow of a sad smile. He nodded, accepting her
silent gratitude.
Nate
took his position beside Camera. He studied the dark jungle and the solitary
figure in the distance.
Where
did the path lead from here?
CHAPTER
FOURTEEN
Habitation
AUGUST
16, 4:13 A.M.
AMAZON
JUNGLE
Louis
floated in his canoe, awaiting news from his trackers. Dawn was still hours
away. Stars shone in the clear sky, but the moon had set, casting the swamp
into deep shadows. Through night-vision scopes, Louis watched for any sign of
his men.
Nothing.
He
grimaced. As he waited in the canoe, he felt his plan crumbling around him.
What was going on out there? His ruse to get the Ranger team fleeing had been
successful. But what now?
At
midnight, Louis's team had crossed the swamp in their canoes, hauled overland
from the river. As the group neared the far shore, flares had blossomed into
the sky further up the chasm, near the southern cliffs. Shots were fired,
echoing down to the swamp.
Using
binoculars, Louis had watched a shadowy firelight. The Ranger team was again
clearly under attack. But from his vantage, Louis could not see who or what was
attacking them. His attempts to contact Jacques's recon team had failed. His
lieutenant had gone mysteriously silent.
Needing
information, Louis had sent a small team ashore, his best trackers, outfitted
with night-vision and infrared equipment, to investigate what was happening. He
and the others remained a safe distance offshore in the canoes and waited.
Two
hours had passed, and so far, there was no word, not even a radio message from
the trackers. Sharing his canoe were three men and his mistress. They all
watched the far shore with binoculars.
Tshui
was the first to spot a man slip from the jungle. She pointed, making a small
sound of warning.
Louis
swung his glasses. It was the leader of the tracking team. He waved for them to
cross to shore. "At last," Louis mumbled, lowering his scopes.
The
convoy of canoes swept to the boggy banks. Louis was one of the first on shore.
He silently signaled his men to set up a defensive perimeter, then crossed to
the lead tracker.
The
dark-haired man, a German mercenary named Brail, nodded in greeting. He was
short, no taller than five feet, painted in camouflage and clad in black
clothes.
"What
did you find?" Louis asked him.
The
man spoke with a thick German accent. "Jaguars, a pack of fifteen or so.
Louis
nodded, not surprised. Across the swamp, they had heard the strange growls and
cries.
"But
these were no ordinary jaguars," Brail continued. "More like
monsters. Three times normal size. There's a body I can show you:"
"Go
on," Louis said, waving this away for now. "What happened to the
others?"
Brail
continued his report, describing how the trackers had been forced to move with
care so as not to be spotted. The rest of his four-man team were positioned in
trees up the chasm. "The pack is leaving, heading deeper into the canyon.
They appear to be herding the remaining members of the enemy team ahead of
them:"
Brail
held out an open palm. "After the cats left the area, we found these on a
mauled corpse:" The tracker held two silver bars affixed to a scrap of
khaki. They were captain's bars. The leader of the Rangers.
"Why
aren't the jaguars attacking the rest?" Louis asked.
Brail
touched his night-vision scope. "I spotted someone, an Indian from the look
of him, leading them from farther up the canyon:"
"One
of the Ban-ali?"
The
man shrugged.
Who
else could it be? Louis wondered. He pondered this newest information. Louis
could not let the others get too far ahead, especially if the Rangers had made
successful contact with the strange tribe. With the prize so close, Louis dared
not lose them now.
But
the surviving jaguars could prove a difficulty. They stood between his team and
the others. The pack would have to be eliminated as quietly as possible without
spooking his true prey.
Louis
studied the dark forest. The time of slinking in the others' shadows was
nearing an end. Once he knew where the village was located and evaluated its
defenses, he could take his plan to its final stage.
"Where
are the cats now?" Louis asked. "Are they all heading up the
canyon?"
Brail
grunted sourly. "For the moment. If there's any change, my scouts will
radio back to us. Luckily, with the infrared scopes, the bastards are easy to
spot. Large and hot:"
Louis
nodded, satisfied. "What about any other hostiles?"
"We
swept the area, Herr Doktor. No heat signatures:"
Good.
Then at least for the moment, the Rangers were still keeping attention diverted
away from Louis's team. But this close to the Ban-ali lands, Louis knew such an
advantage would not last long. He and his team would have to move quickly from
here. But first, for his plan to proceed, the path ahead had to be cleared of
the jaguar pack.
He
turned and found Tshui standing at his shoulder, as silent and deadly as any
jungle cat. He reached and ran a finger tenderly along her cheekbone. She
leaned into his touch. His mistress of poisons and potions.
"Tshui,
ma cherie, it seems once again we must call upon your talents."
5:44
A.M.
Nate's
shoulders ached from carrying the stretcher. They had been marching for over
two hours. Off to the east, the sky was already glowing a soft rose with the
promise of dawn.
"How
much farther?" Manny huffed from the head of the stretcher. He voiced the
question on all their minds.
"I
don't know, but there's no going back from here," Nate said, winded
"Not
unless you want to be someone's morning snack," Private Carrera reminded
them, maintaining a vigil on their back trail.
All
night long, the jaguar pack had dogged their trail, sticking mostly to the
jungles that fringed the cliffs. An occasional bolder individual would stalk
the loose shale, a silhouette against the black rock.
Their
presence kept Tor-Tor on edge. The jaguar would hiss under his breath and pace
around and around the stretcher, on guard. His eyes flashed an angry gold.
For
them all, the only safe path from here was forward, following the lone figure.
The tribesman maintained a quarter-mile lead on them, keeping a pace they could
follow.
But
exhaustion was quickly setting in. After so many days with so little sleep,
everyone was bone tired. The entire team moved at a snail's pace, feet
dragging, stumbling often. Still, as hard as the night journey was on all their
nerves, one member of their party suffered the most.
Kelly
never left her brother's side: constantly checking Frank's vital signs and
adjusting his bloody bandages as they walked. Her face remained ashen in the
starlight, her eyes scared and exhausted. When she wasn't acting as his doctor,
she simply held Frank's hand, just a sister at these moments, clearly trying to
will him her own strength.
The
only blessing was that the morphine and sedatives were keeping the wounded man
in a doped drowse, though he would occasionally moan. Each time this happened,
Kelly would tense and her face would twist as if the pain were her own, which
Nate suspected was partly true. She clearly suffered as much as her twin
brother.
"Attention!"
Kostos called from up front. "We're changing direction:"
Nate
peered ahead. All night they had been trudging along the hardpacked soil where
the jungle met the rocky escarpment of the cliffs. He now watched their guide
cross the escarpment toward one of the many shattered cracks in the cliff face.
It ran from top to bottom, as wide as a two-car garage.
The
tribesman stepped to the entrance, turned back to stare at them, then, without
a signal or any other sign of welcome, he strode into the chasm.
"I'll
check it out first," Kostos said.
The
Ranger trotted ahead as they slowed their pace. He had a flashlight secured
under his M-16. The light remained steady and fixed on his target. He dashed to
the side of the crack's entrance, took a breath, then twisted to shine his
light down it. He remained fixed in this position for several seconds, then
waved them over with one arm, maintaining his post. "It's a side chute! A
steep one:'
The
group converged upon the Ranger.
Nate
squinted up its length. The crack extended the full height of the cliff, open
at the top to let starlight shine down it. The way was quite steep, but there
appeared to be crude steps climbing the chute.
Professor
Kouwe pointed. "It looks like there might be another canyon or valley
beyond this one:"
Anna
Fong stood beside him. "Or perhaps it's a switchback of this same canyon,
a shortcut to the upper level."
In the
distance, the lone tribesman climbed the stone steps, seemingly unconcerned
whether they followed or not. But his nonchalance was not shared by all. Behind
them, the jaguar pack drew closer, growling and whining.
"I
say we need to make a decision," Camera said.
Kostos
frowned at the tall walls that framed the crude staircase. "It could be a
trap, an ambush:"
Zane
took a step toward the chute. "We're already in a trap, Sergeant. I for
one prefer to take my chances with the unknown than with what lies behind
us:"
No one
argued. The memory of the deaths of Warczak and Waxman remained fresh and
bloody.
Kostos
moved on ahead of Zane. "Let's go. Keep alert:"
The
chute was wide enough that Manny and Nate could walk side by side, the
stretcher between them. This made mounting the steep stairs a bit easier.
Still, the climb was daunting.
Olin
moved down to them. "Do either of you need to be relieved?"
Manny
grimaced. "I can last a little longer."
Nate
nodded, agreeing.
So
they began the long climb. As they progressed, Nate and Manny were soon lagging
behind the others. Kelly kept near them, her face worried. Camera maintained
the rear guard.
Nate's
knees ached, his thighs burned, and his shoulders knotted with exhaustion. But
he kept on. "It can't be much farther," he said aloud, more to
himself then anyone else.
"I
hope not," Kelly said.
"He's
strong," Manny said, nodding to Frank.
"Strong
will only get you so far," she answered.
"He'll
pull through this," Nate assured her. "He's got his lucky Red Sox
cap, doesn't he?"
Kelly
sighed. "He loves that old thing. Did you know he was a shortstop for a
farm club? Triple A division:" Her voice lowered to a strained whisper.
"My father was so proud. We all were. There was even talk of Frank going
into the majors. Then he got in a skiing accident, screwed up his knee. It
ended his career."
Manny
grunted in surprise. "And that's his lucky hat?"
Kelly
brushed the cap's brim, a trace of a smile on her lips. "For three
seasons, he played a game he loved with all his heart. Even after the accident,
he was never bitter. He felt himself the luckiest man in the world:"
Nate
stared down at the cap, envying Frank his moment in the sun. Had life ever been
that simple for him? Maybe the man's cap was indeed lucky. And right now, they
needed all the luck they could get.
Camera
interrupted their reminiscing. "The jaguars . . . they've stopped
following us."
Nate
glanced down the stairs. One of the giant cats stood at the entrance. It was
the female leader of the pack. She paced back and forth below. Tor-tor stared
down at her, eyes flashing. The female stared at the smaller cat for a
moment-then, in a shadowy blur, she fled back into the jungle.
"The
lower valley must be the pack's territory," Manny said. "Another line
of defense:"
"But
what are they protecting?" Camera asked.
A call
sounded from up ahead. It was Sergeant Kostos. He had stopped ten steps from
the end of the chasm and waved them to join him.
As the
group gathered, the eastern skies brightened with dawn. Beyond the stepped
chute, a valley opened, thick with dense vegetation and towering trees.
Somewhere a stream babbled brightly, and in the distance, a waterfall grumbled.
"The
Ban-ali lands," Professor Kouwe said.
Olin
approached Manny and Nate. He reached for the stretcher. "We'll take over
from here:"
Nate
was surprised to see Richard Zane at the Russian's side. But Nate didn't
complain. They passed the stretcher to the new bearers. Relieved of the weight,
Nate felt a hundred pounds lighter. His arms felt like they wanted to float up.
He and
Manny climbed up to Kostos.
"The
Indian disappeared," the sergeant grumbled.
Nate
saw that the tribesman had indeed vanished. "Even so, we know where we
have to go:"
"We
should wait until the sun's fully up;" Kostos said.
Manny
frowned. "The Ban-ali have been tracking us since we first set out into
the jungles . . . night and day. Whether the sun is up or not, we won't see a
single soul unless they want us to:"
"Besides;"
Nate said, "we have a man down. The sooner we reach a village or whatever,
the better Frank's chances. I say we forge on:"
Kostos
sighed, then nodded. "Okay, but keep together:"
The
sergeant straightened and led the way from there.
With
each step, the new day grew brighter. Sunrise in the Amazon was often sudden.
Overhead, the stars were swallowed in the spreading rosy glow of dawn. The
cloudless sky promised a hot day to come.
The
group paused at the top of the chasm. A thin trail led down into the jungle.
But where did it go? In the valley below, there was no sign of habitation. No
wood smoke rising, no voices echoing.
Before
moving forward, Kostos stood with binoculars, studying the valley. "Damn
it," he mumbled.
"What's
wrong?" Zane asked.
"This
canyon is just a switchback of the one we were in:" He pointed to the
right. "But it appears this canyon is cut off from the one below it by
steep cliffs:"
Nate
lifted his own binoculars and followed where the sergeant pointed. Through the
jungle, he could just make out where a small stream flowed down the canyon's
center. He followed its course until it vanished over a steep drop, down into
the lower canyon, the one they had been marching through all night, the domain
of the giant jaguars.
"We're
boxed in here," Kostos said.
Nate
swung his binoculars in the opposite direction. He spotted another waterfall.
This one tumbled down into this canyon from a massive cliff on the far side. In
fact, the entire valley was closed in by rock walls on three sides, and the
steep cliff on the fourth.
It's a
totally isolated chunk of jungle, Nate realized.
The
sergeant continued, "I don't like this. The only way up here is this
chute:"
As
Nate lowered his glasses, the edge of the sun crested the eastern skies, bathing
the jungle ahead in sunlight, creating a green glow. A flock of blue-and-gold
macaws took wing from a rookery near the misty cliffs and sailed past overhead.
The spray from the two waterfalls at either end of the valley made the air
almost sparkle in the first rays of the sun.
"Like
a bit of Eden," Professor Kouwe said in a hushed voice.
With
the touch of light, the jungle awoke with birdsong and the twitter of monkeys.
Butterflies as big as dinner plates fluttered at the fringe. Something furry
and quick darted back into the jungle. Isolated or not, life had found its way
into this verdant valley.
But
what else had made its home here?
"What
are we going to do?" Anna asked.
Everyone
remained silent for several seconds.
Nate
finally spoke. "I don't think we have much choice but to proceed:"
Kostos
scowled, then nodded. "Let's see where this leads. But stay alert:"
The
group cautiously descended the short slope to the jungle's edge. Kostos led
once again, Nate at his side with his shotgun. They marched in a tight bunch
down the path. As soon as they entered under the bower of the shadowed forest,
the scents of orchids and flowering vines filled the air, so thick they could
almost taste it.
Still,
as sweet as the air was, the constant tension continued. What secrets lay out
here? What dangers? Every shadow was suspect.
It
took Nate fifteen minutes of hiking before he noticed something strange about
the forest around them. Exhaustion must have dulled his senses. His feet
slowed. His mouth dropped open.
Manny
bumped into him. "What's the matter?"
His
brow furrowed, Nate crossed a few steps off the path.
"What
are you doing, Rand?" Kostos asked.
"These
trees. . :" Nate's sense of wonder overwhelmed him, cutting through his
unease.
The
others stopped and stared. "What about them?" Manny asked.
Nate
turned in a slow circle. "As a botanist, I recognize most of the plants
around here:" He pointed and named names. "Silk cotton, laurels,
figs, mahogany, rosewood, palms of every variety. The usual trees you'd see in
a rain forest. But. . :" Nate's voice died away.
"But
what?" Kostos asked.
Nate
stepped to a thin-boled tree. It stretched a hundred feet into the air and
burst into a dense mass of fronds. Giant serrated cones hung from its
underside. "Do you know what this is?"
"It
looks like a palm," the sergeant said. "So what?"
"It's
not!" Nate slapped the trunk with his palm. "It's a goddamn
cycadeoid:"
"A
what?"
"A
species of tree thought long extinct, dating back to the Cretaceous period.
I've only seen examples of it in the fossil record:"
"Are
you sure?" Anna Fong asked.
Nate
nodded. "I did my thesis on paleobotany." He crossed to another
plant, a fernlike bush that towered twice his height. Each frond was as tall as
he was and as wide as his stretched arms. He shook one of the titanic leaves.
"And this is a goddamn giant club moss. It's supposed to have gone extinct
during the Carboniferous period. And that's not all. They're all around us.
Glossopterids, lycopods, podocarp conifers . . :" He pointed out the
strange plants. "And that's just the things I can classify."
Nate
pointed his shotgun to a tree with a coiled and spiraled trunk. "I have no
idea what that thing is:" He faced the others, shedding his exhaustion
like a second skin, and lifted his arms. "We're in a goddamn living fossil
museum:"
"How's
that possible?" Zane asked.
Kouwe
answered, "This place is isolated, a pocket in time. Anything could have
sheltered here for eons:"
"And
geologically this region dates back to the Paleozoic era," Nate added,
excited. "The Amazon basin was once a freshwater inland sea before changes
in tectonics opened the sea to the greater ocean and drained it away. What we
have here is a little peek at that ancient past. It's amazing!"
Kelly
spoke up from beside the stretcher. `Amazing or not, I need to get Frank
somewhere safe:'
Her
words drew Nate back to the present, back to their situation. He nodded,
embarrassed at his distraction in the face of their predicament.
Kostos
cleared his throat. "Let's push on:"
The
group followed his lead.
Fascinated
by the forest, Nate hung back. His eyes studied the foliage around him, no
longer peering at the shadows, but fixed on the jungle itself. As a trained
botanist, he gaped in disbelief at the riotous flora: stalked horsetails the
size of organ pipes, ferns that dwarfed modern-day palms, massive primitive
conifers with cones the size of VW bugs. The mix of the ancient and the new was
simply astounding, a merged ecosystem unlike any seen before.
Professor
Kouwe walked beside him now. "What do you think about all this?"
Nate
shook his head. "I don't know. Other prehistoric groves have been
discovered in the past. In China, a forest of dawn redwoods was discovered in
the eighties. In Africa, a grotto of rare ferns. And most recently, in
Australia, an entire stand of prehistoric trees, long thought extinct, was
found in a remote rain forest:" Nate glanced to Kouwe for emphasis.
"So considering how little of the Amazon has been explored, it's actually
more surprising that we've not found such a grove before:"
"The
jungle hides its secrets well," Kouwe said.
As
they walked, the canopy overhead grew denser, the forest taller. The morning
sunlight dwindled to a green glow. It was as if they were walking back into
twilight.
Further
conversation died as everyone watched the forest. By now, even nonbotanists
could tell this jungle was unusual. The number of prehistoric plants began to
outnumber the modern-day counterparts. Trees grew huge, ferns towered, strange
twisted forms wound among the mix. They passed a spiky bromeliad as large as a
small cottage. Massive flowers, as large as pumpkins, grew from vines and
scented the air thickly.
It was
a greenhouse of amazing proportion.
Kostos
suddenly stopped ahead, freezing in place, eyes on the trail, weapon raised and
ready. He then slowly motioned them to get down.
The
group crouched. Nate shifted his shotgun. Only then did he notice what had
startled the Ranger.
Nate
stared off to the left, the right, even behind them. It was like one of those
computerized pictures that appeared at first to be just a blur of random dots,
but when stared at cross-eyed, from a certain angle, a 3-D image suddenly and
startlingly appeared.
Nate
suddenly and startlingly saw the jungle in a new light.
High
in the trees, mounted among the thick branches, platforms had been built, with
small dwellings atop them. The roofs of many were woven from the living leaves
and branches, offering natural camouflage. These half-living structures blended
perfectly with their host trees.
As
Nate looked closer, what had appeared to be vines and stranglers crisscrossing
between the trees and draping to the ground were in fact natural bridges and
ladders. One of these ladders was only a few yards to Nate's right. Flowers
grew along its length. It was alive, too.
As he
stared around, it was hard to say where man-made structure ended and living
began. Half artificial, half growing plant. The blend was so astounding, the
camouflage so perfect.
Without
them even knowing it, they had already entered the Ban-ali village.
Ahead,
larger dwellings climbed even taller trees, multilevel with terraces and
patios. But even these were well camouflaged with bark, vine, and leaf, making
them difficult to discern.
As
they stared, no one in their party moved. One question was on all their faces:
Where were the inhabitants of these treetop homes?
Tor-tor
growled a deep warning.
Then
like the village itself, Nate suddenly saw them. They had been there all along,
unmoving, silent, all around. Bits of living shadow. With their bodies painted
black, they had melded into the darkness between the trees and under bushes.
One of
the tribesmen stepped from his concealing gloom and onto the path. He seemed
undaunted by the weapons in their hands.
Nate
was certain it was their earlier guide. The one who had led them here. His
black hair was braided with bits of leaf and flower in it, adding to the
natural camouflage. As he stepped forth, his hands were empty of any weapons.
In fact, the tribesman was naked, except for a simple loincloth. He stared at
the group, his face hard and unreadable.
Then
without a word, he turned and walked down the path.
"He
must want us to follow him again," Professor Kouwe said, climbing to his
feet. The others slowly stood.
In the
woods, more tribesmen remained silent sentinels, bathed in shadows.
Kostos
hesitated.
"If
they had wanted to kill us," Professor Kouwe added, "we'd be dead
already."
Kostos
frowned, but the Ranger reluctantly continued on after the tribesman.
As
they walked, Nate continued to study the village and its silent inhabitants. He
caught occasional glimpses of smaller faces in windows, children and women.
Nate glanced to the men half hidden in the forest. Tribal warriors or scouts,
he guessed.
Their
painted faces bore the familiar Amerindian bone structure, slightly Asiatic, a
genetic tie to their ancestors who had first crossed the Bering Strait from
Asia into Alaska some fifty thousand years ago and settled the Americas. But
who were they? How did they get here? Where did their roots trace? Despite the
danger and silent threat, Nate was dying to learn more about these people and
their history-especially since it was tied to his own.
He
stared around the forest. Had his father walked this same path? Considering
this possibility, Nate found his lungs tightening, old emotions surfacing. He
was so close to discovering the truth about his father.
As
they continued, it soon became apparent that the team was being led toward a
sunnier clearing in the distance.
The
forest around the thin track opened to either side as they reached the
clearing. A ring of giant cycads and primitive conifers circled the open glade.
A shallow-banked stream meandered through the sunny space, sparkling and
gurgling.
Their
guide continued ahead, but the team stopped at the threshold, shocked.
In the
center of the clearing, practically filling the entire space, stood a massive
tree, a specimen Nate had never seen before. It had to tower at least thirty
stories high, its white-barked trunk ten yards in diameter. Thick roots knobbed
out of the dark soil like pale knees. A few even spanned the stream beside it
before disappearing back into the loam.
Overhead,
the tree's branches spread in distinct terraces, not unlike giant redwoods. But
instead of needles, this specimen sported wide palmate green leaves, fluttering
gently to reveal silver undersides and clusters of husked seed pods, similar to
coconuts.
Nate
stared, dumbstruck. He didn't even know where to begin classifying this
specimen. Maybe a new species of primitive gymnospore, but he was far from
sure. The nuts did look a bit like those found on a modern cat's claw plant,
but this was a much more ancient specimen.
As he
studied the giant, he realized one other thing about the tree. Even this
towering hardwood bore signs of habitation. Small clusters of Nutlike dwellings
rested atop thicker branches or nestled against the trunk. Constructed to mimic
the tree's seed pods, Nate realized, amazed.
Across
the way, their tribal guide slipped between two gnarled roots and disappeared
into shadow. Stepping to the side for a better look, Nate realized the shadow
was in fact an arched opening into the tree's base, a doorway. Nate stared up
at the clustered dwellings. There were no vine ladders here. So how did one
reach the dwellings? Was there a tunnel winding through the trunk? Nate began
to step forward to investigate.
But
Manny grabbed his arm. "Look:" The biologist pointed off to the side.
Nate
glanced over. Distracted by the white-barked giant, he had failed to notice a
squat log cabin across the clearing. It was boxy, but sturdily constructed of
logs and a thatched roof. It seemed out of place here, the only structure built
on the ground.
"Are
those solar cells on its roof?" Manny asked.
Nate
squinted and raised his binoculars. Atop the cabin, two small flat black panels
glinted in the morning sunshine. They indeed appeared to be solar panels.
Intrigued, Nate examined the cabin more thoroughly through his binoculars. The
structure was windowless, its door just a flap of woven palm leaves.
Nate's
attention caught on something beside the door, a familiar object, bright in the
sunshine. It was a tall snakewood staff, polished from years of hard use,
crowned by hoko feathers.
Nate
felt the ground shift under his feet.
It was
his father's walking stick.
Dropping
his binoculars, Nate stumbled toward the cabin.
"Rand!"
Kostos barked at him.
But he
was beyond listening. His feet began to run. The others followed him, keeping the
group together. Zane and Olin grunted as they struggled with the stretcher.
Nate
hurried to the cabin and then skidded to a stop, his breath caught. His mouth
grew dry as he stared at the walking stick. Initials were carved in the wood:
C.R.
Carl
Rand.
Tears
rose in Nate's eyes. At the time of his father's disappearance, Nate had
refused to fathom the man could be dead. He had needed to cling to hope, lest
despair cripple him, leaving him unable to pursue the yearlong search. Even
when his financial resources had run dry and he was forced to concede his
father was gone, he hadn't cried. Over such a prolonged time, sorrow had
devolved into a black depression, a pit that consumed his life these past four
years.
But
now, with a tangible bit of evidence that his father had been here, tears
flowed freely down his cheeks.
Nate
did not entertain the possibility that his father was still alive. Such
miracles were relegated to novels. The structure here bore evidence of long
disuse. Dead leaves, blown from the forest, lay windswept into a pile against
the cabin's front, undisturbed by any footprints.
Nate
stepped forward and pushed open the woven flap. It was dark inside. Grabbing
the flashlight from his field jacket, Nate clicked it on. A tailless rat, a
paca, skittered from a hiding place and dashed through a crack in the far wall.
Dust lay thick, tracked with little paw prints, along with rodent droppings.
Nate
shone his light around.
Inside,
near the back wall, four hammocks lay strung from the raftered ceiling, empty
and untouched. Closer still, a small wooden bench had been constructed. Atop it
was spread a collection of lab equipment, including a laptop computer.
Like
the wooden staff on the porch, Nate recognized the tiny microscope and specimen
jars. They were his father's equipment. He stepped into the dark space and
opened the laptop. It whirred to electronic life, startling Nate. He stumbled
backward.
"The
solar cells," Manny said from the doorway. "Still giving it
juice."
Nate
wiped spiderwebs from his hands. "My father was here," he mumbled,
numb. "This is his equipment:"
Kouwe
spoke a few steps back. "The Indian is returning . . . with company.
Nate
stared at the computer for a second more. Dust motes floated in the air,
sparkling bright in the morning sunlight streaming through the open flap. The
room was aromatic with wood oils and dried palm thatch. But underlying it was
an odor of ashes and age. No one had been here for at least half a year.
What
head happened to them?
Wiping
his eyes, Nate turned to the doorway. Across the glade, he watched the
black-painted tribesman march toward the cabin. At his side strode a smaller
man, a tiny Indian. He could be no more than four feet tall. His burnished skin
was unpainted, except for a prominent design in red on his belly and the
familiar blue palm print centered just above the navel.
Stepping
back into the sunlight, Nate joined the others.
The
newcomer had pierced ears from which hung feathers, not unlike the typical
decorations of the Yanomamo. But he also bore a headband with a prominent
beetle decoration in the center. Its black carapace glistened brightly. It was
one of the carnivorous locusts that had killed Corporal Jorgensen.
Professor
Kouwe glanced over at Nate. His friend had noticed the odd bit of decoration,
too. Here was further evidence that the attack truly had originated from this
place.
Like a
knife through his gut, Nate felt a surge of anger. Not only had this tribe been
instrumental in the deaths of half their party, they had held the survivors of
his father's expedition prisoner for four years. Fury and pain swelled through
him.
Kouwe
must have sensed Nate's emotion. "Remain quiet, Nate. Let us see how this
plays out:"
Their
guide led the newcomer to them, then stepped aside, in clear deference to the
smaller man.
The
tiny Indian glanced at the group, studying each of them, eyes narrowing
slightly at the sight of Tor-tor. Finally he pointed to the stretcher, then
jabbed at Olin and Zane. "Bring the hurt man," the Indian said in
stilted English, then waved an arm at everyone else. "Others stay
here:"
With
these simple commands, the diminutive man turned and headed back to the huge
white-barked tree again.
Stunned,
no one moved. The shock of hearing spoken English through Nate's anger.
Olin
and Zane remained standing, not budging.
The
taller Indian guide waved an arm angrily, indicating they should follow his
fellow tribesman.
"No
one's going anywhere," Sergeant Kostos said. Private Camera moved forward,
too. Both had their weapons ready. "We're not splitting up the
group."
The
tribesman scowled. He pointed at the retreating tiny figure.
"Healer," the man said, struggling with the words. "Good
healer."
Again
the spoken English gave them pause.
"They
must have learned the language from your father's expedition," Anna Fong
mumbled.
Or
from my father himself, Nate thought.
Kouwe
turned to Kelly. "I think we should obey. I don't think they mean Frank
any harm. But just in case, I can go with the stretcher."
"I'm
not leaving my brother's side," Kelly said, stepping closer to the
stretcher.
Zane
argued, too. "And I'm not going at all. I'm staying where the guns are.
"Don't
worry," the professor said. "I'll take your place. It's my turn
anyway.
Zane
was only too happy to be unburdened of the stretcher. Once free, he quickly
scooted into the shadow of Sergeant Kostos, who wore a perpetual scowl.
Kelly
moved to Olin at the head of the stretcher. "I'll take the other
end:" The Russian started to object but was cut off. "You get the GPS
working," she ordered. "You're the only one who can get the damned
thing fixed:"
He
reluctantly nodded and let her take the bamboo poles of the stretcher. She
struggled with the weight for a moment, then with a heave, got her legs under
her.
Nate
shifted forward, going to her aid. "I can take Frank," he offered.
"You can follow."
"No,"
she said harshly, teeth clenched. She tossed her head back toward the cabin.
"See if you can find out what happened here:"
Before
any other objections could be raised, Kelly lurched forward Kouwe followed at
his end of the stretcher.
The
tribesman looked relieved at their cooperation and hurried ahead, leading them
toward the giant tree.
From
the dirt porch of the cabin, Nate glanced again at the clusters of dwellings
nestled high up the white-barked tree, realizing it was a view his father must
have seen. As Nate stood, he sought some connection to his dead father. He
remained standing until Kelly and Kouwe disappeared into the tree tunnel.
As the
other team members began unhooking packs, Nate returned his attention to the
empty cabin. Through the doorway, the laptop's screen shone with a ghostly glow
in the dark room. A lonely, empty light.
Nate
sighed, wondering again what had happened to the others.
Struggling
under the weight of her twin brother, Kelly entered the dark opening in the
massive trunk of the tree. Her focus remained divided between Frank's weakening
state and the strangeness before her.
By
now, Frank's bandages were fully soaked with blood. Flies swarmed and crawled
through the gore, an easy meal. He needed a transfusion as soon as possible. In
her head, she ran through the additional care needed: a new IV line, fresh
pressure bandages, more morphine and antibiotics. Frank had to survive until the
rescue helicopter could get here.
Still,
as much as horror and fear filled her heart, Kelly could not help but be amazed
by what she found beyond the entrance to the tree. She had expected to find a
cramped steep staircase. Instead, the path beyond the doorway was wide-a
gentle, sweeping course winding and worming its way up toward the treetop
dwellings. The walls were smooth and polished to a deep honey color. A
smattering of blue handprints decorated the walls. Beyond the entrance, every
ten yards down the passage, a thin window, not unlike a castle tower's arrow
slit, broke through to the outside, bright with morning sunlight, illuminating
the way.
Following
their guide, Kelly and Kouwe worked up the winding path. The floor was smooth,
but woody enough for good traction. And though the grade was mild, Kelly was
soon wheezing with exertion. But adrenaline and fear kept her moving: fear for
her brother, fear for them all.
"This
tunnel seems almost natural," Kouwe mumbled behind her. "The
smoothness of the walls, the perfection of the spiral. It's like this tunnel is
some tubule or channel in the tree, not a hewn passage."
Kelly
licked her lips but found no voice. Too tired, too scared. The professor's
words drew her attention to the floor and walls. Now that he had mentioned it,
the passage showed not a single ax or chisel mark. Only the windows were crude,
clearly man-made, hacked through to the outside. The difference between the two
was striking. Had the tribe stumbled upon this winding tubule within the tree
and taken advantage of it? The dwellings they'd seen on the way here proved
that the Ban-ali were skilled engineers, incorporating the artificial with the
natural. Perhaps the same was true here.
The
professor made one last observation: "The flies are gone:'
Kelly
glanced over her shoulder. The flock of flies nattering and crawling among her
brother's bloody bandages had indeed vanished.
"The
bugs flew off shortly after we entered the tree," Kouwe said. "It
must be some repellent property of the wood's aromatic oils:"
Kelly
had also noticed the musky odor of the tree. It had struck her as vaguely
familiar, similar to dried eucalyptus, medicinal and pleasant, but laced with a
deeper loamy smell that hinted at something earthy and ripe.
Staring
over her shoulder, Kelly saw how heavily soaked her brother's bandages were. He
could not last much longer, not with the continuing blood loss. Something had
to be done. As she walked, cold dread iced her veins. Despite her exhaustion,
her pace increased.
As
they climbed, openings appeared in the tunnel wall. Passing by them, Kelly
noted that the passages led either into one of the hutlike dwellings or out
onto branches as wide as driveways, with huts in the distance.
And
still they were led onward and upward.
Despite
her anxiety, Kelly was soon stumbling, dragging, gasping, eyes stinging with
running sweat. She desperately wanted to rest, but she could not let Frank
down.
Their
guide noticed them drifting farther and farther behind him. He backed down and
studied the situation. He moved to Kelly's side.
"I
help:" He struck a fist on his chest. "I strong:' He nudged her aside
and took her end of the stretcher.
She
was too weak to object, too winded to mumble a thanks.
As
Kelly stepped aside, the two men now continued upward, moving faster. Kelly
kept pace beside the stretcher. Frank was so pale, his breathing shallow.
Relieved of the burden, Kelly's full attention focused back on her brother. She
pulled out her stethoscope and listened to his chest. His heartbeat thudded
dully, his lungs crackled with rates. His body was rapidly giving out, heading
into hypovolemic shock. The hemorrhaging had to be stopped.
Focused
on her brother's condition, she failed to notice that they'd reached the
tunnel's end. The spiraling passage terminated abruptly at an opening that
looked identical to the archway at the base of the giant tree. But instead of
leading back into the morning sunshine, this archway led into a cavernous
structure with a saucer-shaped floor.
Kelly
gaped at the interior, again lit by rough-hewn slits high up the curved walls.
The space, spherical in shape, had to be thirty yards across, a titanic bubble
in the wood, half protruding out of the main trunk.
"It's
like a massive gall," Kouwe said, referring to the woody protuberances
sometimes found on oaks or other trees, created by insects or other parasitic
conditions.
Kelly
appreciated the comparison. But it wasn't insects that inhabited this gall.
Around the curved walls, woven hammocks hung from pegs, a dozen at least. In a
few, naked tribesmen lay sprawled. Others of the Banali worked around them. The
handful of prone men and women were showing various signs of illness: a
bandaged foot, a splinted arm, a fevered brow. She watched a tribesman with a
long gash across his chest wince as a thick pasty substance was applied to his
wound by another of his tribe.
Kelly
understood immediately what she was seeing.
A
hospital ward.
The
tiny-framed tribesman who had ordered them here stood a few paces away. His
look was sour with impatience. He pointed to one of the hammocks and spoke
rapidly in a foreign tongue.
Their
guide answered with a nod and led them to the proper hammock.
Professor
Kouwe mumbled as they walked. "If I'm not mistaken, that's a dialect of
Yanomamo:"
Kelly
glanced over to him, hearing the shock in the professor's voice.
He
explained the significance. "The Yanomamo language has no known
counterparts. Their speech patterns and tonal structures are unique unto
themselves. A true lingual isolate. It's one of the reasons the Yanomamo are
considered one of the oldest Amazonian bloodlines:" His eyes were wide
upon the men and women in the woody chamber. "The Ban-ali must be an
offshoot, a lost tribe of the Yanomamo:"
Kelly
merely nodded, too full of worry to appreciate the professor's observation. Her
attention remained focused on her brother.
Overseen
by the tiny Indian, the stretcher was lowered, and Frank was transferred onto
the hammock. Kelly hovered nervously at his side. Jarred by the movement, Frank
moaned slightly, eyes fluttering. His sedatives must be wearing off.
Kelly
reached down to her med pack atop the abandoned stretcher. Before she could
gather up her syringe and bottles of morphine, the tiny healer barked orders to
his staff. Their guide and another tribesman began to loosen the bandages over
Frank's stumps with small bone knives.
"Don't!"
Kelly said, straightening.
She
was ignored. They continued to work upon the soaked strips. Blood began to flow
more thickly.
She
moved to the hammock, grabbing the taller man's elbow. "No! You don't know
what you're doing. Wait until I have the pressure wraps ready! An IV in place!
He'll bleed to death!"
The
stronger man broke out of her grasp and scowled at her.
Kouwe
intervened. He pointed at Kelly. "She's our healer."
The
tribesman seemed baffled by this statement and glanced to his own shaman.
The
smaller Indian was crouched by the curved wall at the head of the hammock. He
had a bowl in his hand, gathering a flow of thick sap from a trough gouged in
the wall. "I am healer here," the small man said. "This is
Ban-ali medicine. To stop the bleeding. Strong medicine from the yagga:"
Kelly
glanced to Kouwe.
He
deciphered. "Yagga . . . it's similar to yakka . . . a Yanomamo word for mother."
Kouwe
stared around at the chamber. "Yagga must be their name for this tree. A
deity."
The
Indian shaman straightened with his bowl, now half full of the reddish sap.
Reaching up, he stoppered the thick flow by jamming a wooden peg into a hole at
the top of the trough. "Strong medicines," he repeated, lifting the
bowl and striding to the hammock. "The blood of the Yagga will stop the
blood of the man:" It sounded like a rote maxim, a translation of an old
adage.
He
motioned for the tribesman to cut away one of the two bandages.
Kelly
opened her mouth again to object, but Kouwe interrupted her with a squeeze on
her arm. "Gather your bandage material and LRS bag," he whispered to
her. "Be ready, but for the moment, let's see what this medicine can
do:"
She
bit back her protest, remembering the small Indian girl at the hospital of Sao
Gabriel and how Western medicine had failed her. For the moment, she would
yield to the Ban-ali, trusting not the strange little shaman, but rather
Professor Kouwe himself. She dropped to her medical pack and burrowed into it,
reaching with deft fingers for her wraps and saline bag.
As
Kelly retrieved what she needed, her eyes flicked over to the nearby sap
channel. The blood of the Yagga. The tapped vein could be seen as a dark ribbon
in the honeyed wood, extending up from the top of the trough and arching across
the roof. Kelly spotted other such veins, each dark vessel leading to one of
the other hammocks.
With
her bandages in hand, she stood as her brother's bloodied wrap was ripped away.
Unprepared, still a sister, not a doctor, Kelly grew faint at the sight: the
sharp shard of white bone, the rip of shredded muscle, the gelatinous bruise of
ruined flesh. A thick flow of dark blood and clots washed from the raw wound
and dribbled through the hammock's webbing.
Kelly
suddenly found it difficult to breathe. Sounds grew muted and more acute at the
same time. Her vision narrowed upon the limp figure in the bed. It wasn't
Frank, her mind kept trying to convince her. But another part of her knew the
truth. Her brother was doomed. Tears filled her eyes, and a moan rose in her
throat, choking her.
Kouwe
put his arm around her shoulders, reacting to her distress, pulling her to him.
"Oh,
God . . . please . . :" Kelly sobbed.
Oblivious
to her outburst, the Ban-ali shaman examined the amputated limb with a
determined frown. Then he scooped up a handful of the thick red sap, the color
of port wine, and slathered it over the stump.
The
reaction was immediate-and violent. Frank's leg jerked up and away as if struck
by an electric current. He cried out, even through his stupor, an animal sound.
Kelly
stumbled toward him, out of the professor's arms. "Frank!"
The
shaman glanced toward her. He mumbled something in his native, language and
backed away, allowing her to come forward.
She
reached her brother, grabbing for his arm. But Frank's outburst had been as
short as it was sudden. He relaxed back into the hammock. Kelly was sure he was
dead. She leaned over him, sobbing openly.
But
his lungs heaved up and down, in deep, shuddering breaths.
Alive.
She
fell to her knees in relief. His limb, exposed, stood stark and raw before her.
She eyed the wound, expecting the worst, ready with the bandages.
But
they proved unnecessary.
Where
the sap had touched the macerated flesh, it had formed a thick seal. Wide-eyed,
she reached and touched the strange substance. It was no longer sticky, but
leathery and tough, like some type of natural bandage. She glanced to the
shaman with awe. The bleeding had stopped, sealed tight.
"The
Yagga has found him worthy," the shaman said. "He will heal."
Stunned,
Kelly stood as the shaman carried his bowl toward the other limb and began to
repeat the miracle. "I can't believe it," she finally said, her voice
as small as a mouse.
Kouwe
took her under his arm again. "I know fifteen different plane species with
hemostatic properties, but nothing of this caliber:'
Frank's
body jerked again as the second leg was treated.
Afterward,
the shaman studied his handiwork for a few moments, then turned to them.
"The Yagga will protect him from here," he said solemnly.
"Thank
you," Kelly said.
The
small tribesman glanced back to her brother. "He is now Ban-ali. One of
the Chosen:"
Kelly
frowned.
The
shaman continued, "He must now serve the Yagga in all ways, for all
times." With these words, he turned away-but not before adding something
in his native tongue, something spoken in a dire, threatening tone.
As he
left, Kelly turned to Kouwe, her eyes questioning.
The
professor shook his head. "I recognized only one word-ban-yi:'
"What
does that mean?"
Kouwe
glanced over to Frank. "Slave:"
CHAPTER
FIFTEEN
Health
Care
AUGUST
16, 1 1:43 A.M.
HOSPITAL
WARD OF THE INSTAR INSTITUTE
LANGLEY
VIRGINIA
Lauren
had never known such despair. Her granddaughter drifted in a cloud of pillows
and sheets, such a tiny thing with lines and monitor wires running to machines
and saline bags. Even through Lauren's contamination suit, she could hear the
beep and hiss from the various pieces of equipment in the long narrow room.
Little Jessie was no longer the only one confined here. Five other children had
become sick over the past day.
And
how many more in the coming days? Lauren recalled the epidemiologist's computer
model and its stain of red spreading over the United States. She had heard
cases were already being reported in Canada, too. Even two children in Germany,
who had been vacationing in Florida.
Now
she was realizing that Dr. Alvisio's grim model may have been too conservative
in its predictions. Just this morning, Lauren had heard rumors about new cases
in Brazil, cases now appearing in healthy adults. These patients were not
presenting fevers, like the children, but were instead showing outbreaks of
ravaging malignancies and cancers, like those seen in Gerald Clark's body.
Lauren already had researchers checking into it.
But
right now, she had other concerns.
She
sat in a chair beside Jessie's bed. Her grandchild was watching some children's
program piped into the video monitor in the room. But no smile ever moved her
lips, no laugh. The girl watched it like an automaton, her eyes glassy, her
hair plastered to her head from fevered sweat.
There
was so little comfort Lauren could offer. The touch of the plastic containment
suit was cold and impersonal. All she could do was maintain her post beside the
girl, let her know she wasn't alone, let her see a familiar face. But she was
not Jessie's mother. Every time the door to the ward swished open, Jessie would
turn to see who it was, her eyes momentarily hopeful, then fading to
disappointment. Just another nurse or a doctor. Never her mother.
Even
Lauren found herself frequently glancing to the door, praying for Marshall to
return with some word on Kelly and Frank. Down in the Amazon, the Brazilian
evacuation helicopter had left from the Wauwai field base hours ago. Surely the
rescuers would've reached the stranded team by now. Surely Kelly was already
flying back here.
But so
far, no word.
The
waiting was growing interminable.
In the
bed, Jessie scratched at the tape securing her catheter.
"Hon,
leave it be," Lauren said, moving the girl's hand away.
Jessie
sighed, sinking back into her pillows. "Where's Mommy?" she asked for
the thousandth time that day. "I want Mommy."
"She's
coming, hon. But South America is a long way away. Why don't you try to take a
nap?"
Jessie
frowned. "My mouth hurts:"
Lauren
reached to the table and lifted a cup with a straw toward the girl, juice with
an analgesic in it. "Sip this. It'll make the ouchie go away."
Already the girl's mouth had begun to erupt with fever blisters, raw
ulcerations along the mucocutaneous margins of her lips. Their appearance was
one of the distinct symptoms of the disease. There could now be no denying that
Jessie had the plague.
The
girl sipped at the cup, her face scrunching sourly, then sat back. "It
tastes funny. It's not like Mommy makes:"
"I
know, honey, but it'll make you feel better."
"Tastes
funny. . :" Jessie mumbled again, eyes drifting back to the video screen.
The
two sat quietly. Somewhere down the row of beds, one of the children began to
sob. In the background, the repetitious jingle of the dancing bear sounded
tinny through her suit.
How
many more? Lauren wondered. How many more would grow sick? How many more would
die?
The
sigh of a broken pressure seal sounded behind her. Lauren turned as the ward
door swished open. A bulky figure in a quarantine suit bowed into the room,
carrying his oxygen line. He turned, and through the plastic face shield,
Lauren recognized her husband.
She
was instantly on her feet. "Marshall. . ."
He
waved her down and crossed to the wall to snap in his oxygen line to one of the
air bibs. Once done, he strode to the girl's bedside.
"Grandpa!"
Jessie said, smiling faintly. The girl's love for her grandfather, the only
father figure in her life, was special. It was heartening to see her respond to
him.
"How's
my little pumpkin?" he said, bending over to tousle her hair.
"I'm
watching Bobo the Bear."
"Are
you? Is he funny?"
She
nodded her head vigorously.
"I'll
watch it with you. Scoot over."
This
delighted Jessie. She shifted, making room for him to sit on the edge of the
bed. He put an arm around her. She snuggled up against him, content to watch
the screen.
Lauren
met her husband's gaze.
He
gave his head a tiny shake.
Lauren
frowned. What did that mean? Anxious to find out, she switched to the suit's
radios so they could speak in whispers without Jessie hearing.
"How's
Jessie doing?" Marshall asked.
Lauren
sat straighter, leaning closer. "Her temperature is down to ninety-nine,
but her labs are continuing to slide. White blood cell levels have been
dropping, while bilirubin levels are rising:"
Marshall's
eyes closed with pain. "Stage Two?"
Lauren
found her voice cracking. With so many cases studied across the nation, the
disease progression was becoming predictable. Stage II was classified when the
disease progressed from its benign febrile state into an anemic stage with
bleeding and nausea.
"By
tomorrow;" Lauren said. "Maybe the day after that at the
latest:"
They
both knew what would happen from there. With good support, Stage II could
stretch for three to four days, followed by a single day of Stage III.
Convulsions and brain hemorrhages. There was no Stage IV
Lauren
stared at the little girl in the bed as she cuddled against her grandfather.
Less than a week. That's all the time Jessie had left. "What of Kelly? Has
she been picked up? Is she on her way back?"
Her
suit radio remained silent. Lauren glanced back to Marshall.
He
stared at her a moment more, then spoke. "There was no sign of them. The
rescue helicopter searched the region where they were supposed to be according
to their last GPS signal. But nothing was found:"
Lauren
felt like a brick had been dropped in her gut. "How could that be?"
"I
don't know. We've been trying to raise them on the satellite link all day, but
with no luck. Whatever problem they were having with their equipment yesterday
must still be going on:'
"Are
they continuing the air search?"
He
shook his head. "The helicopter had to turn back. Limited fuel."
"Marshall.
. :" Her voice cracked.
He
reached out to her and took her hand. "Once they've refueled, they're
sending it back out for a night flight. To see if they can spot campfires from
the air using infrared scopes. Then tomorrow, another three helicopters are
joining the search, including our own Comanche." He squeezed her hand,
tight. "We'll find them:"
Lauren
felt numb all over. All her children . . . all of them . . .
Jessie
spoke up from the bed, pointing an arm that trailed an IV line toward the
video. "Bobo's funny!"
1:05
1PM.
AMAZON
JUNGLE
Nate
climbed down the fifty-foot ladder from the treetop dwelling. The three-story
structure rested in the branches of a nightcap oak, a species from the
Cretaceous period. Earlier, just after Kelly and the professor had left with
Frank, a pair of Ban-all women had appeared and led the party to the edge of
the glade, gesturing and indicating that the dwelling above had been assigned
to their group.
Sergeant
Kostos had resisted at first, until Private Camera had made an astute
observation. "Up there, it'll be more defensible. We're sitting targets on
the ground. If those giant cats should come up during the night-"
Kostos
had cut her off, needing no more convincing. "Right, right Let's move our
supplies up there, then set up a defensive perimeter."
Nate
thought such caution was unnecessary. Since arriving, the Indians had remained
curious about them but kept a wary distance, peering from the jungle edges and
windows. No hostility was shown. Still, Nate had a hard time balancing these
quiet people with the murderous savages who had wiped out half their team by
unleashing all manner of beasts upon them. But then again, such duality was the
way of many indigenous tribes: hostile and brutal by outside appearances, but
once you were accepted, they were found to be a peaceful and open people.
Still,
so many of their teammates had died horribly at the indirect hands of this tribe.
A burning seed of anger smoldered in Nate's chest. And then there were Clark
and maybe others of his father's group, held hostage for all these years. At
the moment, Nate found it hard to achieve professional detachment. As an
anthropologist, he could understand these strange people, but as a son,
resentment and fury colored all he saw.
Still,
they were helping Frank. Professor Kouwe had returned briefly from the
white-barked tree to announce that the tribal shaman and Kelly were able to
stabilize their teammate. It was a rare bit of good news. Kouwe had not stayed
long, anxious to return to the giant tree. The professor's eyes had flicked
toward Nate. Despite the tribe's cooperation at the moment, Kouwe was clearly
worried. Nate had tried to inquire, but the professor had waved him off as he
left. "Later" was all he had said.
Reaching
the last rung of the vine ladder, Nate jumped off. Clustered around the base of
the tree were the two Rangers and Manny. Tor-tor stood at his master's side.
The other members of their dwindling group Zane, Anna, and Olin-remained secure
in their treetop loft, working on their communication equipment.
Manny
nodded to Nate as he crossed toward them.
"I'll
keep guard here;" Kostos instructed Camera. "You and Manny do a sweep
of the immediate area. See what you can discover about the lay of the
land:"
The
private nodded and turned away.
Manny
followed at her side. "C'mon, Tor-tor."
Kostos
noted Nate's arrival. "What are you doing down here, Rand?"
"Trying
to make myself useful:" He nodded to the cabin a hundred yards away.
"While the sun's still up and the solar cells are still juicing, I'm going
to see if I can discover any information in my father's computer records:"
Kostos
frowned at the cabin but nodded. Nate could read his eyes, weighing and
calculating. Right now every bit of Intel could be vital. "Be
careful," the sergeant said.
Nate
hiked his shotgun higher on his shoulder. "Always:" He began the walk
across the open glade.
In the
distance, near the clearing's edge, a handful of children had gathered. Several
pointed at him, gesturing to one another. A small group trailed behind Manny
and Camera, keeping a cautious distance from Tor-tor. The curiosity of youth.
Among the trees, the timid tribe began to reawaken to their usual activities.
Several women carried water from the stream that flowed through the glade and
around the giant tree in the center. In the treetop abodes, people began to
clamber. Small fires flared atop stone hearths on patios, readying for dinner.
In one dwelling, an old woman sat cross-legged, playing a flute made out of a
deer bone, a bright but haunting sound. Nearby, a pair of men, armed with
hunting bows, wandered past, giving Nate the barest acknowledgment.
The
casualness of their manner reminded Nate that, though these folks were
isolated, they had lived with white men and women before. The survivors of his
father's expedition.
He
reached the cabin, seeing again his father's walking stick by the door. As he
stared at it, the rest of the world and its mysteries dissolved away. For the
moment, only one question remained in Nate's heart: What truly happened to my
father?
With a
final glance to his team's temporary treetop home, Nate ducked through the door
flap of the cabin. The musty smell struck him again, like entering a lost tomb.
Inside, he found the laptop still open on the workstation, just as he had left
it. Its glow was a beacon in the dark.
As he
neared the computer, Nate saw the screen saver playing across the monitor, a
tiny set of pictures that slowly floated and bounced around the screen. Tears
rose in his eyes. They were photos of his mother. Another ghost from his past.
He stared at the smiling face. In one, she was kneeling beside a small Indian
boy. In another, a capuchin monkey perched on her shoulder. In yet another, she
was hugging a short youngster, a white boy dressed in typical Baniwa garb. It
was Nate. He had been six years old. He smiled at the memory, his heart close
to bursting. Though his father wasn't in any of the pictures, Nate sensed his
presence, a ghost standing over his shoulder, watching with him. At this
moment, Nate had never felt closer to his lost family.
After
a long time, he reached for the mouse pad. The screen saver vanished, replaced
with a typical computer screen. Small titled icons lined the screen. Nate read
through the files. Plant Classification, Tribal Customs, Cellular Statistics. .
. so much information. It would take days to sift through them all. But one
file caught his eye. The icon was of a small book. Below it was the word
journal.
Nate
clicked the icon. A file opened:
Amazonian
Journal-Dr. Carl Rand
It was
his father's diary. He noted the first date. September 24. The day the
expedition had headed into the jungle. As Nate scrolled down, he saw that each
day had a typed entry. Sometimes no more than a sentence or two, but something
was noted. His father was meticulous. As he once quoted to Nate, `An unexamined
life is not worth living:'
Nate
skimmed through the entries, searching for one specific date. He found it.
December 16. The day his father's team had vanished.
December
16
The
storms continued today, bogging us down in camp. But the day was
not a
total wash. An Arawak Indian, traveling down the river, shared our
soggy
camp and told us stories of a strange tribe . . . frightening stories.
The
Ban-ali, he named them, which translates roughly to "Blood Jaguar."
I've heard snatches in the past concerning this ghost tribe, but few Indians
were willing to speak openly of them.
Our visitor
was not so reluctant! He was quite talkative. Of course, this may have
something to do with the new machete and tangle of shiny fishhooks we offered
for the information. Eyeing the wealth, he insisted he knew where the Ban-ali
tribe hunted.
Now
while my first impulse was to scoff at such a claim, I listened. If there was
even a slim chance such a lost tribe existed, how could we not investigate?
What a boon it would be for our expedition. As we questioned him, the Indian
sketched out a rough map. The Ban-ali appeared to be more than a three-day
journey from our location.
So
tomorrow, weather permitting, we'll strike out and see how truthful our friend
has been. Surely it's a fool's errand . . . but who knows what this mighty
jungle could be hiding at its heart?
All in
all, a most interesting day.
Nate
held his breath as he continued reading from there, hunched over the laptop,
sweat dripping down his brow. Over the next several hours, he scanned through
the file, reading day after day, year after year, opening other files, staring
at diagrams and digital photos. Slowly he began piecing together what had
happened to the others.
As he
did so, he grew numb with the reading. The horror of the past merged with the
present. Nate began to understand. The true danger for their team was only
beginning.
5:55
PM.
Manny
called over to Private Camera. "What's that guy doing over there?"
"Where?"
He
pointed his arm toward one of the Ban-ali tribesmen who marched along the
streambed, a long spear over his shoulder. Impaled upon the weapon were several
haunches of raw meat.
"Making
dinner?" the Ranger guessed with a shrug.
"But
for whom?"
For
the entire afternoon, he and Camera had been making a slow circuit of the
village, with Tor-tor at their side. The cat drew many glances, but also kept
curious tribesmen at a distance. As they trekked, Camera was jotting notes and
sketching a map of the village and surrounding lands. Recon, Manny had been
informed, just in case the hostiles get hostile again.
Right
now, they were circling the giant, white-barked tree, crossing behind it, where
the stream brushed the edges of the monstrous arching roots. It appeared as if
the flow of water had washed away the topsoil, exposing even more of the roots'
lengths. They were a veritable tangle, snaking into the stream, worming over
it, burrowing beneath it.
The
Indian who had drawn Manny's attention was ducking through the woody tangle,
squirming and bending to make progress, clearly aiming for a section of the
stream.
"Let's
get a closer look," Manny said.
Camera
pocketed her small field notebook and grabbed up her weapon, the shovel-snouted
Bailey. She eyed the massive tree with a frown, plainly not pleased with the
idea of getting any closer to it. But she led the way, marching toward the
tangle of roots and the gurgling stream.
Manny
watched the Indian cross to a huge eddy pool, shrouded by thick roots and
rootlets. The water's surface was glassy smooth, with only a slight swirl
disturbing it.
The
Indian noticed he was being observed and nodded in the universal greeting of
hello, then went back to his work. Manny and Camera watched from several yards
away. Tor-tor settled to his haunches.
Crouching,
the tribesman stretched his pole and the flanks of bloody meat over the still
pool.
Manny
squinted. "What is he-?"
Then
several small bodies flung themselves out of the water toward the meat. They
looked like little silvery eels, twitching up out of the water. The creatures
grabbed bites from the meat with little jaws.
"The
piranha creatures," Camera said at Manny's side.
He
nodded, recognizing the similarity. "Juveniles, though. They've not
developed their hind legs yet. Still in the pollywog stage. All tail and
teeth:"
The
Indian stood straighter and shook the meat from his spear. Each bloody chunk,
as it plopped into the water, triggered a fierce roiling of the still pool,
boiling its surface into a bloody froth. The tribesman observed his handiwork
for a moment, then tromped back toward the pair who stared at him, stunned.
Again
he nodded as he passed, eyeing the jaguar at Manny's side with a mix of awe and
fear.
"I
want to get a closer look," Manny said.
"Are
you nuts, man?" Camera waved him back. "We're out of here."
"No,
I just want to check something out:" He was already moving toward the nest
of tangled roots.
Camera
grumbled behind him, but followed.
The
path was narrow, so they proceeded in single file. Tor-tor trailed last,
padding cautiously through the tangle, his tail twitching anxiously.
Manny
approached the root-ringed pool.
"Don't
get too close," Camera warned.
"They
didn't mind the Indian," Manny said. "I think it's safe:"
Still,
he slowed his steps and stopped a yard from the pool's edge, one hand resting
on the hilt of his whip. In the shadow of the roots, the wide pool proved
crystal clear-and deep, at least ten feet. He peered into its glassy depths.
Under
the surface, schools of the creatures swam. There was no sign of the meat, but
littering the bottom of the pool were bleached bones, nibbled spotless.
"It's a damn hatchery," Manny said. "A fish hatchery."
From
the branches spanning the pool overhead, droplets of sap would occasionally
drip into the water, triggering the creatures to race up and investigate,
searching for their next meal. Tricked to the surface, the beasts provided
Manny with a better look at them. They varied in size from little minnows to
larger monsters with leg buds starting to develop. Not one had fully developed
legs.
"They're
all juveniles;" Manny observed. "I don't see any of the adults that
attacked us:"
"We
must have killed them all with the poison;" Camera said.
"No
wonder there wasn't a second attack. It must take time to rebuild their army."
"For
the piranhas, maybe. . :" Camera stood two yards back, her voice suddenly
hushed and sick. ". . . but not everything:"
Manny
glanced back to her. She pointed her weapon toward the lower trunk of the tree,
where the roots rode up into the main body. Up the trunk, the bark of the tree
bubbled out into thick galls, each a yard across. There were hundreds of them.
From holes in the bark, black insects scuttled. They crawled, fought, and mated
atop the bark. A few flexed their wings with little blurring buzzes.
"The
locusts," Manny said, edging back himself.
But
the insects ignored them, busy with their communal activities.
Manny
stared from the pool back to the insects. "The tree . . :" he
mumbled.
"What?"
Manny
stared as another droplet of sap drew a handful of the piranha creatures to the
surface, glistening silver under the glassy waters. He shook his head.
"I'm not sure, but it's almost like the tree is nurturing these
creatures:" His mind began racing along wild tracks. His eyes grew wide as
he began to make disturbing connections.
Camera
must have seen his face pale. "What's wrong?"
"Oh,
my God . . . we have to get out of here!"
6:30
PM.
Inside
the cabin, Nate sat hunched over the laptop computer, numb and exhausted. He
had reread many of his father's journal notes, even crossreferencing to certain
scientific files. The conclusions forming in his mind were as disturbing as
they were miraculous. He scrolled down to the last entry and read the final
lines.
We'll
try tonight. May God watch over us all.
Behind
Nate, the whispery sweep of the cabin's door flap announced someone's
intrusion.
"Nate?"
It was Professor Kouwe.
Glancing
at his wristwatch, Nate realized how long he had been lost in the laptop's
records, lost to the world. His mouth felt like dried burlap. Beyond the flap,
the sun was sliding toward the western horizon as the afternoon descended
toward dusk.
"How's
Frank?" Nate asked, dragging his attention around.
"What's
wrong?" Kouwe said, seeing his face.
Nate
shook his head. He wasn't ready to talk yet. "Where's Kelly?"
"Outside,
speaking with Sergeant Kostos. We came down here to report in and make sure
everything was okay. Then we'll head back up again. How are things down here?"
"The
Indians are keeping their distance," Nate said, standing. He moved toward
the door, staring at the sinking sun. "We've finished setting up the
treehouse as our base. Manny and Private Camera are scouting the area.
Kouwe
nodded. "I saw them crossing back this way just now. What about
communications with the States?"
Nate
shrugged. "Olin says the whole system is corrupted. But he believes he can
at least get the GPS to read true and broadcast a signal. Maybe as soon as
tonight:"
"That's
good news," Kouwe said tightly.
Nate
recognized the tension in the other's voice. "What's the matter?"
Kouwe
frowned. "Something I can't exactly put my finger on."
"Maybe
I can help:" Nate glanced to the laptop, then unplugged the device from
the solar cells. With night approaching, juice would not be flowing anyway. He
checked the laptop's battery and then tucked it under his arm. "I think it's
time we all compared notes:'
Kouwe
nodded. "It's why Kelly and I came down. We have our own news.
Again,
Nate saw the worried look on the professor's face. As Nate stood up, he was
sure his own expression mirrored Kouwe's. "Let's get everyone together."
The
pair ducked out of the cabin and into the late afternoon sunshine. Free of the
stifling cabin, they felt almost chilled by the slight breezes. Nate crossed
over to where Kelly and Sergeant Kostos were talking. Manny and Camera had
joined them.
A few
steps away stood one of the Ban-all tribesmen. It took Nate a moment to
recognize him. It was their guide from earlier. He had washed off the black
camouflage paint, revealing brown skin and a crimson tattoo on his bare chest.
Nate
nodded to Kelly as he stopped beside them. "I heard that Frank is doing
better."
Her
face was pale, distracted. "For the moment:" She noticed the laptop
under his arm. "Were you able to learn anything about your father?"
Nate
sighed. "I think everyone should hear this:"
"It's
time we put a plan together anyway," Sergeant Kostos said. "Night is
coming.
Kouwe
pointed to the three-story dwelling in the towering nightcap oak. "Let's
get everyone up to the dwelling:"
No one
objected. In short order, the group mounted the long ladder and headed up the
tree. Tor-tor remained below, on guard. Nate glanced down as he climbed. The
jaguar was not alone down there. The Ban-ali tribesman stayed at the foot of
the ladder, plainly assigned to their group.
Reaching
the top of the ladder, Nate climbed onto the decking of the abode. The entire
party clustered on the deck or stood inside the doorway to the lowermost level,
a communal room. Above, the two other levels were a honeycomb of smaller, more
private chambers, each with its own tiny deck or patio.
The
tree house had clearly been some family's domicile, commandeered for their use.
Personal touches abounded: bits of pottery and wooden utensils, decorations
done in feathers and flowers, abandoned hammocks, tiny carved animal figurines.
Even the smell of the place was not the deserted mustiness of the tiny cabin,
but the subtle scent of life. Old cooking spices and oils, a hint of bodily
odors.
Anna
Fong crossed to him. She had a platter of sliced figs. "One of the Indian
women dropped off some supplies. Fruits and cooked yams. Bits of dried
meat:"
Nate
remembered his thirst and took one of the moist fruits, biting deep into it,
juice dribbling down his chin. Wiping his lips with the back of his hand, he
asked, "How's Olin doing with the GPS signal?"
"Still
working on it," she said in a hushed, scared voice. "But from the
amount of swearing, it doesn't sound good:'
Kostos
raised his voice from the doorway. "Everyone gather inside!"
As he
stepped aside, the party moved into the common room. Inside,
Nate
saw the other platters of food. Even a few pails of a dark liquid, smelling of
fermentation.
Professor
Kouwe examined one pail's contents and turned to Nate in surprise. "It's
cassiri!"
"What's
that?" Kostos asked from the doorway as he closed the flap.
"Cassava
beer," Nate explained. "An alcoholic staple of many native tribes:"
"Beer?"
the sergeant's eyes brightened. "Really?"
Kouwe
scooped up a ladleful of the dark amber liquid and poured it into a mug. Nate
saw bits of slimy cassava root floating in the pail. The professor passed the
mug to the sergeant.
He
sniffed it, nose curling in disgust, but he took a deep swig anyway.
"Ugh!" He shook his head.
"It's
an acquired taste;" Nate said, scooping a mug for himself and sipping it.
Manny did the same. "Women make it by chewing up cassava root and spitting
it into a pail. The enzymes in their saliva aid in the fermentation
process:"
Kostos
crossed to the pail and dumped the contents of his mug back into the pail.
"I'll take a Budweiser any day"
Nate
shrugged.
Around
the room, the others sampled the fare for a bit, then began to settle to woven
mats on the floor. Everyone looked exhausted. They all needed a decent night's
sleep.
Nate
set up the laptop on an overturned stone pot.
As he
opened it and turned it on, Olin looked at it hungrily, his eyes red.
"Maybe I can cannibalize some circuitry for the communication array."
He shifted nearer.
But
Nate held him off. "The computer is five years old. I doubt you'll find
much to use, and right now its contents are more important than our own
survival:"
His
words drew everyone's attention. He eyed them all. "I know what happened
to the other expedition team. And if we don't want to end up like them, we
should pay attention to its lessons:"
Kouwe
spoke up. "What happened?"
Nate
took a deep breath, then began, nodding to the open journal file on the laptop.
"It's all here. My father's expedition heard rumors of the Ban-ali and met
an Indian who said he could take the research team to their lands. My father
could not resist the possibility of encountering a new tribe and took the team
off course. Within two days, they were attacked by the same mutated species as
we were:'
Murmurs
arose from the others. Manny raised his hand as if he were in class. "I
found where they incubate those buggers. At least the locusts and
piranhas." He described what he and Private Camera had discovered.
"I've got my own theories about the beasts:"
Kouwe
interrupted. "Before we get into theories and conjectures, let's first
hear what we know for sure:" The professor nodded to Nate. "Go on.
What happened after the attack?"
Nate
took another breath. The tale was not an easy one to tell. "Of the party,
all were killed except Gerald Clark, my father, and two other researchers. They
were captured by the Ban-ali trackers. My father was able to communicate with
them and get them to spare their lives. From my father's notes, I guess the
Ban-ali native tongue is close enough to Yanomamo:"
Kouwe
nodded. "It does bear a resemblance. And isolated as the tribe is, the
presence of a white man who could speak the tongue of the Ban-ali would surely
give them pause. I'm not surprised your father and the survivors were
spared:"
The
little good it did, Nate thought sourly, then continued, "The remaining
party were all badly injured, but once here, their wounds were healed.
Miraculously, according to my father's notes: gashes sealed without scarring,
broken bones mended in less than a week's time, even chronic ailments, like one
team member's heart murmur, faded away. But the most amazing transformation was
in Gerald Clark:"
"His
arm," Kelly said, sitting up straighter.
"Exactly.
Within a few weeks here, his amputated stump began to split, bleed, and sprout
a raw tumorous growth. One of the survivors was a medical doctor. He and my
father examined the change. The growth was a mass of undifferentiated stem
cells. They were sure it was some malignant growth. There was even talk of
trying to surgically remove it, but they had no tools. Over the next weeks,
slow changes became apparent. The mass slowly elongated, growing skin on the
outside:"
Kelly's
eyes widened. "The arm was regenerating."
Nate
nodded and turned. He scrolled down the computer journal to the day almost
three years ago. He read aloud his father's words. " `Today it became
clear to Dr. Chandler and me that the tumor plaguing Clark is in fact a
regeneration unlike any seen before. Talk of escape has been put on hold until
we see how this ends. It's a miracle that is worth the risk. The Ban-ali
continue to remain accommodating captors, allowing us free run of the valley,
but banning us from leaving. And with the giant cats prowling the lower chasm,
escape seems impossible for the moment anyway.
Nate
straightened up and tapped open a new file. Crude sketches of an arm and upper
torso appeared on the screen. "My father went on to document the
transformation. How the undifferentiated stem cells slowly changed into bone,
muscle, nerves, blood vessels, hair, and skin. It took eight months for the
limb to fully grow back."
"What
caused it?" Kelly asked.
"According
to my father's notes, the sap of the Yagga tree:"
Kelly
gasped. "The Yagga . . ."
Kouwe's
eyes widened. "No wonder the Ban-ali worship the tree:"
"What's
a Yagga?" Zane asked from a corner, showing the first sign of interest in
their discussion.
Kouwe
explained what he and Kelly had witnessed up in the healing ward of the giant
prehistoric tree. "Frank's wounds almost immediately sealed:"
"That's
not all," Kelly said. She shifted closer to get a better look at the
computer screen. "All afternoon, I've been monitoring his red blood cell
levels with a hematocrit tube. The levels are climbing dramatically. It's as if
something is massively stimulating his bone marrow to produce new red blood
cells for all he lost . . . at a miraculous rate. I've never seen such a
reaction:"
Nate
clicked open another file. "It's something in the sap. My father's group
was able to distill the stuff and run it through a paper chromatograph. Similar
to the way the sap of copal trees is rich in hydrocarbons, the Yagga's sap is
rich in proteins:"
Kelly
stared at the results. "Proteins?"
Manny
scooted next to her, looking over her shoulder. "Wasn't the disease vector
a type of a protein?"
Kelly
nodded. "A prion. One with strong mutagenic properties:" She glanced
over her shoulder to Manny. "You were mentioning something about the
piranhas and the locusts. A theory."
Manny
nodded. "They're tied to this Yagga tree, too. The locusts live in the
bark of the tree. Like some type of wasp gall. And the piranhas-their hatchery
is in a pond tucked among the roots. There was even sap dripping into it. I
think it's the sap that mutates them during early development:'
"My
father suggested a similar conclusion in his notes," Nate said quietly. In
fact, there were numerous files specifically on this matter. Nate had not been
able to read through them all.
"And
the giant cats and caimans?" Anna asked.
"Established
mutations, I'd wager," Manny said. "The two species must've been
altered generations ago into these oversized beasts. I imagine by now they're
capable of breeding on their own, stable enough genetically to need no further
support from the sap:"
"Then
why don't they leave the area?" Anna asked.
"Perhaps
some biological imperative, a genetic territorial thing:"
"It
sounds like you're suggesting this tree manufactured these creatures
purposefully? Consciously?" Zane scoffed.
Manny
shrugged. "Who can say? Maybe it wasn't so much will or thought as just
evolutionary pressure:"
"Impossible:"
Zane shook his head.
"Not
so. We've seen versions of this phenomenon already." Manny turned to Nate.
"Like the ant tree:"
Nate
frowned, picturing the attack on Sergeant Kostos by stinging ants. He
remembered how an ant tree's stems and branches were hollow, serving both to
house the colony and feed it with a sugary sap. In turn, the ants savagely
protected their home against the intrusion of plants and animals. He began to
understand what Manny was driving at. There was a distinct similarity.
Manny
went on, "What we have here is a symbiosis between plant life and animal,
both evolved into a complex shared interrelationship. One serving the
other:"
Camera
spoke up from her post by a window. The sun was slowly setting behind her
shoulder. "Who cares how the beasts came to be? Do we know how to avoid
them if we have to fight our way out of the valley?"
Nate
answered her question. "The creatures can be controlled:'
"How?"
He
waved to the laptop. "It took my father years to learn the Ban-ali
secrets. It seems that the tribe has developed powders that can both attract
and repel the creatures. We ourselves saw this demonstrated with the locusts,
but they can do it with the piranhas, too. Through chemicals in the water, they
can lure and trigger an aggressive response in the otherwise docile creatures.
My father believed it's some type of hormonal compound that stimulates the
piranhas' territoriality and makes them attack wildly."
Manny
nodded. "Then it's lucky we wiped out a majority of the adult horde so
quickly. I imagine it takes time for their hatchery to grow a new supply. Just
one of the disadvantages of a biological defense system:"
"Perhaps
that's why the Ban-ali keep more than one type of creature;" Camera noted
astutely. "Backup troops:"
Manny
frowned. "Of course. I should've thought of that:"
Camera
faced Nate. "Then there are those cats and giant caimans to
consider."
Nate
nodded. "Gatekeepers, like we thought, set up to defend the perimeter.
They patrol the entry points to the heart of the territory. But even the
jaguars can be made docile by painting a black powder over one's body, allowing
the Ban-ali to pass freely back and forth. I imagine the compound must act like
caiman dung, a scent repellent to the giant cats:"
Manny
whistled. "So our guide's body paint wasn't all camouflage:"
"Where
do we get some of this repellent stuff?" Kostos asked. "Where does it
come from?"
Kouwe
spoke up. "The Yagga tree." He had not moved, only grown more pale
with the telling of the tale.
Nate
was surprised by the professor's quick answer. "They're derived from the
Yagga's bark and leaf oils. But how did you guess?"
"Everything
ties back to that prehistoric tree. I think Manny was quite correct that the
specimen behaves like an ant tree. But he's wrong about who the ants are here:'
"What
do you mean?" Manny asked.
"The
mutated beasts are just biological tools supplied by the tree for its true
workers:" Kouwe stared around him. "The Ban-ali:"
A
stunned silence spread over the group.
Kouwe
continued, "The tribesmen here are the soldier ants in this relationship.
The Ban-ali name the tree Yagga, their word for mother. One who gives birth . .
. a caretaker. Countless generations ago, most likely during the first
migration of people into South America, the tribe must have stumbled upon the
tree's remarkable healing ability and became enthralled by it. Becoming
ban-yin-slaves. Each serving the other in a complex web of defense and
offense:'
Nate
felt sickened by this comparison. Humans used like ants.
"This
grove is prehistoric," the professor finished. "It might trace its
heritage back to Pangaea, when South America and Africa were joined. Its
species may have been around when man first walked upright. Throughout the
ages, there are hundreds of myths of such trees, from all corners of the world.
The maternal guardian. Perhaps this encounter here was not the first:"
This
thought sank into the others. Nate didn't think even his father had
extrapolated the history of the Yagga to this end. It was disturbing.
Sergeant
Kostos shifted his M-16 to his other shoulder. "Enough history lessons. I
thought we were supposed to be developing an alternate plan. A way to escape if
we can't raise someone on the radio:"
"The
sergeant is right:" Kouwe turned. "You never did tell us, Nate. What
happened to your father and the others? How did Gerald Clark escape?"
Nate
took a deep breath and turned back to the computer. He scrolled down to the
last entry and read it aloud.
"April
18
We've
gathered enough powders to chance an escape tonight. After what
we've
learned, we must attempt a break for civilization. We dare not wait
any
longer. We'll dust our bodies black and flee with the setting moon. Illia
knows
paths that will quickly get us past any trackers and out of these
lands,
but the trek back to civilization will be hard and not without threat.
Still,
we have no choice . . . not after the birth. We'll try tonight. May God
watch
over us all"
Nate
straightened from the laptop, turning to the others. "They al: attempted
to flee, not just Gerald Clark:"
Across
the many faces, Nate saw the same expression. Only Gerald Clark made it back to
civilization.
"So
they all left," Kelly mumbled.
Nate
nodded. "Even a Ban-ali woman, a skilled tracker named Illia. She had
fallen in love and married Gerald Clark. He took her with him:"
"What
happened to them?" Anna said.
Nate
shook his head. "That was the last entry. There is no more:"
Kelly's
expression saddened. "Then they didn't make it . . . only Gerald Clark."
"I
could ask Dakii for more details," Kouwe said.
"Dakii?"
Kouwe
pointed below. "The tribesman who guided us here. Between what I know of
the Ban-ali language and his smattering of English, I might be able to find out
what happened to the others, how they died:"
Nate
nodded, though he wasn't sure he wanted to know the details.
Manny
spoke up. "But what made them flee that night? Why the hint at some
urgency in that last note?"
Nate
took a deep breath. "It's why I wanted everyone to hear this. My father
came to some frightening conclusions about the Ban-ali. Something he needed to
relay to the outside world:"
"What?"
Kouwe asked.
Nate
wasn't sure where to begin. "It took years of living with the Banali for
my father to begin piecing facts together. He noticed that the isolated tribe
showed some hints of remarkable advancements over their Indian counterparts in
the greater Amazon. The invention of the pulley and wheel. A few of the homes
even have crude elevators, using large boulders and counterweights. And other
advancements that seemed strange considering the isolated nature of this tribe.
He spent much of his time examining the way the Ban-ali think, the way they
teach their children. He was fascinated by all this:"
"So
what happened?" Kelly asked.
"Gerald
Clark fell in love with Illia. They married during the second year of the
group's incarceration here. During the third, they conceived a baby. During the
fourth year, Illia gave birth:" He stared hard at the gathered faces.
"The child was stillborn, rife with mutations:" Nate recalled his
father's words. " `A genetic monster: "
Kelly
cringed.
Nate
pointed to the laptop. "There are more details in the files. My father and
the medical doctor of the group began to formulate a frightening conclusion.
The tree hadn't just mutated the lower species. It had also been changing the
Ban-ali over the years, subtly heightening their cognitive abilities, their
reflexes, even their eyesight. While outwardly they appeared the same, the tree
was improving the species. My father suspected that the Banali were heading
genetically away from mankind. One of the definitions that separates different
species is an inability to breed together:'
"The
stillborn child . . :" Manny had paled.
Nate
nodded. "My father came to believe that the Ban-ali were near to leaving
Homo sapiens behind, becoming their own species."
"Dear
God," Kelly gasped.
"It
was why their need to escape became urgent. This corruption of mankind in the
valley has to be stopped:"
No one
spoke for a full minute.
Anna's
voice, full of horror, whispered, "What are we going to do?"
"We're
going to get that damn GPS working," Kostos said harshly. "Then we're
gonna bug out of this damn place:"
"And
in the meantime," Camera added, "we should gather as much of that
repellent powder as possible, just in case:"
Kelly
cleared her voice and stood up. "We're all forgetting one vital thing. The
disease spreading across the Americas. How do we cure it? What did Gerald Clark
bring out of this valley?" Kelly turned to Nate. "In your father's
notes, is there any mention of a contagious disease here?"
"No,
with the inherent healing properties of the Yagga tree, everyone remained
incredibly healthy. The only suggestion is the taboo against one of the Chosen,
the Ban-ali, leaving the tribe. A shadowed curse upon he who leaves and all he
encounters. My father had dismissed this as a myth to frighten anyone from
leaving:"
Manny
mumbled, "The curse upon he who leaves and all he encounters . . . that
sounds like our contagion:"
Kelly
turned back to Nate. "But if true, where did the disease come from? What
triggered Clark's body to suddenly become riddled with tumors? What made him
contagious?"
"I
wager it has something to do with the Yagga tree's healing sap," Zane said.
"Maybe it keeps the disease in check here. When we leave, we need to make
sure we collect a generous sample. That's clearly vital:"
Kelly
ignored Zane, her gaze unfocused. "We're missing something . . . something
important," she said, low and quiet. Nate doubted anyone else heard her.
"I
can see if Dakii will cooperate," Kouwe said. "See if he has any
answers-both to the final fate of the others and about this mysterious disease:"
"Good.
Then we have a working plan for now," Sergeant Kostos said by the door. He
pointed around the room and assigned missions for each of them. "Olin will
work on the GPS. At daybreak, Kouwe and Anna, our Indian experts, will act as
Intel. Gather as much information as possible. Manny, Camera, and I'll search
out where the repellent powder is stored. Zane, Rand, and Kelly will watch over
Frank, ready him for a quick evac if necessary. While at the tree, it will be
up to you three to collect a sample of the healing sap:"
Slowly
everyone nodded. If nothing else, it would keep them busy, keep their minds off
the biological horrors hidden in the pristine valley.
Kouwe
pushed to his feet. "I might as well get started. I'll chat with Dakii
while he's alone down below."
"I'll
go with you," Nate said.
Kelly
moved toward them. "And I'm going to check on Frank one last time before
full night falls:"
The
trio left the common room and crossed the deck to the ladder. The sun was only
a sharp glow to the west. Dusk had rolled like a dark cloud over the glade.
In
silence, the three descended the ladder in the gloom, each in a cocoon of their
own thoughts.
Nate
was the first one down and helped Kouwe and Kelly off the ladder. Tor-tor
wandered over and nuzzled Nate for attention. He scratched absently at the
tender spot behind the jaguar's ear.
A few
yards away, the tribesman named Dakii stood.
Kouwe
crossed toward him.
Kelly
stared up at the Yagga, its upper branches still bathed in sunlight. In her
narrowed eyes, Nate saw a wary glint.
"If
you'll wait a moment, I'll go with you," he said.
She
shook her head. "I'm fine. I've got one of the Rangers' radios. You should
get some rest:'
"But
"
She
glanced over at him, her face tired and sad. "I won't be long. I just need
a few minutes alone with my brother:"
He
nodded. He had no doubt the Ban-ali would leave her unmolested, but he hated to
see her alone with such raw grief. First her daughter, now her brother . . . so
much pain shone in every plane of her face.
She
reached to him, squeezed his hand. "Thanks for offering, though," she
whispered, and set off across the fields.
Behind
Nate, Kouwe already had his pipe lit and was talking wit Dakii. Nate patted
Tor-tor's side and walked over to join them.
Kouwe
glanced back at him. "Do you have a picture of your father?"
"In
my wallet:"
"Can
you show it to Dakii? After four years spent with your father, the tribesmen
must be familiar with recorded images:"
Nate
shrugged and pulled out his leather billfold. He flipped to a photo of his
father, standing in a Yanomamo village, surrounded by village children.
Kouwe
showed it to Dakii.
The
tribesman cocked his head back and forth, eyes wide. "Kerl," he said,
tapping at the photo with a finger.
"Carl
. . . right," Kouwe said. "What happened to him?" The professor
repeated the question in Yanomamo.
Dakii
did not understand. It took a few more back-and-forth exchanges to finally
communicate the question. Dakii then bobbed his head vigorously, and a
complicated exchange followed. Kouwe and Dakii spoke rapidly in a mix of
dialects and phonetics that was too quick for Nate to follow.
During
a lull, Kouwe turned to Nate. "The others were slain. Gerald escaped the
trackers. His background as a Special Forces soldier must have helped him slip
away."
"My
father?"
Dakii
must have understood the word. He leaned in closer to the photograph, then back
up at Nate. "Son?" he said. "You son man?"
Nate
nodded.
Dakii
patted Nate on his arm, a broad smile on his face. "Good. Son of
wishwa:"
Nate
glanced to Kouwe, frowning.
"Wishwa
is their word for shaman. Your father, with his modern wonders, must have been
considered a shaman:"
"What
happened to him?"
Kouwe
again spoke rapidly in the mix of pidgin English and a mishmash of Yanomamo.
Nate was even beginning to unravel the linguistic knot.
"Kerl
. . . ?" Dakii bobbed his head, grinning proudly. "Me brother
teshari-rin bring Kerl back to shadow of Yagga. It good:"
"Brought
back?" Nate asked.
Kouwe
continued to drag the story from the man. Dakii spoke rapidly. Nate didn't
understand. But at last, Kouwe turned back to Nate. The professor's face was
grim.
"What
did he say?"
"As
near as I can translate, your father was indeed brought back here dead or
alive, I couldn't say. But then, because of both his crime and his wishwa
status, he was granted a rare honor among the tribe:'
"What?"
"He
was taken to the Yagga, his body fed to the root:"
"Fed
to the root?"
"I
think he means like fertilizer."
Nate
stumbled back a step. Though he knew his father was dead, the reality was too
horrible to fathom. His father had attempted to stop the corruption of the
Ban-ali by the prehistoric tree, risking his own life to do so, but in the end,
he had been fed to the damn thing instead, nourishing it.
Past
Kouwe's shoulder, Dakii continued to bob his head, grinning like a fool.
"It good. Kerl with Yagga. Nashi nar!"
Nate
was too numb to ask what the last word meant, but Kouwe translated anyway.
"Nashi
nar. Forever:"
8:O8
PM.
In the
jungle darkness, Louis lay in wait, infrared goggles fixed to his head. The sun
had just set and true night was quickly consuming the valley. He and his men
had been in position for hours.
Not
much longer.
But he
would have to be patient. Make haste slowly, he had been taught. One last key
was needed before the attack could commence. So he lay on his belly, covered by
the fronds of a fern, face smeared in streaks of black.
It had
been a long and busy day. This morning, an hour after sunrise, he had been
contacted by his mole. His spy was still alive! What good fortune! The agent
had informed him that the Ban-ali village did indeed lie in a secluded valley,
only approachable through the side canyon in the cliffs ahead. What could be
more perfect? All his targets trapped in one place.
The
only obstacle had been the valley's damned jaguar pack.
But his
darling Tshui had managed to handle that nasty problem. Covered by the early
morning gloom, she had led a handpicked team of trackers, including the German
commando, Brail, into the valley's heart and planted poisoned meat, freshly
killed and dripping with blood. Tshui had tainted each piece with a terrible
poison, both odorless and tasteless, that killed with only the slightest lick.
The pack, its blood lust already up from the attack upon the Rangers, found
these treats too hard to resist.
Throughout
the early morning, the great beasts dropped into blissful slumbers from which
they would never wake. A few of the cats had remained suspicious and had not
eaten. But hunting with the infrared goggles, Tshui and the others had finished
off these last stubborn cats, using air guns equipped with poisoned darts.
It had
been a quiet kill. With the way clear, Louis had moved his men into a guard
position near the mouth of the side chasm.
Only
one last item was needed, but he would have to be patient.
Make
haste slowly.
At
last, he spotted movement in the chasm. Through his infrared goggles, the two
figures appeared as a pair of blazing torches. They slipped down the crude
steps, alone. This morning, Louis had posted guards at the chasm mouth, ready
to silence any tribesman who came down to scout for them. But none of the
Ban-ali had shown their heads. Most likely the tribe's attention had remained
focused on the strangers in their village, confident that the jaguar pack would
keep them protected or alert them of any further intruders.
Not
this day, mes arms. Something more predatory than your little pack has come to
your valley.
The
figures continued to thread down the chasm. Louis lowered his infrared goggles
for a moment. Though he knew the figures were there, the black camouflage was
so perfect that Louis could not spot them with his unaided eye. He slipped the
goggles back in place and smiled thinly. The figures again blazed forth.
Ali,
the wonders of modern science . . .
In a
matter of moments, the two figures reached the bottom of the chasm. They seemed
to hesitate. Did they sense something was amiss? Were they wary of the jaguars?
Louis held his breath. Slowly the pair set out down the escarpment, ready for
the night's patrol.
At
last.
A new
blazing figure stepped forth from the jungle, into their path. A slender torch
that burned brighter than the other two. Louis lowered his goggles. It was
Tshui. Naked. Ebony hair flowed in a silky waterfall to her shapely buttocks.
She sidled toward the pair of scouts, a jungle goddess awoken from a slumber.
The
pair of painted tribesmen froze in surprise.
A
cough sounded from the bushes nearby. One of the Indians slapped his neck, then
slipped to the ground. There was enough poison in each dart to drop a half-ton jaguar.
The man was dead before his head hit the rocky ground.
The
remaining scout stared for a moment, then fled as quickly as a snake toward the
chasm. But Louis's mistress was even faster, her blood hyped on stimulants, her
reflexes sharper. Effortlessly, she danced back into his path, blocking him. He
opened his mouth to scream a warning, but again Tshui was quicker. She shot out
her arm and tossed a handful of powder into his face, into his eyes, into his
open mouth.
Reflexively
choking, his call was gargled, more a strangled wheeze. He fell to his knees as
the drug hit his system.
Tshui
remained expressionless. She knelt beside her prey as the man toppled to the
ground. She then stared over his body toward Louis's hiding place, a ghost of a
smile on her lips.
Louis
stood. They now had the final piece of the puzzle, someone to inform them about
the tribe's defenses. Everything was now in place for the assault tomorrow.
9:23
PM.
Kelly
sat cross-legged beside her brother's low hammock.
Wrapped
in a thick blanket, Frank sipped weakly through a reed straw poking from a
cantaloupe-sized hollow nut.
Kelly
recognized it as one of the fruits that grew in clusters along the branches of
the Yagga. The nut's content was similar to coconut milk. She had tasted it
first when one of the tribesmen in the healing ward had brought it over to her
brother. It was sweet and creamy with sugars and fats, an energy boost her
brother needed.
She
waited as Frank finished the contents of his natural energy drink and passed it
to her, his hand trembling slightly. Though awake, his eyes were still hazy
with a morphine glaze.
"How
are you feeling?" she asked.
"Like
a million bucks," he said hoarsely. His eyes twitched to the stumps hidden
under the blanket.
"How's
the pain?"
His
brow furrowed. "No pain," he said with half a laugh, strained
joviality. "Though I swear I can feel my toes itching:"
"Phantom
sensations," she said with a nod. "You'll probably feel them for
months:"
"An
itch I can never scratch . . . great:"
She smiled
up at Frank. The mix of relief, exhaustion, and fear in her own heart was
mirrored in her brother's expression. But at least his color had much improved.
As horrible as their situation was here, Kelly had to appreciate the healing
sap of the Yagga. It had saved her brother's life. His recovery had been
remarkable.
Frank
suddenly yawned, a true jawbreaker.
"You
need to sleep," she said, getting to her feet. "Miraculous healing or
not, your body needs to recharge its batteries:" She glanced around and
tucked in her shirt.
Around
the cavernous chamber, only a pair of tribesmen remained in the room. One of
them was the head shaman, who glared at her with impatience. Kelly had wanted
to spend the night at her brother's side, but the shaman had refused. He and
his workers, the tribesman had explained in stilted English, would watch over
their new brother. "Yagga protects him," the shaman had said,
brooking no argument.
Kelly
sighed. "I had better go before I get kicked out:"
Frank
yawned again and nodded. She had already explained to him about tomorrow's plan
and would see him at first light. He reached out and squeezed her hand.
"Love you, sis:'
She
bent and kissed his cheek. "Love you, too, Frank."
"I'll
be fine . . . so will Jessie."
Straightening,
she bit her lip to hold back a sudden sob. She couldn't let go of her feelings,
not in front of Frank. She dared not, or she'd never stop crying. Over the past
day, she had bottled her grief tightly. It was the O'Brien way. Irish fortitude
in the face of adversity. Now was not the time to dissolve into tears.
She
busied herself with checking his intravenous catheter, now plugged with a
heparin lock. Though he no longer needed fluid support, she kept the catheter
in place in case of emergencies.
Across
the way, the shaman frowned at her.
Screw
you, she thought silently and angrily, I'll go when I'm good and ready. She
lifted the blanket from over her brother's legs and made one final check on his
wounds. The sap seal on the stumps remained tenaciously intact. In fact,
through the semitransparent seal, she saw a decent granulation bed had already
formed over the raw wounds, like the heating tissue under a protective scab.
The rate of granulation was simply amazing.
Tucking
back the blankets, she saw that Frank's eyes were already closed. A slight
snore sounded from his open mouth. She very gently leaned over and kissed his
other cheek. Again she had to choke back a sob, but couldn't stop the tears.
Straightening up, she wiped her eyes and surveyed the room one final time.
The
shaman must have seen the wet glisten on her cheeks. His impatient frown
softened in sympathy. He nodded to her, his eyes intent, repeating a silent
promise that he would watch closely over her brother.
With
no choice, she took a deep breath and headed toward the exit. The climb back
down the tree seemed interminable. In the dark passage, she was alone with her
thoughts. Worries magnified and multiplied. Her fears bounced between her
daughter, her brother, and the world at large.
At last,
she stumbled out of the tree's trunk and into the open glade. An evening breeze
had kicked up, but it was warm. The moon was bright overhead, but already
scudding clouds rolled across the spread of stars. Somewhere in the distance,
thunder rumbled. They would get rain before the morning.
In the
freshening breeze, she hurried across the wide clearing, heading toward their
tree. At its base, she spotted someone standing guard with a flashlight-Private
Camera. The Ranger pegged her with the light, then waved. At her side, Tor-tor
lay huddled. The jaguar glanced up at her approach, sniffed the air, then
lowered his head back to his curled body.
"How's
Frank?" Camera asked.
Kelly
did not feel like talking but could not dismiss the soldier's con tern.
"He seems to be doing well. Very well:"
"That's
good:" She jabbed a thumb to the ladder. "You should try to get as
much sleep as possible. We've a long day ahead of us:"
Kelly
nodded, though she doubted sleep would come easily. She mounted the ladder.
"There's
a private room on the third level of the dwelling left empty for you. It's the
one on the right:"
Kelly
barely heard her. "Good night," she muttered and continued her climb,
lost in her own worries.
At the
top of the ladder, she found the deck empty, as was the common room. Everyone
must have already retired, exhausted by the number of days with so little
sleep.
Craning
back, she stared at the dark upper stories, then crossed to the longer of the
two secondary ladders.
Third
level, Private Camera had said.
Great
. . . just what I get for being the last one to claim a room.
The
third story was a good deal higher than the other two. Built on its own level
of branches, it was more a separate structure, a two-room guest house.
Her
legs aching, she mounted the long ladder. The wind began to kick up a bit as
she climbed, whispering the branches, swaying the ladder ever so slightly. The
gusts smelled of rain. Overhead, the moon was swallowed by dark clouds. She
hurried up as the storm swept toward the village.
From
this height, she saw lightning fork across the sky in a dazzling burst. Thunder
boomed and echoed like a bass drum. Suddenly, living in a giant tree did not
seem like such a wise choice. Especially the uppermost level.
She
hurried as the first raindrops began pelting through the leaves. Pulling
herself up onto the tiny deck, she rolled to her feet. The wind and rain grew
quickly. Storms in the Amazon were usually brief, but they often came swiftly
and fiercely. This one was no exception. Standing half crouched, she faced the
doors that led to the two rooms on this level.
Which
room had Camera told her was hers?
Lightning
crackled overhead in small angry spears, while thunder rattled. Rain swept in a
sudden torrent, and breezes became fierce gusts. Under her feet, the planking
rolled like the deck of a ship at sea.
Beyond
caring if she woke someone, Kelly dove toward the nearest opening, half falling
through the flap, seeking immediate shelter.
The
room was dark. Lightning burst, shining brightly through a smaller back door to
the chamber. The lone hammock in the room was thankfully empty. She stumbled
gratefully toward it.
As she
crossed toward the hammock, her feet tripped over something in the dark. She
fell to her knees with a sharp curse. Her fingers reached back and discovered a
pack on the floor.
"Who's
there?" a voice asked from beyond the back door. A silhouetted figure
stepped into the frame of the doorway.
On her
knees, Kelly felt a moment of sheer terror.
Thunder
echoed, and a new flicker of lightning revealed the identity of the dark
figure. "Nate?" she asked timidly, embarrassed. "It's
Kelly."
He
crossed quickly to her and helped her to her feet. "What are you doing
here?"
She
wiped the wet strands of hair from her face, now burning hotly. What a fool he
must think 1 am. "I . . . I stumbled into the wrong room. Sorry."
"Are
you okay?" Nate's hands still held her arms, his palms warm through her
soaked shirt.
"I'm
fine. Just feeling especially foolish:"
"No
reason to be. It's dark."
Lightning
crackled, and she found his eyes on hers. They stared at each other in silence.
Finally,
Nate spoke. "How's Frank?"
"Fine,"
she said in a hushed voice. Thunder boomed distantly, rolling over them, making
the world seem much larger, them much smaller. Her voice was now a whisper.
"I . . . I never said . . . I was sorry to hear about your father:"
"Thanks:"
His
single word, softly spoken, echoed with old pain. She moved a step toward him,
unwilled, a moth drawn to a flame, knowing she would be destroyed but having no
choice. His sorrow touched something inside her. That hard and fast wall around
her heart weakened. Tears again welled in her eyes. Her shoulders began to
tremble.
"Hush,"
he said, though she hadn't said a word. He pulled her closer to him, arms
wrapping around her shoulder.
The
trembling became sobs. All the grief and terror she had held in her heart
released in a blinding torrent. Her knees gave out, but Nate caught her in his
grip and lowered her to the floor. He held her tight, his heart beating against
hers.
They
remained on the floor in the center of the room as the storm raged outside,
swaying the trees, booming with the clash of Titans. At last, she glanced up
toward Nate.
She
reached up to him and pulled his lips to hers. She tasted the salt of his own
tears, of hers. At first, it was just survival in the face of the intense
sorrow, but as their lips opened, an unspoken hunger awoke. She felt his pulse
quicken.
He
pulled away for a moment, gasping. His eyes were bright, so very bright in the
darkness.
"Kelly.
. :"
"Hush,"
she sighed, using his own word. She pulled him back to her.
Wrapped
in each other's arms, they lowered themselves to the floor. Palms explored . .
. fingers loosened and peeled away damp clothes . . . limbs entwined.
As the
storm hammered, their passions grew white hot. Grief faded away, lost somewhere
between pain and pleasure, age-old rhythms and silent cries. They found the
room too small, falling out onto the back deck.
Lightning
rode the clouds, thunder roaring. Rain lashed under the awning, sweeping across
their bare skin.
Nate's
mouth was hot on her breast, on her throat. She arched into him, eyes closed,
lightning flaring red through her lids. His lips moved to hers, hungry, their
breath shared. Under the storm, under him, she felt the exquisite tension build
inside her, at first slowly, then ever more rapidly, swelling through and out
of her as she cried into his lips.
He met
her cry with his own, sounding like thunder in her ears.
For an
untold time, they held that moment. Lost to the world, lost to the storm, but
not lost to each other.
ACT
FIVE
Root
UNA OE
SATO, "CAT'S CLAW"
FAMILY:
Rubiaceae
GENUS:
UriCaY7a
SPECIES:
TOmentOSa, Guianensis
COMMON
NAMES: Cats Claw, Una de GatO,
Paraguayo,
Garabato, Garbato Casha, Samento, Toron`,
Tambor
Huasca, Ann Huasca, Una de Gavilari,
Hawk's
Claw
PART
USED: Bark, Root, Leaves
PROPERTIES/ACTIONS:
Antibacterial, Antioxidant,
Antiinflammatory,
Antitumorous, Antiviral, Cytostatic,
Depurative,
Diuretic, Hypotensive, Immunostimula.nt,
Vermifuge,
Antimutagenic
CHAPTER
SIXTEEN
Betrayal
AUGUST
1 7, 7:05 A. M.
AMAZON
JUNGLE
Nate
woke to find his arms around a naked woman. Her eyes were already open.
"Good morning," he said.
Kelly
inched closer to him. He could still smell the rain on her skin. She smiled.
"It's been morning for some time:"
He
rose to one elbow, which wasn't easy in a hammock, and stared down into her
face. "Why didn't you wake me?"
"I
figured you could use at least one full hour of sleep." She rolled out of
the hammock, setting it swinging, and artfully drew off the single blanket and
wrapped it around her.
With
one hand, he grasped for her.
She
stepped out of reach. "We have a long day ahead of us:"
With a
groan, he rolled to his feet and pulled his boxers from the pile of hastily
discarded clothes as Kelly gathered her things. Through the rear door to the
room, he stared out at the jungle.
Last
night, he and Kelly had talked into the wee hours of the morning, about fathers,
brothers, daughters, lives, and losses. There were still more tears. Afterward
they had made love again, slower, with less urgency, but with a deeper passion.
Sated, they had collapsed into the hammock to catch a few hours of sleep before
dawn.
Stepping
onto the rear deck, Nate studied the forest. The morning skies were blue and
clear, last night's storm long gone, the light sharp and bright. Raindrops
still clung to every leaf and blade, glistening like jewels. But that wasn't
all. "You should see this," he called back to the room.
Kelly,
now dressed in her khakis with her shirt half buttoned, joined him. He glanced
to her, stunned again by her beauty. Her eyes widened as she stared beyond the
deck's edge. "How marvelous. . ."
She
leaned into him, and he instinctively circled her with his arm.
Covering
the upper limbs of the tree, drawn by the moisture, were hundreds of
butterflies, perched on branches and leaves, fluttering through the bower. Each
had wings about a handspan wide, brilliant blue and crystalline green.
"Morpho
species," Nate said. "But I've never seen this color pattern:"
Kelly
watched one specimen waft by overhead through a beam of sunlight. It seemed to
shine with its own luminescence. "It's like someone shattered a
stained-glass window and showered the slivers over the treetops."
He
tightened his arm around her, trying to capture this moment forever. They stood
in silence and awe for several minutes. Then distant voices intruded, rising up
from below.
"I
suppose we should go down," Nate finally said. "We have a lot to
accomplish:"
Kelly
nodded and sighed. Nate understood her reluctance. Here, isolated above
everything else, it was possible to forget, at least for a while, the
heartaches and hardships ahead of them. But they could not escape the world
forever.
Slowly,
they finished dressing. As they were about to leave, Nate crossed to the rear
deck and unhooked the bamboo-and-palm-leaf awning so it fell back across the
rear door, returning the room to the way he found it.
Kelly
noticed what he did and moved nearer, examining the hinges along the top margin
of the door. "Closed, it blocks the doorway . . . pushed open and stilted,
it's a shade cover for the deck. Clever."
Nate
nodded. Yesterday he had been surprised by the ingenuity, too. "I've never
seen anything like it out here. It's like my father mentioned in his notes. An
example of the tribe's advancement over other indigenous peoples. Subtle
engineering improvements, like their crude tree elevators."
"I
could use an elevator right now;" Kelly noted, stretching a kink from her
back. "It does make you wonder, though;' she went on, "about the
Yagga-about what it's doing to these people:"
Nate
grunted in agreement, then turned to reassemble his own pack. There was much to
wonder about here. Once ready, Nate gave the room a final inspection, then
crossed to the door where Kelly crouched.
As
Kelly slung her pack to her shoulder, Nate leaned in and kissed her deeply.
There was a moment of surprise . . . then she returned the kiss with a matching
passion. Neither of them had spoken of where the two would go from here. Both
knew much of their urgency last night had come from a pair of wounded hearts.
But it was a start. Nate looked forward to seeing where it would lead. And if her
kiss was a clue, so did Kelly.
They
parted, and without another word, they headed to the ladder leading down to the
common areas of the dwelling.
As
Nate descended, cooking scents swelled around him. He reached the bottom rung
and hopped off. After helping Kelly down, they both walked through the common
area to the large front deck. Nate's stomach growled, and he suddenly
remembered his hunger.
Around
a stone hearth set into the deck, Anna and Kouwe were finishing the final
preparations for breakfast. Nate spotted a loaf of cassava bread and a tall
stone pitcher of cold water.
Anna
swung around with a platter of honest-to-goodness bacon in her arms. She lifted
her bounty. "From wild boar;" she explained. "A pair of
tribeswomen arrived with a feast at daybreak."
Nate's
mouth watered. There was also more fruit, some type of egg, even what looked
like a pie.
"No
wonder your father stayed here for so long;" Private Carrera mumbled
around a mouthful of bacon and bread.
Even
this reminder of his father failed to squelch Nate's appetite. He dug in along
with the rest.
As he
stuffed himself, Nate realized two of their party were missing. "Where are
Zane and Olin?"
"Working
on the radio," Kostos said. "Olin got the GPS up and running this
morning:"
Nate
choked on a piece of bread. "He got it working!"
Kostos
nodded, then shrugged. "He has it recalibrated, but who knows if anyone's
receiving."
Nate
let this information sink in. His eyes flicked to Kelly. If the signal was
received with the revised coordinates, they could be rescued as soon as this
evening. Nate recognized the glimmer of hope in Kelly's eyes, too.
"But
without the main radio to confirm," Kostos continued, "we may just be
spittin' in the wind. And until I get solid confirmation, we proceed with our
backup plan. Your mission today-along with Kelly and Zanewill be to make sure
Frank is ready for a quick evac if necessary."
"Plus
to gather some of the tree's sap," Kelly said.
Kostos
nodded, chewing hard. "While Olin works on the radio, the others of us
will split up and see if we can't find out more from the Indians. Get Intel on
those damned repellent powders:"
Nate
didn't argue with the sergeant's plan. GPS or not, it was safest to proceed as
cautiously and expeditiously as possible. The remainder of the meal was
finished in silence.
Afterward,
the party vacated the dwelling in the nightcap oak and climbed down to the
glade, leaving Olin alone in the dwelling with his satellite equipment. Manny
and the two Rangers headed in one direction, Anna and Kouwe in another. The
plan was to rendezvous back at the tree at noon.
Nate
and Kelly headed toward the Yagga with Richard Zane in tow. Nate hitched his
shotgun higher. The sergeant had insisted every member of the party go armed
with at least a pistol. Kelly had a 9mm holstered at her waist. Zane, ever
suspicious, had his Beretta in hand, eyes darting all around.
In
addition to the weapons, each of the three teams had been equipped with one of
the Rangers' short-range Saber radios, to keep in contact with one another.
"Every fifteen minutes, I want to hear an all-clear from each group,"
Kostos had said dourly. "No one stays silent:"
Prepared
as well as they could be, the group split up.
As
Nate walked across the glade, he stared up at the giant prehistoric gymnospore.
Its white bark glistened with dew, as did its leaves, flickering brightly.
Among the tiered branches, the clusters of giant nut pods hung, miniature
versions of the man-made huts. Nate was anxious to see more of the giant tree.
They reached
the thick, knobbed roots, and Kelly guided them between the woody columns to
the open cavity in the trunk. As Nate approached, he could appreciate why the
natives called their tree Yagga, or
Mother,
The Symbolism was not lost to him. The two main buttress roots
were
not unlike open legs, framing the tree's monstrous birth canal. It was from
here that the Ban-ali had been born into the world.
"It's
big enough to drive a truck through," Zane said, staring up at the arched
opening.
Nate
could not suppress a small shudder as he entered the shadowy heart of the tree.
The musky scent of its oil was thick in the passage. All around the lowermost
tunnel, small blue handprints decorated the wood wall, hundreds, some large,
others small. Did they represent members of the tribe? Did his own father's
palm mark this wall somewhere?
"This
way," Kelly said, leading them toward the passage winding up the tree.
As
Nate and Zane followed, the blue prints disappeared eventually.
Nate
glanced along the plain walls, then back toward the entrance. Something was
bothering him, but he couldn't exactly put his finger on it. Something didn't
look right. Nate studied the flow channels in the wood, the tubules of xylum
and phloem that moved water and nutrients up and down the trunk. The channels
ran down in graceful, winding curves around the passage walls. But down below,
where the passage bluntly ended, the flow channels were jagged, no longer
curving smoothly. Before he could examine this further, the group had passed beyond
the tunnel's curve.
"It's
a long climb," Kelly said, pointing ahead. "The healing chamber is at
the very top, near the crown of the tree:"
Nate
followed. The tunnel looked like some monstrous insect bore. In his study of
botany, he was well familiar with insect damage to trees: mountain pine beetle,
European elm bark beetle, raspberry crown borer. But this tunnel had not been
cored out-he would stake his life on it. It had formed naturally, like the
tubules found inside the stems and trunk of an ant tree, an evolutionary
adaptation. But even this raised a new question. Surely this tree was centuries
older than the first arrival of the Ban-ali to this region. So why did the tree
grow these hollowed tubules in the first place?
He
remembered Kelly's muttered words at the end of last night's group discussion.
We're missing something . . . something important.
They
started passing openings through the tree's trunk to the outside. Some led
directly into huts, others led out onto branches with huts beyond. He counted
as they climbed. There had to be at least twenty openings.
Behind
him, Zane reported in on the Saber radio. All was well with the other teams.
At
last, they reached the end of the passage, where it ballooned out into a
cavernous space with slits cut high in the walls to allow in the sunlight.
Still, the chamber was dim.
Kelly
hurried over to her brother.
The
small shaman stood across the room, checking on another patient. He glanced up
at their approach. He was alone. "Good morning," he said in stiff
English.
Nate
nodded. It was strange knowing these words were most likely taught to the man
by his own father. He knew from reading his father's notes that this shaman was
also the Ban-ali's nominal leader. Their class structure here was not highly
organized. Each person seemed to know his place and role. But here was the
tribe's king, the one who communed closest with the Yagga.
Kelly
knelt at Frank's side. He was sitting up and sucking the content of one of the
tree's nuts through a reed straw.
He set
his liquid meal aside. "The breakfast of champions," he said with his
usual good-natured smirk.
Nate
saw he still wore his Red Sox cap-and nothing else. He had a small blanket over
his lower half, hiding his stumped legs. But he was barechested, revealing
plainly what was painted there.
A
crimson serpent with a blue handprint in the center.
"I
woke up with it," Frank said, noticing Nate's gaze. "They must have
painted it on me during the night when I was drugged out:"
The
mark of the Ban-all.
The
shaman stepped to Nate's side. "You. . . son of Wishwa Kerl."
Nate
turned and nodded. Apparently their guide, Dakii, had been telling tales.
"Yes, Carl was my father."
The
shaman king clapped him on the shoulder. "He good man:"
Nate
did not know how to respond to this. He found himself nodding while really
wanting to rip into the shaman. If he was such a good man, why did you murder
him? But from working and living with indigenous tribes throughout the region,
he knew there would never be a satisfactory answer. Among the tribes, even a
good man could be killed for breaking a taboo-one could even be honored by
being turned into plant fertilizer.
Kelly
finished her examination of Frank. "His wounds have entirely sealed. The
rate of granulation is amazing:"
Her
expression must have been clear to the shaman. "Yagga heals him. Grow
strong. Grow-" The shaman frowned, clearly struggling to remember a word.
Finally, he bent down and slapped his own leg.
Kelly
stared at the shaman, then at Nate. "Do you think it's possible? Could
Frank's legs really grow back?"
"Gerald
Clark's arm regenerated," Nate said. "So we know it's possible:"
Kelly
crouched. "If we could watch the transformation in a modern medical
facility. . :"
Zane
interrupted her, lowering his voice and keeping his back toward the shaman.
"Remember, we have a mission here:"
"What
mission?" Frank asked.
Kelly
quietly explained.
Frank
brightened. "The GPS is working! Then there's hope:"
Kelly
nodded.
By
now, the shaman had wandered off, losing interest in them.
"In
the meantime," Zane hissed, "we're supposed to gather a sample of the
sap:"
"I
know where it comes from," Kelly said, nodding toward a channel carved
deep into the wall. Shielded by the two men, she picked up the empty nut
drained by her brother and pulled out the straw. She crossed to the wall and
removed a small wooden plug. A thick red sap began to flow into the channel.
She bent the nut's opening into the flow and began collecting the sap. It was
slow work.
"Let
me," Zane said. "You look after your brother:"
Kelly
nodded and stepped to Nate. "The stretcher is still here," she said,
pointing an arm to the makeshift travois. "When and if we get the signal,
we'll have to move fast:"
"We
should-"
The
first explosion shocked them all. Everyone froze as the blast echoed away. Nate
stared at the open slits high up the curved walls. It was not thunder. Not from
blue skies. Then more and more booms followed. Beyond the roar, sharper cries
arose.
Screams.
"We're
under attack!" Nate exclaimed.
He
turned and found a pistol pointed at him.
"Don't
move," Zane said, crouching by the wall, a tight and scared expression on
his face. He held the nut, now overflowing with sap, cradled in one arm, and
the 9mm Beretta in the other. "No one move:"
"What
are you-" Kelly began.
Nate
interrupted, immediately understanding. "You!" He remembered Kouwe's
suspicions: other trackers on their trail, a spy among them. "You goddamn
bastard. You sold us out!"
Zane
slowly stood. "Back away!" The pistol was held rock steady on them.
Beyond
the tense room, explosions continued to boom. Grenades.
Nate
pulled Kelly away from Zane's threatening gun.
Behind
them, the shaman suddenly bolted toward the opening, frightened by the
explosions, oblivious to the closer threat. A sound of alarm rose on his lips.
"Stop!"
Zane screamed at the tribesman.
The
shaman was too panicked to listen or to comprehend the stranger's tongue. He
continued to run.
Zane
twitched his gun and fired. In the enclosed space, the blast was deafening. But
not so deafening as to drown out the cry of surprise from the shaman.
Nate
glanced over his shoulder. The shaman fell on his side, clutching his belly,
gasping. Blood flowed from around his fingers.
Red
with anger, Nate turned on Zane. "You bastard. He couldn't understand
you:"
The
gun again pointed at them. Zane slowly circled around, keeping his weapon
aimed. He even kept a safe distance from Frank's hammock, not taking any
chances. "You were always the gullible fool," the Tellux man said.
"Just like your father. Neither of you understood anything about money and
power."
"Who
are you working for?" Nate spat.
Zane
now had his back to the exit. The shaman had rolled into a moaning ball off to
the side. Zane stopped and motioned with his pistol. "Toss your weapons
out the window slits. One at a time:"
Nate
refused to budge, shaking with rage. Zane fired, blasting wood chips from
between Nate's toes.
"Do
as he says," Frank ordered from the hammock.
Scowling,
Kelly obeyed. She freed her pistol from its holster and flung it out one of the
windows.
Nate
still hesitated.
Zane
smiled coldly. "The next bullet goes through your girlfriend's heart"
"Nate.
. :" Frank warned from the bed.
Teeth
clenched, Nate edged to the wall, weighing his chances of firing at Zane. But
the odds weren't good, not with Kelly's life at risk. He unslung his gun and
heaved it through one of the slits.
Zane
nodded, satisfied, and backed toward the exit. "You'll have to excuse me,
but I have a rendezvous to make. I suggest you three remain here. It's the
safest spot in the valley at the moment:"
With
those snide words, Zane slipped out of the chamber and disappeared down the
throat of the tunnel.
8:12
A. M.
Deep
in the jungle, Manny ran alongside Private Camera. Tor-for raced beside them,
ears flattened to his skull. Explosions ripped through the morning, smoke
wafted through the trees.
Kostos
ran ahead of them, screaming into his radio. "Everyone back to home base!
Rally at the dwelling!"
"Could
they be our people?" Manny asked. "Responding to the GPS?"
Camera
glanced back at him and frowned. "Not this quick. We've been
ambushed:"
As if
confirming this, a trio of men, dressed in camouflage gear and armed with
AK-47s and grenade launchers, trotted into view.
Kostos
hissed and waved them all down.
They
dropped to their bellies.
An
Indian ran at the group with a raised spear. He was nearly cut in half by
automatic fire.
Tor-tor,
spooked by the chattering gunfire, bolted forward.
"Tor-tor!"
Manny hissed, rising to one knee, reaching for the cat.
The
jaguar dashed into the open, across the path of the gunmen.
One of
them barked something in Spanish and pointed. Another grinned and lifted his
weapon, eyeing down the barrel.
Manny
raised his pistol. But before he could fire, Kostos rose up ahead of him, the
M-16 at his shoulder, and popped off three shots, three squeezes of the
trigger. Blam, blam, blam.
The
trio fell backward, heads exploding like melons.
Manny
froze, stunned.
"C'mon.
We need to get back to the tree:" Kostos scowled at the jungle. "Why
the hell aren't the others responding?"
8:22
A.M.
Kouwe
kept Anna behind him as he hid behind a bushy fern. Dakii, the tribal guide,
crouched beside him. The four mercenaries stood only six yards away, unaware of
the eyes watching them. Though Kouwe had heard the sergeant's order to regroup
at the nightcap oak, with the marauders so near, he dared not signal his
acknowledgment. They were pinned down. The group of mercenaries stood between
them and the home tree. There was no way to get past them unseen.
Behind
him, Dakii crouched as still as a stone, but the tension emanating from him was
fierce. While hidden, he had watched more than a dozen of his tribesmen-men,
women, children-mowed down by this group.
Further
in the wood, explosions continued to boom. They heard screams and the crash of
dwellings from the treetops. The marauders were tearing through the village.
The only hope for Kouwe's party was to flee to some sheltered corner of the
jungled plateau, hope to be overlooked.
One of
the soldiers barked into a radio in Spanish. "Tango Team in position.
Killzone fourteen secure:"
Kouwe
felt something brush his knee. He glanced over. Dakii motioned for him to
remain in place. Kouwe nodded.
Dakii
rolled from his side, moving swiftly and silently. Not a single twig was
disturbed. Dakii was teshari-rin, one of the tribe's ghost scouts. Even without
his paint, the tribesman blended into the deeper shadows. He raced from shelter
to shelter, a dark blur. Kouwe knew he was witnessing a demonstration of the
Yagga's enhancement of its wards. Dakii circled around the band, then even
Kouwe lost track of him.
Anna
grabbed his hand and squeezed. Have we just been abandoned? she seemed to
silently ask.
Kouwe
wondered, too, until he spotted Dakii. The tribesman crouched across the way.
He was in direct sight of Kouwe and Anna, but still hidden from the four
guards.
Dakii
rolled to his back in the loam, aiming the small bow he had found high into the
air. Kouwe followed where his arrow pointed. Then back down to the mercenaries.
He
understood and motioned for Anna to be ready with her own weapon. She nodded,
staring up, then back down, understanding.
Kouwe
signaled Dakii.
The
tribesman pulled taut his bowstring and let fly an arrow. A tiny twang was
heard, as was the louder rip of arrow through leaf. The mercenaries all turned
in Dakii's direction, weapons raised.
Kouwe
ignored them, his gaze focused above. High in the branches was the ruin of a
dwelling, but left intact among the branches was one of the little ingenious
inventions of the Ban-ali, one of their makeshift elevators. Dakii's arrow
sliced the support rope that held aloft a cradled counterweight, a large chunk
of granite.
The
boulder came crashing down, straight at the group of mercenaries.
One
was smashed under its weight, his face crushed as he glanced up a moment too
late.
Kouwe
and Anna were already on their feet. From such close range, they emptied their
pistols at the remaining trio, striking chests, arms, and bellies. The group
fell. Dakii rushed out, an obsidian dagger in his hand. He ran at the
mercenaries and slit the throats of any who still moved. It was quick and
bloody work.
With a
hand, Kouwe steadied Anna, who had paled at the display. "We have to get
back to the others:"
9:05
A.M.
From
the height of the chasm, Louis had a wide view of the isolated valley. A pair
of binoculars hung around his neck, forgotten. Across the jungle, smoke rose
from countless fires and signal flares. In just over an hour, his team had
encircled the village and were now closing slowly toward the center, toward his
goal and prize.
Brail,
who had been assigned as his new lieutenant after Jacques disappeared, spoke
near his feet. The tracker knelt over a map, marking off small X's as his units
reported in. "The net's secure, Herr Doktor. Nothing left now but mopping
up:"
Louis
could tell the man was anxious to bag his own limit here.
"And
the Rangers? The Americans?"
"Herded
toward the center, just as you ordered:"
"Excellent:"
Louis nodded to his mistress at his side. Tshui was naked, armed only with a
little blowgun. Between her breasts rested the shrunken head of Corporal
DeMartini, hung around Tshui's neck by the man's own dog tags.
"Then
it's time we joined the party." He lifted his twin pair of snubnosed
mini-Uzis. They felt powerful in his hands. "It's high time I made the
acquaintance of Nathan Rand."
9:12
A.M.
"You
watch over your brother and the shaman," Nathan said, sensing time was
running out. "I'm going after Zane."
"You
don't have a weapon:" Kelly knelt beside the shaman. With Nathan's help,
the two had wrangled the tribesman into a hammock. Kelly had shot him full of
morphine, quieting his pained thrashing. A belly wound was one of the most
agonizing. With no better solution, she was now slathering the entry and exit
wounds with Yagga sap. "What are you going to do if you catch him?"
Nate
felt a fire in his own belly, just as agonizing as a bullet wound. "First
he betrayed my father, now he betrayed us:" His voice choked with anger.
He wanted only one thing from the man. Vengeance.
Frank
spoke from his hammock. "What are you going to do?"
Nathan
shook his head. "I have to try."
He
headed toward the exit. Distantly the explosions had died down, but gunfire spat
sporadically. The fewer the shots, the more obvious it became that the village
was being wiped out. Nate knew they would fare no better, not unless something
was done. But what?
Stalking
down the passage, at first cautiously, then faster and faster, around and
around, Nate was reminded of the serpentine pattern of the Ban-ali symbol,
winding in a spiral. Could this passage be what the symbol represented, or was
it what Kelly had conjectured earlier, a crude representation of the twisted
protein model, the mutagenic prion? If it represented the Yagga's tunnel, what
did the helixes at each end of the spiral mean? Did one depict the healing
ward? And if so, what did the other represent? And the blue handprint? Nate
recalled the painted handprints decorating the entrance to the passage and
shook his head. What did it all mean?
He ran
around a corner and stumbled over a dead Indian lying in the tunnel. Nate fell
to his hands, skidding on his knees. Once stopped, he rolled around and saw the
bullet hole in the man's chest and a second in the back of his head.
Nate
looked down and saw another body, just its legs, around the next curve. Another
Indian.
Zane.
Nate
scrambled to his feet, his blood on fire. The man was picking off the unarmed
stragglers here, healers and aides to the shaman, brutally clearing a bloody
path to the tunnel's end. The fucking coward.
Nate
shoved down the tunnel, counting off the openings on his left. When he reached
the last one, he ducked out of the passage and through a small, empty dwelling.
He found himself on a branch at least five feet thick. Before continuing, he
needed some idea of what was happening below. Smoke billowed and wafted through
the open glade.
In the
clearing around the tree, a few Indians retreated toward the Yagga.
By
now, an ominous quiet had settled over the village.
Nate
edged along the branch, but he couldn't get a good look across the glade toward
the nightcap oak and his team's temporary homestead. The branch pointed the
wrong way. He couldn't even spy the entrance to the Yagga. Damn it.
Pistol
fire sounded from below. Zane! A scream erupted from the field on the tree's
far side. The coward must be hiding down at the tunnel's end, killing any
Indians who neared. Nate knew the bastard had enough ammo to hold them off for
a while.
The
Indians in direct sight below fled toward the cover of the thicker wood.
Nate
stared across the glade. There was no sign of his friends.
As
Nate sidled along the thick limb, his toe nudged a rope coiled atop the branch.
He looked closer. Not rope, he realized, but one of the vine ladders.
"A
fire escape," he mumbled. An idea flashed into his mind-a plan forming.
Before
he lost his nerve, he shoved the piled vine over the edge.
The
ladder unrolled with a whispery sound until it snapped to its full length, only
three feet from the ground. It was a long climb, but if Zane was down there,
perhaps Nate could sneak up on him.
With
no more plan than that, Nate mounted the ladder and began a hurried climb
earthward. He raced down the rungs. If his group and the remaining Indians
could fall back here, they might have a more defensible position. But before
that could happen, Zane had to be eliminated.
Nate
reached the end of the ladder and hopped off.
Tall
roots rose all around him, and it took Nate a moment to orient himself. The
stream was behind and off to the left. That meant he was about at the four
o'clock position from the tunnel entrance. He began to wind counterclockwise
around the trunk.
Three
o'clock . . . two o'clock . . .
Somewhere
off in the forest, a spatter of automatic gunfire erupted. Another grenade
exploded. Clearly the fighting had not entirely ceased in some parts of the
village.
Using
the cover of the noise, Nate crawled and edged his way around the tree's base.
At last, he spotted one of the tall buttress roots that flanked the entrance.
One o'clock.
Nate
leaned against the trunk. Zane was beyond the obstruction . . . but how to
proceed from here was the tricky part. Another pistol shot rang out from Zane's
bunker. Nate frowned down at his empty hands.
What
plan now, hero boy?
9:34
A.M.
Zane
knelt on one knee, aiming out with his pistol. Tiring, he supported his weapon
arm with his other. But he refused to let down his guard, not when victory was
so close. He only had to hold out a little longer, then his role in this
mission would be over.
One
eye twitched to the nut full of the miraculous sap. It was a fortune worth
billions. Though St. Savin Pharmaceuticals had made a sizable deposit in Zane's
Swiss account to buy his cooperation, it was the promised bonus of a quarter
percentage point of gross sales that had finally sold him on the betrayal. With
the potential in the Yagga's sap, there was no limit to the wealth that could
flow his way.
Zane
licked his lips. His role here was almost at an end. Days ago, he had
successfully slipped the computer virus into the team's communication
equipment. Now all that remained was the final endgame.
Late
last night, Favre had instructed Zane to obtain a sample of the sap and protect
it with his life. "If those damn natives pull some jackass stunt,"
Louis had warned, "like setting fire to their precious tree to protect
their secret, then you're our fail-safe:"
Zane
had, of course, agreed, but unknown to his murderous partner, Zane had his own
backup plan in mind, too. Once secure here, Zane had poured a small sample of
the sap from the nut, sealed it in a latex condom, tied it off, and swallowed
it. An extra bit of insurance on his own part. Any betrayal and a competing
pharmaceutical company, like Tellux, would find itself in possession of the
miraculous substance instead of St. Savin.
Distant
rifle shots sounded from the woods. He spotted flashes of muzzle fire. Favre's
men were cinching the noose. It would not be long.
As if
confirming this, a grenade exploded at the glade's fringe. A dwelling in one of
the huge trees blew apart, casting leaf and branch high into the air. Zane
smiled-then he heard a voice within the echo of the blast. It sounded close.
"Watch
out! Grenade!"
Something
hit the trunk of the tree just over his head and bounced into the flanking
root. Grenade! his mind echoed.
With a
cry of alarm, he dove away from the entrance and rolled deeper into the shaft,
arms shielding his head. He waited several tense seconds, then several more. He
panted, ragged from the near escape. The expected explosion never came.
Cautiously uncovering his head, he clenched his teeth. Still no blast.
He sat
up, crawled slowly back toward the entrance, and peeked around the corner,
where he spotted the small coconut-shaped object resting in the dirt. It was
just one of the immature nut pods from the damn tree! It must have fallen from
an overhead branch.
"Goddamn
it!" He felt foolish at his panic.
He
straightened, raising his weapon, and stepped back to his guard position.
Getting too damn jumpy . . .
A blur
of motion.
Something
solid struck his wrist. The pistol flew from his fingers as his wrist exploded
with pain. He started to fall backward-then his arm was grabbed by someone
stepping from the blind side of the entrance. He was yanked out of the entrance
and thrown bodily forward.
His
shoulder hit the dirt. He rolled and stared back around. What he saw was
impossible. "Rand? How?"
Nathan
Rand towered over him at the entrance to the tunnel, a long, thick section of
branch in his hand, which he raised menacingly.
Zane
crab-crawled backward.
"How?"
Nate asked. "A little lesson from our Indian friends. The power of
suggestion:" Rand kicked the immature seed pod toward him. "Believe
something strongly enough, and others will believe, too:"
Zane
scrambled to his feet.
Nate
swung the branch like a bat, striking him on the shoulder and knocking him back
down. "That was for the shaman you shot like a dog!" Nate lifted the
branch again. "And this is for-"
Zane
glanced over Nate's shoulder. "Kelly! Thank God!"
Nate
turned half around.
Using
the moment of distraction, Zane shot to his feet and darted away. He cleared
the side root in three steps.
He
heard the blistering protest behind him and smiled.
What
a...
. . .
fool! Tricked by his own damn ruse! No one stood at the tunnel entrance. Kelly
was not there.
Nate
watched Zane race around the thick buttress. "No, you don't, you
bastard!" With club in hand, he gave chase.
Still
ringing with anger, Nate flew around the tree and spotted Zane fleeing along
the base of the trunk, toward a tangle of roots. The traitor could easily get
lost among them and escape. Nate thought of going back for the abandoned
pistol, but he didn't have the time. He dared not lose sight of the bastard.
Ahead,
Zane ducked under an arched root and wriggled through agilely. He was one wiry
son of a bitch. In this race, Zane's smaller frame and lighter build were
advantageous.
Realizing
they were matched now fist to fist, Nathan tossed aside his club and pursued
Zane. They fought through the snarl, crawling, climbing, leaping, squirming
their way through the tangled maze. Zane was making headway on him.
Then
the roots opened. They both stumbled onto some path amid the mess. Zane ran,
pounding down the trail. Nate swore and went after him.
Ahead,
water glistened. As they raced along the snaking trail, Nate saw the path ended
at a wide pool, blocking the way. A dead end.
Nate
smiled. End of the line, Zane!
As
they neared the pool, his quarry also realized he had run himself into a blind
alley and slowed-but instead of a groan of defeat, Nate heard a snarl of glee.
Zane
leaped to the side, diving for the ground.
Nate
closed the distance.
Zane
swung to face him, a gun in hand. A 9mm Beretta.
It
took Nate a startled moment to fathom this miracle. Then he saw his own
shotgun, hanging by its shoulder strap from a rootlet a few steps to his right.
The pistol was Kelly's! One of the weapons Zane had made them toss out of the
treetop.
Nate
groaned. The gods were not smiling on him. He took a step toward his shotgun,
but Zane clucked his tongue.
"Move
another inch, and you get a third eye!"
9:46
A.M.
Kouwe
herded Anna ahead of him. The crack of rifle fire was closing all around them.
Dakii led the way, expressionless, in scout mode. He wound with calm assurance
through his village forest, guiding them back toward the nightcap oak. They
needed to rendezvous with the Rangers. Put together some semblance of a plan.
Kouwe
had been able to contact Sergeant Kostos over the radio and inform him of their
status. He had also learned that Olin, left up in the dwelling, had been able
to report in, too. The Russian was keeping himself well hidden in the tree. But
so far no word had come from Nate's party. He prayed they were okay.
At
last, Kouwe spotted sunlight ahead. The central glade! His team had been
circling around from the south, keeping within the jungle cover. According to
the sergeant, the Rangers were angling down from the north side.
Dakii
slowed and pointed from a half crouch.
Anna
and Kouwe moved up with him. Through a break in the foliage, Kouwe spotted the
small log cabin in the clearing. He was able to orient himself. He followed the
tribesman's arm. The nightcap oak, their destination, lay only fifty yards
ahead. But that was not what Dakii was pointing out. Beyond the giant oak,
Kouwe spotted Tor-tor. The jaguar raced along the clearing's edge. Drawn by the
motion, Kouwe was able to see figures moving through the deeper shadows.
The
Ranger team and Manny! They had made it back!
Dakii
led them onward, speeding deftly through the glade's fringe.
In a
few minutes, the two parties reunited at the base of the tree. Sergeant Kostos
clapped Kouwe on the shoulder. Anna and Manny hugged.
"Any
word from Nate?" Kouwe asked.
The
sergeant shook his head, then waved to the dwelling. "I've ordered Olin to
pack up his GPS and join us:"
"Why?
I thought the plan was to rendezvous at the tree."
"This
is close enough. As near as I can tell, we're boxed in. The tree is no
protection:"
Kouwe
frowned but understood. The marauders were systematically destroying every
dwelling. They'd be trapped up there. "What then?"
"We
bug out of here. Find a way through their line as silently as possible. Once
past them, we'll seek shelter, somewhere where they can't find us:"
Manny
edged closer to them, glancing at his watch. "The sergeant set one of his
napalm bombs back in the woods, timed to explode in another fifteen minutes:"
"A
distraction," Sergeant Kostos said. He hiked his pack on his shoulder.
"And we have more if we need them:"
"It's
why we can't wait for Nate," Manny said, reading his friend's eyes.
Kouwe
gazed at the Yagga. The sound of gunfire was trickling away . . . as was their
time. If they were going to have any chance, they would have to take it now.
Kouwe reluctantly nodded, conceding.
Overhead,
the vine ladder shuddered. He glanced up. Olin was climbing down, his radio
pack in place.
Kostos
waved his M-16. "Let's get ready to-"
The
blast rocked them all to their knees. Kouwe swung around and watched the roof
of the cabin sail high into the air. Bits of debris blew outward with
tremendous force. A section of log shot by overhead, a flying battering ram,
slicing into the jungle and crashing into its depths. Smoke billowed outward.
That
was no grenade blast.
Through
the smoke, a cadre of soldiers appeared, weapons raised and ready.
Kouwe
noticed two things simultaneously. First, walking in the lead was a naked
woman, hand in hand with a tall gentleman dressed all in white.
But
the second thing Kouwe noted was of more immediate menace, something carried by
one of the soldiers. The man dropped to a knee and lifted a long black tube on
his shoulder.
Kouwe
had seen enough Hollywood movies to recognize the weapon. "Rocket
launcher!" Camera screamed behind him. "Everyone down!"
10:03
A.M.
The
first blast had frozen both Nate and Zane in place. Nate kept focused on his
adversary's weapon. From only a few yards away, the pistol was pointing square
at his chest. He dared not move. He held his breath.
What
was going on out there?
As the
second blast sounded, Zane's eyes twitched in the direction of the explosion.
Nate knew he wouldn't have another chance. He was dead unless he did something
. . . even something stupid.
Nate
lunged through the air, not toward Zane, but toward the dangling shotgun. His
movement did not go unnoticed. Nate heard the sharp report of Zane's pistol and
felt something sting his upper thigh, but he didn't stop.
His
body struck the root, his arms scrambling for the shotgun. He didn't have time
to unhook the strap. From where it hung, he just blindly swung the barrel in
Zane's general direction and yanked the trigger. Recoil tore the weapon from
his hand.
Nate
ducked and swung around.
He saw
Zane flying backward, his belly bloody, arms flung out. Zane landed in the
small pond at the end of the blocked trail. He sputtered to the surface-the
water was surprisingly deep, even near shore-and cried in alarm and pain.
Zane
was now learning the lesson he had taught the unarmed Ban-ali shaman: a belly
shot was one of the most agonizing.
Nate
pushed up and unhooked his shotgun. He pointed it at the floundering man. He
had not seen where the pistol had gone and was taking no chances this time.
Zane,
his face a mask of torment, struggled toward the shore. Then his body suddenly
jerked, his eyes widened in shock. His moaning turned to fresh screams.
"Nate! Help me!"
Responding
instinctively, Nate took a step forward.
Zane
reached toward him, face pleading, terrified-then all around his body, the
waters erupted in a fierce churning.
Nate
caught several flashes of silver bodies. Piranhas. He backed away, realizing
where he was: the birthing pool, the hatchery that Manny had described finding.
Zane
thrashed, jerking and twitching, screeching. He began to sink into the froth.
His eyes rolled with panic as he fought to keep his mouth above water. He
failed. His head sank away. Only one arm remained above the pool-then even this
disappeared under the roiling waters.
Nate
turned from the pool and crossed down the path, feeling no pity for the man. He
briefly checked the stinging burn in his thigh. He found a bullet hole in his
pants and a trickle of blood. Just a graze, nothing more. He had been damned
lucky.
He
clenched the shotgun in his grip and marched down the trail, praying his luck
would hold.
10:12A.M.
Manny
shifted under a pile of debris, shoving with his shoulders. Smoke choked him.
The explosion of the rocket in the treetop still rang in his head. It hurt to
move his jaw. He crawled free amid shouts and yells. All commands.
"Throw
down your weapons!"
"Show
us your hands!"
"Move
now, or I'll shoot you dead where you lie!"
That
was incentive enough. Manny groaned and spat out blood. He glanced up into
chaos. He saw Anna Fong on her knees, hands on her head. She looked all but
unscathed. Professor Kouwe knelt at her side, bearing a scalp gash that dripped
blood down his cheek. Dakii was also there, wearing an expression of stunned
disbelief.
Turning,
Manny saw Tor-tor's spotted face peering out from under a bush. He motioned the
jaguar to stay put. Near the same bush, he watched Private Camera furtively
shove her Bailey under a section of the roof thatch from one of the abodes
above.
"You!"
someone barked. "On your feet!"
Manny
didn't know who the man was talking to until he felt the hot barrel of a gun on
his temple. He froze.
"On
your feet!" the man repeated. His words were heavily accented, German
perhaps.
Manny
clambered to his knees, then to his feet. He wobbled, but this seemed to
satisfy the mercenary.
"Your
weapon!" he barked.
Manny
glanced around him as if searching for a missing shoe or sock. He saw his
pistol lying there and nudged it with a toe. "There:"
A
second soldier appeared out of nowhere and confiscated it.
"Join
the anderen!" the man said with a shove toward the others.
As he
stumbled toward his kneeling friends, Manny saw Camera and Kostos escorted by
other guards. Their holsters were empty, packs gone. They were all forced to
their knees, hands on their heads. The sergeant's left eye was swollen, his
nose crooked and bloodied, broken. Kostos had clearly put up more fight than
Manny.
Suddenly
a distant section of deeper forest blew up into a ball of fire. The soft
explosion echoed out to them, along with the smell of napalm.
So
much for Kostos's planned "distraction:" Too little, too late.
"Herr
Brail, this one's not moving!" one of the mercenaries shouted behind them
in a mix of German and Spanish.
Manny
glanced back to the base of the nightcap oak. It was Olin. He lay in a crumpled
heap. A spear of wood had pierced through his shoulder and blood flowed
brightly across his light khaki shirt. Manny saw he was still breathing.
The
one named Brail tore his gaze from the burning forest and wandered over to
check on the Russian. "Hundefleisch," the German said. Dog meat. He
lifted his pistol and shot Olin in the back of the head.
Anna
jumped at the noise, a sob escaping her.
From
near the ruins of the log cabin, the two leaders of the attack force casually
wandered toward them. The small Indian woman, though naked, moved casually, as
if through a garden party, all curves and smooth legs. She wore a talisman
resting between her breasts. Manny had first thought it was a leather satchel,
but as she neared, he recognized it as a shrunken head. The hair atop the
disgusting trinket was shaved.
The
slender man at her side, dressed in white khakis and a rakish Panama hat,
noticed his attention. He lifted the necklace for the others' view.
Manny
spotted the dog tags.
"May
I reintroduce you to Corporal DeMartini:" He laughed lightly, as if he had
made a joke, a party amusement, and dropped the defiled head of their former
teammate back to the woman's chest.
Sergeant
Kostos grumbled a threat, but the AK-47 pointed at the nape of his neck kept
him on his knees.
Louis
smiled at the line of kneeling prisoners. "It's good to see you all
together again."
Manny
recognized a distinctly French accent. Who was this man?
Professor
Kouwe answered his silent question. "Louis Favre," the pro fessor
mumbled under his breath, his expression sickened.
The
Frenchman's gaze swung to Kouwe. "That's Doctor Favre, Professor Kouwe.
Please let's keep this courteous, and we can be done with this unpleasant
matter as quickly as possible:"
Kouwe
simply glowered.
Manny
knew the man's name. He was a biologist banned from Brazil for black-market
profiteering and for crimes against the indigenous people. The professor, along
with Nate's father, had shared an infamous past with this man.
"Now,
we've counted heads here and seem to have come up a few short," Favre
said. "Where are the last members of your little troupe?"
No one
spoke.
"Come
now. Let's keep this friendly, shall we? It's such a pleasant day." Favre
marched up and down the row of prisoners. "You don't want this to turn
ugly now, do you? It's a simple question."
Still
no one moved. Everyone stared blankly forward.
Favre
shook his head sadly. "Then ugly it is:" He turned to the woman.
"Tshui, ma cherie, take your pick:" He brushed his hands primly as if
done with the matter.
The
naked woman stalked before them, and hesitated before Private Camera, cocking
her head, then suddenly sprang two places over to kneel before Anna. Her nose
was only an inch from the anthropologist's.
Anna
recoiled, but the gun behind her held her in place.
"My
darling has an eye for beauty."
Moving
as quickly as a striking snake, the Indian woman drew a long;
slender
bone knife from a sheath hidden in her long tresses. Manny had seen knife
sheaths like this braided into the hair of warriors in only one Amerindian
tribe: the Shuar, the headhunters of Equador.
The
bleached-white knife pointed into the tender flesh under Anna's chin. The Asian
woman trembled. Red blood dribbled down the white blade. Anna gasped.
Enough,
Manny thought, reacting reflexively. His right hand dropped to his waist,
settling atop the handle of the short bullwhip. He could also move quickly when
he wanted, reflexes developed from years of taming a wild cat. With skilled
fingers, he snapped out with the whip.
The
tip of the leather struck the bone knife, sending it flying, and nicked a cut
under the Shuar woman's eye.
Like a
cat, she hissed and rolled away, wounded. A second knife appeared in her hand
as if by magic. It seemed this cat had many claws.
"Leave
Anna be!" Manny yelled. "I'll tell you where the others are!"
Before he could say anything else, Manny was clubbed from behind, knocked to his
face in the dirt and leaves. A foot kicked his whip away, then stomped on the
offending hand, snapping a finger.
"Drag
him up!" Favre barked, all traces of his genteel mannerisms falling away.
Manny
was hauled up by his hair. He cradled his injured hand to his chest.
Favre
stood by the Indian woman and wiped the blood from her cheek. Favre turned to
Manny and licked the blood from his fingertip.
"Now
was that necessary?" he asked, and reached a hand behind him. One of the
gunmen placed a snub-nosed rifle in his palm. Some type of miniature Uzi, from
the looks of it.
The
fist in Manny's hair twisted hard.
"Release
him, Brail," Favre said.
The
hand let go of him. Unsupported, Manny almost sagged to his face again.
"Where
are they?" Louis asked.
Manny
bit past the pain. "In the tree . . . the last time we saw them . .
they've not responded to our radios:"
Favre
nodded. "So I heard:" He reached his free hand and pulled out
matching
radio. "Corporal DeMartini was gracious enough to lend me his Saber and
supply me with the proper radio frequencies:"
Manny
frowned. "If you knew . . . why . . . ?" He glanced over to Anna.
A long
sigh followed, exasperated and bored. "Just making sure no one was
attempting some deceptive tactic. It seems I've lost contact with my own agent
in your party. And that always arouses my suspicious nature:"
"Agent?"
Manny asked.
"Spy,"
Kouwe said from the end of the row of prisoners. "Richard Zane."
"Indeed:"
Favre turned toward the tree and raised the radio to this mouth. "Nate, if
you can hear me, stay put. We'll be coming over to join you.
There
was no answer.
Manny
hoped somehow Nate had fled with Kelly. But in his heart, he knew Kelly would
never leave her brother's side. All of them must still be hiding in the ancient
tree.
As the
Frenchman stared at the white-barked giant, his eyes narrowed. After a moment,
he swung back and focused on Manny again. "That leaves me only to address
the insult upon my lady here:"
The
stubby Uzi again was raised in his direction.
"Not
very gentlemanly of you, Monsieur Azevedo:"
Favre
pulled the trigger. Shots rattled and sprayed out.
Manny
winced, but not a bullet struck him.
A
grunt sounded behind him. The guard at his back collapsed intb view, his upper
body riddled. He lay on the ground, gasping like a beached fish. Blood poured
out from his mouth and nose.
Favre
lowered his weapon. Manny stared up at the Frenchman. Favre cocked one eyebrow.
"It's not you I blame. Brail should have minded you better. He should
never have left that damn whip at your side. Sloppy, sloppy work:" Louis
shook his head. "Two lieutenants gone in the same number of days:"
He
turned away and waved his weapon. "Bring the prisoners." He strode
toward the Yagga. "I'm done chasing after Carl's boy. Let's see if we can
coax the shy fellow to come out and join us:"
1 1:09
A.M.
Nate
hid in the shadow of the Yagga's buttress root. Smoke clouded the glade. He
heard intermittent gunfire and muffled shouts from the direction of the
nightcap oak. What was going on?
The
only object within sight inside the glade was the cratered husk of his father's
log cabin. A mingled sense of dread and despair settled over his body like a
shroud. Then, like ghosts from a grave, figures appeared out of the smoke,
shadowy and vague.
He
slipped deeper into the root's shadow, leveling his shotgun in their direction.
Slowly, with each step, the apparitions took form and substance. He recognized
Manny and Kouwe in the lead, guarding Anna between them. Kostos and Camera
flanked them, a step behind. Even the tribesman, Dakii, marched with them.
Blood
stained all of them and they walked with their hands behind their backs,
stumbling, prodded from behind by shadowy figures. As they approached, the
others grew clearer: men in a mix of military and jungle fatigues. They had
weapons of every ilk pointed at his friends.
Nate
aimed down the barrel of his shotgun. A useless weapon against these odds,
these numbers. He needed another plan. But for now, he only had stealth and
shadows.
His
teammates were drawn to a stop by their guards.
A man
dressed all in white lifted a small bullhorn to his lips. "Nathan
hand!" he bellowed, aiming for the Yagga's treetop. "Show yourself!
Come out freely or your friends will pay for your absence. I will give you two
minutes!"
His
teammates and the Indian were forced to their knees.
Nate
lowered himself further into hiding. Without a doubt, the man out there was the
leader of these mercenaries, a Frenchman judging from his accent. The man
glanced at his watch, then back up to the treetop, tapping a toe impatiently.
He clearly thought Nate was still in the upper bowers, relying on the last bit
of intelligence from his dead spy.
Nate
wavered. Show himself or flee? Should he take his chances in the woods? Perhaps
try to get around behind the soldiers? Nate mentally shook his head. He was no
guerrilla warrior.
"Thirty
seconds, Nathan!" the man roared through the bullhorn.
A tiny
voice echoed down from above. "Nate's not up here! He left!"
It was
Kelly!
The
Frenchman lowered his bullhorn. "Lies," he muttered under his breath.
Kouwe
spoke up from where he knelt. "Dr. Favre . . . a word with you,
please:"
Nate
found his fingers tightening on his shotgun, instantly recognizing the name. He
had heard tales from his father about the atrocities attributed to Louis Favre.
He was the bogeyman of the Amazon, a devil whispered about among the tribes, a
monster banished from the region by his own father. But now here again.
"What
is it, Professor?" Favre asked with irritation.
"That
was Kelly O'Brien. She's with her injured brother. If she says Nate's not up
there, then he's not:"
Favre
frowned and checked his watch. "We'll see:" He raised his bullhorn.
"Ten seconds!" He then held out a palm, and a wicked weapon was
handed to him: a curved machete as long as a scythe. Even in the smoky
sunshine, it shone brightly-freshly sharpened.
Favre
leaned and placed the curve of the blade under Anna Fong's neck, then lifted
the bullhorn. "Time is running out, Nathan! I've been generous giving you
an initial two minutes. From here on out, every minute will cost a friend's
life. Come out now, and all will be spared! This I swear as a gentleman and a
Frenchman:" Favre counted the last seconds. "Five . . . four. .
."
Nathan
struggled for some plan . . . anything. He knew Louis Favre's sworn word was
worthless.
Three
. . . two. . .
He had
seconds to come up with an alternative to submission.
"One.
. ."
He
found none.
"Zero!"
Nathan
rose out of his hiding place. He stepped out with his shotgun over his head.
"You win!" he called back.
Favre
straightened from his crouch over Anna, one eyebrow raised. "Oh, mon pent
homme, how you startled me! What were you doing down here all along?"
Tears
flowed down Anna's stricken face.
Nate
threw his shotgun away. "You win," he said again. Soldiers trotted
around to circle him.
Favre
smiled. "So I always do:" His lips turned from amused to feral.
Before
anyone could react, Favre twisted from the hip and swung the machete with all
the force of his arm and back.
Blood
flumed upward.
His
victim's head was shorn clean off at the neck.
"Manny!"
Nate cried out, falling to his knees, then his hands.
His
friend's body collapsed backward.
Anna
screamed, swooning into Kouwe's side.
With
his back to Nate, Favre faced the shock and dismay of the other prisoners.
"Please, did any of you truly think I'd let Monsieur Azevedo strike my
love without recourse? Mon Dieu! Where's your chivalry?"
Beyond
the kneeling line, Nate saw the Indian woman touch a gash on her cheek.
Favre
then turned back around to face Nate. His white outfit was now decorated with a
crimson sash of Manny's blood. The monster tapped his wristwatch and waggled a
finger at him. "And, Nathan, the count did reach zero. You were late. Fair
is fair."
Nathan
hung his head, sagging toward the ground. "Manny. . :'
Somewhere
in the distance, a feline howl pierced the morning, echoing over the valley.
CHAPTER
SEVENTEEN
Cure
AUGUST
1 7, 4:1 6 PM.
AMAZON
JUNGLE
Louis
surveyed the final preparations in the valley. He carried his soiled field
jacket over one arm, his shirtsleeves rolled up. The afternoon turned out to be
a scorcher-but it would get hotter here, much hotter. He smiled grimly,
satisfied, as he stared over the ruins of the village.
A Colombian
soldier named Mask snapped to attention at his approach. The fellow, standing
well over six feet, was as lethal as he was tall. A former bodyguard for the
captain of a drug cartel, the swarthy man had taken a face full of acid
protecting his boss. His skin was a boiled mass of scar tissue on one side. He
had been fired afterward by his ungrateful ward, too ugly and too awful a
reminder of how close death had come. Louis, on the other hand, respected the
man's show of stalwart loyalty. He made an excellent replacement for Brail.
"Mask,"
Louis said, acknowledging the man, "how much longer until all the charges
are set in the valley?"
"Half
an hour," his new lieutenant answered sharply.
Louis
nodded and glanced at his watch. Time was critical, but everything was on
schedule. If that Russian hadn't gotten that damned GPS working and a signal
transmitted, Louis would have had more time to enjoy his victory here.
Sighing,
Louis surveyed the field before him. There were eighteen prisoners in all, on
their knees, hog-tied with their hands behind their backs and secured to their
crossed ankles behind them. A loop of rope ran from the bindings and encircled
their necks. A strangler's wrap. Struggle against your knots and the noose
tightened around your neck.
He
watched a few of the prisoners already gasping as the ropes dug deep. The
others sat sweating and bleeding under the hot sun.
Louis
noticed Mask still standing at his side. "And the village has been
scoured?" he asked. "There are no more of the Ban-ali?"
"None
living, sir."
The
village had numbered over a hundred. Now they were just one more lost tribe.
"How
about the valley? Has it been thoroughly scouted?"
"Yes,
Sir. The only way onto or off this plateau is the chasm:"
"Very
good," Louis said. He had already known this from torturing the Ban-ali
scout last night, but he had wanted to be sure. "Do one last sweep through
all stations. I want to be out of here no later than five o'clock:"
Mask
nodded and turned smartly away. He strode swiftly toward the giant central
tree.
Louis
followed him with his eyes. At the tree, two small steel drums were being
rolled out of the trunk's tunnel. After the valley had been secured, men with
axes and awls had hiked up inside the tree, set deep taps into the trunk, and
drained large quantities of the priceless sap. As the men pushed the drums into
the field, Louis studied another team laboring around the base of the giant
Yagga tree. His eyes narrowed.
Everything
was running with a clockwork precision. Louis would have it no other way.
Satisfied,
he strode over to the line of segregated prisoners, the survivors of the Ranger
team, baking and burning under the sun. They sat slightly apart from the
remaining members of the Ban-ali tribe.
Louis
stared at his catch, slightly disappointed that they hadn't offered more of a
challenge. The two Rangers glared back at him murderously. The small Asian
anthropologist had calmed significantly, eyes closed, lips moving in prayer,
resigned. Kouwe sat stoically. Louis stopped in front of the last prisoner in
the lineup.
Nathan
Rand's gaze was as hard as the Rangers; but there was a glint of something
more. A vein of icy determination.
Louis
had a hard time maintaining eye contact with the man, but he refused to look
away. In Nathan's face, he saw a shadow of the man's father: the sandy hair,
the planes of the cheek, the shape of his nose. But this was not Carl Rand. And
to Louis's surprise, this disappointed him. The satisfaction he had expected to
feel at having Carl's son kneeling at his feet was hollow.
In
fact, he found himself somewhat respecting the young man. Throughout the
journey here, Nathan had demonstrated both ingenuity and a stout heart, even
dispatching Louis's spy. And finally, here at the end, he had proven his loyalty,
with a willingness to sacrifice his own life for his team. Admirable qualities,
even if they were directed at cross purposes to Louis's own.
But
finally, it was those eyes, as hard as polished stone. He had clearly known
inconsolable grief and somehow survived. Louis remembered his elderly friend
from the bar back at his hotel in French Guiana, the survivor of the Devil's
Island penal system. Louis pictured the old man sipping his neat bourbons. The
chap had the same eyes. These were not Carl Rand's eyes, his father's eyes.
Here was a different man.
"What
are you going to do with us?" Nate said. It was not a plea, but a simple
question.
Louis
removed a handkerchief from his pocket and wiped his brow. "I swore as a
gentleman that I wouldn't kill you or your friends. And I will honor my word:'
Nate's
eyes narrowed.
"I'll
leave your deaths to the U.S. military," he said sadly, the emotion
surprisingly unfeigned.
"What
do you mean?" Nate asked suspiciously.
Louis
shook his head and took two steps to reach Sergeant Kostos. "I think that
question should be answered by your companion here:"
"I
don't know what you're talking about," Kostos said with a glower.
Louis
bent down at the waist and stared into the sergeant's face. "Really . . ,
are you saying Captain Waxman didn't confide in his staff sergeant?"
Kostos
glanced away.
"What
is he talking about?" Nate asked, directing the question to the sergeant.
"We're well past secrets now, Kostos. If you know something . . :"
The
sergeant finally spoke, awkward with shame. "The napalm mini-bombs. We
were under orders to find the source of the miraculous compound. Once a sample
was secured, we were to destroy the source. Total annihilation:'
Louis
straightened, enjoying the shocked expressions on the others' faces. Even the
female Ranger looked surprised. It seemed the military liked to keep its
secrets to only a select few.
Raising
an arm, Louis pointed back to the small group of men gathered around the giant
tree. They were his own demolitions team. Against the white bark of the trunk,
the Rangers' remaining nine minibombs appeared like flat black eyes peering
toward them. "Thanks to the U.S. government, there's enough firepower here
to wipe out even a giant monster of a tree like this one:"
Kostos
hung his head, as well he should.
"So
you see," Louis said, "our two missions are not so different. Only
who benefits-the U.S. military complex or a French pharmaceutical company.
Which in turn raises the question, who would do the greater good with the
knowledge?" He shrugged. "Who can say? But conversely, we might
ask-who would do the greater harm?" Louis eyed the sergeant. "And I
think we can all answer that one:"
A
distinct quiet settled over the group.
Nate
finally spoke. "What about Kelly and Frank?"
Ali,
the missing members of the group . . . Louis was not surprised it was Nate who
brought up the question. "Don't worry about their health. They'll be
coming with my party," Louis explained. "I've been in contact with my
financiers. Monsieur O'Brien will prove an ideal guinea pig to investigate this
regenerative process. The scientists at St. Savin are itching to get their
hands and instruments on him:"
"And
Kelly?"
"Mademoiselle
O'Brien will be coming along to make sure her brother cooperates:"
Nathan
paled.
During
the discourse, Louis had noticed Nate's gaze flick toward the tree. He waved an
arm back to the giant. "The timers are set for three hours from now. Eight
o'clock, to be precise," Louis said. He knew everyone here had seen the
force of a single napalm bomb. Multiplied by nine, he watched the hopelessness
settle into their faces.
Louis
continued, "We've also seeded other incendiary bombs throughout the
canyon, including the chasm leading up here, which we'll explode as soon as we
vacate the area. We couldn't risk the possibility that we missed an Indian
hidden up here who might free you. And I'm afraid, tied up or not, there's no
escape. This entire isolated valley will become one mighty firestorm-destroying
all remnants of the miracle sap and acting as a bonfire in the night to attract
any helicopters winging this way. A fiery diversion to cover our flight:"
The
utter defeat in their eyes shone dully.
Louis
smiled. "As you can see, it's all well planned:"
Behind
him, Louis's lieutenant approached briskly and stopped at his shoulder. The
Colombian ignored the prisoners as if they were mere sheep.
"Yes,
Mask?"
"All
is in order. We can evacuate at your word:'
"You
have it:" Louis glanced again at the line of men and women. "I'm
afraid duty calls. I must bid you all a fond adieu:'
Turning
away, Louis felt a twinge of satisfaction, knowing that it was ultimately the
young man's father, Carl Rand, who had truly brought his proud son to his doom.
Following in his father's footsteps . . .
He
hoped the old man was watching from hell.
4:55
PM.
Nate
knelt with the others, beaten and crushed by the news. He watched dully as the
camp organized for their departure.
Kouwe
spoke at his shoulder. "Favre has placed all this faith in the Yagga's
sap:"
Nate
turned his head, careful of the noose around his neck. "What does it
matter now?"
"He
expects it to cure the contagion, like it does physical wounds, but we've no
proof it can:"
Nate
shrugged. "What do you want us to do?"
"Tell
him," Kouwe said.
"And
help him? Why?"
"It's
not him I'm trying to help. It's all those out in the world dying of the
disease. The cure to the contagion lies here. I feel it. And he's going to
destroy it, wiping out any chance to stop the curse of the Ban-ali. We must try
to warn him:'
Nate
frowned. In his mind, he saw Manny's murder . . . his friend's body falling to
the dirt. He understood in his mind what Kouwe was suggesting, but he just
couldn't get his heart to go along with it.
"He
won't listen anyway," Nate said, seeking some compromise between heart and
mind, some justification for remaining silent. "Favre's operating under a
strict timetable. He has another six to eight hours at the most before a
military response is mustered. All he can do is plunder what he can and run:"
"We
must make him listen," Kouwe insisted.
Raised
voices echoed to them from the Yagga. Both men glanced toward the tunnel in the
trunk. A pair of mercenaries strode out with a stretcher between them. Nate
recognized their own makeshift travois and Frank tied on top. He was bound like
a trussed pig, ready for the spit.
Next
came Kelly, walking on her own, her hands tied behind her back. She shuffled
beside Favre and his naked Indian mistress. They were all trailed by additional
gunmen.
"You
don't know what you're doing!" Kelly argued loudly. "We don't know if
the sap can cure anything!"
Nate
heard their own argument from a moment ago.
Louis
shrugged. "St. Savin will have paid me long before it's ever discovered if
you're right or not. They'll look at your brother's legs-or what's left of
them-and shovel the contracted millions into my account:"
"What
about all those dying? The children, the elderly."
"What
do I care? My grandparents are already dead. And I have no children."
Kelly
blustered hotly, then her eyes fell on the group of her friends. Her face
crinkled in confusion. She glanced ahead to the trail of thirty or so men
marching out of the valley, then back at the group of prisoners.
"What's
going on?" she asked.
"Oh,
your friends . . . they'll be staying here."
Kelly
stared at the ring of explosives set around the tree, then over to them, her
eyes settling on Nate. "You . . . You can't just leave them here:"
"I
can;" Louis said. "I certainly can:'
She
stumbled to a stop, her voice soft with tears. "At least, let me say
good-bye:"
Louis
sighed with dramatic exasperation. "Fine. But make it quick." He took
Kelly by the upper arm and guided her out of line, accompanied by his mistress
and four armed guards.
Louis
shoved her in front of them.
Nate's
heart ached at seeing her. It would've been better if she had simply continued
past them.
Tears
rolled down her face. Kelly shuffled before each of them and said how sorry she
was-as if all this were her fault. Nate barely listened, drinking up the sight
of her with his eyes, knowing this would be the last time he ever saw her. She
bent and placed her cheek against Professor Kouwe's, then moved to Nate at the
end of the line.
She
stared down at him, then dropped to her knees. "Nate. . :'
"Hush,"
he said with a sad smile, the word a secret reminder of their night together.
"Hush:"
Fresh
tears flowed. "I heard about Manny," she said. "I'm so
sorry."
Nate
closed his eyes and bowed his head. "If you get a chance," he said
under his breath, "kill that French bastard:"
She
leaned into him, sliding her cheek next to his. "I promise," she
whispered at his ear, like a lover sharing a secret.
He
turned his face and met her lips, not caring who saw. He kissed her one last
time. She met his kiss, gasping between their joined lips.
Then
she was torn away, yanked to her feet by Favre. He had a hand clenched around
her arm. "It would seem you two have been sharing more than just a
professional relationship," he said with a sneer.
Favre
whipped Kelly around and kissed her hard on the mouth. She cried out in
surprise and shock. Louis released her, throwing her back toward the Indian
woman. Blood dripped from his lip.
Kelly
had bitten him.
He
wiped his chin. "Don't worry, Nathan. I'll take good care of your woman:"
He glanced back to Kelly and his mistress. "Tshui and I will make sure her
stay with us is an enjoyable one. Won't we, Tshui?"
The
Indian witch leaned closer to their prisoner and fingered a curl o' Kelly's
auburn hair, sniffing at it.
"See,
Nathan. Tshui is already intrigued:'
375
Nate
struggled to lunge at the man, fighting his bonds. "You bastard," he
hissed, choking as the strangle noose tightened.
"Calm
yourself, my boy." Louis stepped back, putting an arm around Kelly.
"She's in good hands:"
Tears
of frustration rolled down his face. His breath was a ragged gasp as the noose
dug into the flesh of his neck. Still he struggled. He would die anyway. What
did it matter if he strangled or burned?
Louis
glanced down at him sadly, then dragged Kelly away. The man mumbled as he left,
"A shame . . . such a nice boy, but so much tragedy in his life:"
Nate
began to see stars dancing at the edges of his blackening vision.
Kouwe
hissed at Nate. "Stop struggling, Nate."
"Why?"
he gasped.
"Where
there is life, there is hope:"
Nate
sagged in his bonds, not so much finding significance in the professor's words
as simple defeat. His breathing became incrementally easier. He stared after
the retreating mercenary band, but his eyes stayed focused on Kelly. She
glanced back one time, just before disappearing into the jungle fringe. Then
she was gone.
The
group remained silent, except for a mumbled prayer from Anna. Behind them, a
few of the Indian prisoners had begun to sing a mournful melody, while others simply
cried. They continued to sit, with no hope, baking under the sun as it trailed
toward the western horizon. With each breath or sob, their deaths drew nearer.
"Why
didn't he just shoot us?" Sergeant Kostos mumbled.
"It's
not Favre's way;" Professor Kouwe answered. "He wants us to
appreciate our deaths. A slow torture. It excites the bastard."
Nate
closed his eyes, defeated.
After
an hour, a huge explosion shattered off to the south. Nate opened his eyes and
watched a thick column of smoke and rock dust blast into the sky.
"They
blew the chasm," Camera said at the other end of the line.
Nate
turned away. The explosion echoed for a few seconds, then died away. All of
them now waited for one last explosion, the one that would take their lives and
burn through the valley.
As
silence again descended over them, Nate heard a distinctive cough from the
forest's edge. A Jaguar's cough.
Kouwe
glanced over to Nate.
"Tor-tor?"
Nate asked, experiencing a twinge of hope.
From
the jungle's edge, a jaguar pushed into the open glade. But it was not the
spotted face of their friend's pet.
The
huge black jaguar slunk into the open, sniffing, lips pulled back in a silent
and hungry snarl.
5:35
1?M.
Kelly
walked beside Frank's stretcher. The two bearers seemed tireless, marching
through the jungles of the lower canyon like muscled robots. Kelly, with no
burden except for her heavy heart, found her feet stumbling over every root and
branch.
Favre
had set a hard pace for the group. He wanted to reach the swamp lake and
disappear into the forests south of it before the fiery explosion ripped
through the upper canyon.
"After
that, the military will be flocking there like flies on shit," Favre had
warned. "We must be well gone:"
Kelly
had also eavesdropped on the chatter among the mercenary grunts, spoken in a
patois of Portuguese and Spanish. Favre had radioed ahead and arranged for
motor boats to meet them at a river only a day's march from here. Once there,
they would quickly speed away.
But
first they had to get to the rendezvous spot without getting caught-and that
meant speed was essential. Favre would brook no laggers, including Kelly. The
monster had confiscated Manny's bullwhip, snapping it periodically as he moved
through the line, like a slavemaster overseeing his crew. Kelly already had a
taste of its stinging touch, when she had fallen to her knees as the chasm had
exploded behind them. She had been so wrung with hopelessness, she had not been
able to move. Then fire had lit her shoulder. The whip had split her shirt and
stung her skin. She knew better than to falter from that point on.
Frank
spoke from his stretcher. "Kelly. . :'
She
leaned down toward him.
"We'll
get out of this," he said, slurring. Despite her brother's earlier
protests, she had given him a jolt of Demerol before being transported from the
Yagga's healing ward. She hadn't wanted him to suffer by their manhandling.
"We'll make it:"
Kelly
nodded, wishing her arms were untied so she could hold her brother's hand. But
under the blanket, even Frank's limbs were secured by ropes to the stretcher.
Frank
continued with his bleary attempt at consoling her. "Nate . . . and the
others . . . they'll find a way to break free . . . rescue. . :"His words
drifted into a morphine haze.
Kelly
glanced behind them. The sky was mostly blocked by the canopy overhead, but she
could still spot the smudge of smoke from the explosion, closing off the upper
valley from the lower. She hadn't told her brother about the incendiary devices
set throughout the primitive forest. They could expect no help from their old
teammates.
Kelly
eyed Favre's back as he marched ahead.
Her
only hope now was for revenge.
She
intended to keep her promise to Nate.
She
would kill Louis Favre . . . or die trying.
5:58
PM.
Nate watched
the giant black jaguar stalk into the open glade. It was alone. Nate recognized
it as the leader of the pack, the sly female. She must have somehow survived
Louis's mass poisoning and instinctively returned to the valley of her birth.
Sergeant
Kostos groaned under his breath, "This day just gets better and
better."
The
great beast eyed the bound prisoners, ready-packed meals. Without the repellent
black powder, even the Ban-ali were at risk. The black feline god, created by
the Yagga to protect them, had just turned feral.
The
beast crept toward them, low to the ground, tail flicking.
Then a
flash of fire drew Nate's attention over the cat's muscled shoulder. Tor-tor
loped out of the jungle in its shadow. Showing no sign of fear, Tor-tor raced
past the larger cat and rushed at Nate and the others.
Nate
was knocked on his side by the cat's show of exuberance. With his master dead,
Tor-tor was clearly relieved to rejoin them, seeking consolation, reassurance.
Nate
choked on his tightening noose. "Th . . . That's a good boy,
Tor-tor:"
The
large black cat hung back, watching the strange display.
Tor-tor
rolled against him, wanting a pet, something to let him know all was okay.
Nate, tied up, couldn't comply-but an idea formed.
Nate
rolled around, earning a further twist of his noose, and held the ropes out
toward the jaguar. Tor-tor sniffed at his bindings. "Bite through
them," Nate urged, shaking his bound wrists. "Then I'll pet you, you
big furry lug:"
Tor-tor
licked Nate's hand, then nosed him in the shoulder.
Nate
groaned with frustration. Nate glanced over his shoulder. The giant black cat
padded over to him and nudged Tor-tor aside with a small growl.
Nate
froze.
The
monster sniffed at the hand that Tor-tor had licked, then gazed up at Nate with
those penetrating black eyes. He was sure it could smell the abject fear in the
man curled at its feet.
Nate
remembered how it had torn Frank's limbs off in a single swooping attack.
The
jaguar lowered its head to Nate's arms and legs. A rumble sounded through it.
Nate felt a fierce tug and was lifted off the ground, strangling in the noose.
For a momentary flash, Nate wondered if he would be strangled before being
eaten. He prayed for the former.
Instead,
Nate found himself dropped back to the ground. He cringed a moment, then
realized his arms were loose. Taking advantage of the opportunity, Nate rolled
away with a kick and a twist. He sat up, glancing to the severed ropes dangling
from his wrists. The cat had freed him.
Nate
yanked at the constricting noose.
The
large black jaguar watched him. Tor-tor brushed the giant cap flank, a clear
display of affection, and crossed to Nate.
After
working free the noose, Nate tossed it aside. His ankles were still bound, but
before he could free his legs, he had a friend to thank.
Tor-tor
shoved into him, bowing his furry head into Nate's chest.
He
scratched that special spot behind both ears, earning a rumbled purr of
satisfaction. "That's a good boy . . . you did good:"
A
small sad whine flowed from the cat.
Nate
pulled Tor-tor's head up and stared into those golden eyes. "I loved
Manny, too," Nate whispered.
Tor-tor
nuzzled his face, snuffling.
Nate
endured it, making small soothing sounds to the cat. Eventually Tor-tor backed
a step away. Nate was able to free his ankles.
Beyond
Tor-tor, the giant black jaguar sat on its haunches. Tor-tor must have run into
the female after Manny's death. He must have directed her here. Manny had been
proven right a couple nights back. Some bond must have developed between the
two young cats. Perhaps the ties had grown even deeper by their shared grief.
Tor-tor for his master, the female for her pack.
Nate
stood and freed Kouwe. Together they unbound the others. Nate found himself
untying the ropes from Dakii's limbs. Here was the Indian scout who had been
principally responsible for sending the piranhas and locusts upon their party.
But Nate could no longer touch his old anger. The Indian had only been
protecting his people-and as it turned out, rightly so. Nate helped Dakii up,
staring at the smoky ruins of the village. Who were the true monsters of the
jungle?
Dakii
hugged Nate tightly.
"Don't
thank me yet;" Nate said. Around the glade, the other Indians were being
untied, but Nate focused on the booby-trapped tree with its nine napalm bombs
chained around its trunk.
Sergeant
Kostos passed by, rubbing his chafed wrists. "I'm going to see about
disarming the charges. Camera's off to see if she can find the weapon she
hid:"
Nate
nodded. Nearby, the freed Ban-ali gathered around the two jaguars. Both cats
were now lounging in the shade, seemingly oblivious to the audience. But Nate
noticed the larger female watching everything through slitted eyes. The cat was
not letting its guard down.
Anna
and Kouwe stepped over to join him. "We're free, but what now?" the
professor asked.
Note
shook his head.
Anna
crossed her arms.
"What's
wrong?" Nate asked, noticing her deeply furrowed brow.
"Richard
Zane. If we ever get out of this mess, I'm quitting Tellux."
Note
smiled despite their situation. "I'll be right behind you with my own
letter of resignation."
After
a bit, Sergeant Kostos strode back to them, wearing his usual scowl. "The
bombs are all hardwired and booby-trapped. I can't stop the detonation sequence
or remove the devices:'
"There's
nothing you can do?" Kouwe asked.
The
Ranger shook his head. "I have to give that French bastard's team some
credit. They did a great job, damn them:'
"How
much time?" Anna asked.
"Just
under two hours. The digital timers are set to blow at eight o'clock:"
Note
frowned at the tree. "Then we'll either have to find another way out of
this valley or seek some type of shelter:'
"Forget
shelter," Kostos said. "We need to be as fucking far from here as
possible when those babies blow. Even without the additional incendiaries
placed by Favre's men, those nine napalmers are enough to fry this entire
plateau:"
Note
took him at his word. "Where's Dakii? Maybe he knows another way out of
here:"
Kouwe
pointed to the entrance to the Yagga. "He went to check on the status of
his shaman:"
Note
nodded, remembering the poor man who had been shot in the gut by Zane.
"Let's go see if Dakii knows anything helpful:"
Kouwe
and Anna followed him.
Sergeant
Kostos waved them on. "I'll keep examining the bombs. See if I can come up
with anything:"
Once
inside the tree's entrance, Nate again was struck by the scent, musky and
sweet. They followed the blue handprints up the tunnel.
Kouwe
marched at Note's side. "I know escape is foremost on everyone's mind, but
what about the contagious disease?"
"If
there's a way out," Nate said, "we'll collect as many plant specimens
as time allows. That's all we can do. We'll have to hope we stumble on the
correct one:"
Kouwe
looked pensive, not satisfied with Nate's answer, but had no other rebuttal. A
cure discovered here would do the world no good if they themselves didn't
survive.
As
they continued to wend their way up the tree, the sound of footfalls echoed
down to them. Nate glanced to Kouwe. Someone was coming.
Dakii
suddenly appeared around the corner, winded and wide-eyed. He was startled to
find them in front of him. He spoke rapidly in his own tongue. Even Kouwe
couldn't entirely follow it.
"Slow
down," Nate said.
Dakii
grabbed Nate's arm. "Son of wishwa, you come:" He tugged Nate toward
the upper tunnel.
"Is
your shaman okay?"
Dakii
bobbed his head. "He live. But sick . . . very big sick."
"Take
us to him," Nate said.
The
Indian was clearly relieved. They hurried up at a half trot. In a short time,
the group entered the healing ward at the top.
Nate
spotted the shaman in one of the hammocks. He was alive but did not look well.
His skin was yellowish and shone with fever sweat. Very big sick, indeed.
As
they approached, the prone man sat up, though clearly it pained him immensely
to do so. The shaman waved to Dakii, ordering him across the room on an errand,
then stared at Nate. He was glassy-eyed but lucid.
Nate
noticed the ropes lying on the floor under the hammock. Even gravely injured,
the man had been bound by Favre.
The
shaman pointed at Nate. "You wishwa . . . like father:"
Nate
opened his mouth to say no. He was certainly no shaman. But Kouwe interrupted.
"Tell him yes," the professor urged.
Nate
slowly nodded, obeying Kouwe's instinct.
The
response clearly relieved the suffering man. "Good," the shaman said.
Dakii
returned, burdened with a leather satchel and a pair of footlong lengths of
reed. He held the gear out to his leader, but the shaman was too weak. He
directed Dakii from his hammock.
Obeying,
Dakii lifted the pouch.
"A
dried jaguar scrotum," Kouwe said, pointing to the pouch.
"All
the rage in Paris," Nate grumbled.
Dakii
fingered open the pouch. Inside was a crimson powder. The shaman spoke from the
bed, instructing.
Kouwe
translated, though Nate caught a word here and there. "He describes the
powder as all ne Yagga:"
Nate
understood. "Blood of the Mother."
Kouwe
glanced at Nate as Dakii tamped some of the powder into the tips of the two
straws. "You know what's about to happen, don't you?"
Nate
could certainly guess. "It's like the Yanomamo drug epena." Over the
years, he had worked with various Yanomamo tribes and been invited to
participate in epena ceremonies. Epena, translated as "semen of the
sun," was a hallucinogenic drug Yanomamo shamans used to enter the spirit
world. It was strong stuff, fabled to bring the hekura, or little men of the
forest, to teach medicine to a shaman. When Nate had tried the stuff, all he
had ever experienced was a severe headache followed by swirls of color.
Furthermore, he was not particularly fond of the drug's delivery system. It was
snuffed up the nose.
Dakii
handed one of the loaded straws to Nate and one to the shaman. The Ban-ali
leader waved Nate to kneel beside the hammock.
Nate
obeyed.
Kouwe
cautioned him, "The shaman knows he's about to die. What he is offering is
more than a casual ritual. I think he's passing the mantle of his
responsibility to you, for the tribe, for the village, for the tree:"
"I
can't take that on," Nate said, glancing back at Kouwe.
"You
must. Once you're shaman, the tribe's secrets will be open to you. Do you
understand what that means?"
Nate
took a deep breath and nodded. "The cure:"
"Exactly."
Nate
stepped to the hammock and knelt.
The
shaman showed Nate what to do, but it was similar to the Yanomamos' ritual. The
small man positioned the drug-loaded end of his reed straw to his own nose.
Then motioned for Nate to bring his lips to the other end. Nate's job was to
blow the drug up the other's nose. He, in turn, positioned his own straw to his
left nostril. The shaman brought the other end to his mouth. Through the
straws, the two men would simultaneously blow the drug into each other's
sinuses.
The
shaman lifted an arm. They both took a deep breath.
Here
we go . . .
The
Indian brought his arm down.
Nate
exhaled sharply through the reed, while bracing for the jolt to his own
sinuses. Before he even finished blowing on his end of the straw, the drug hit
him.
Nate
fell backward. A burning flame seared into his skull, followed by a blinding
explosion of pain. It felt as if someone had blown the back of his head off. He
gasped as the room spun. The sense of vertigo overwhelmed him. A pit opened in
his mind, and he was falling. He tumbled, spinning away into a darkness that
was somehow bright at the same time.
Distantly
he heard his name called, but he couldn't find his mouth to speak.
Suddenly
his falling body shattered through something solid in this otherworld. The
darkness fragmented around him like broken glass. Midnight shards fell away and
disappeared. What was left was a shadow shaped into a stylized tree. It
appeared to be rising from a dark hill.
Nate
hovered before it. As he stared, details emerged. The tree developed
three-dimensional conformations, tiny midnight leaves, tiered branches,
clustered nut pods.
The
Yagga.
Then,
from beyond the hill's edge, small figures marched into view, all in a line,
heading up the slope to the tree.
The
hekura, Nate guessed dreamily.
But
like the tree, the figures grew in detail as Nate floated nearby, and he
realized he was mistaken. Instead of little men, the line was a mix of animals
of every ilk-monkeys, sloths, rats, crocodiles, jaguars, and some Nate couldn't
identify. Interspersed among these darkly silhouetted animals were men and
women, but Nate knew these weren't the hekura. The entire party marched up to
the tree-and into it. The shadowy figures merged with the black form of the
tree.
Where
had they gone? Was he supposed to follow?
Then,
from the other side of the tree, the figures reemerged. But they had
transformed. They were no longer in shadow, but glowing with a brilliant
radiance. The shining troupe spread to circle the tree. Man and beast.
Protecting the Mother.
As
Nate hovered, he sensed the passage of time accelerate. He watched the men and
women occasionally wander back to the tree as their radiance dimmed. They would
eat the fruit of the tree and shine anew, refreshed to take their place again
in the circle of Yagga's children. The ritual repeated over and over again.
Like a
worn record, the image began to fade, repeating still, but growing dimmer and
dimmer-until there was only darkness again.
"Nate?"
a voice called to him.
Who?
Nate sought the speaker. But all he found was darkness.
"Nate,
can you hear me?"
Yes,
but where are you?
"Squeeze
my hand if you can hear me."
Nate
drew toward the voice, seeking it out of the darkness.
"Good,
Nate. Now open your eyes:'
He
struggled to obey.
"Don't
fight it . . . just open your eyes."
Again
the darkness shattered, and Nate was blinded by brilliance and light. He
gasped, sucking in huge gulps of air. His head throbbed with pain. Through
tears, he saw the face of his friend leaning over him, cradling his head.
"Nate?"
He
coughed and nodded.
"How
do you feel?"
"How
do you think I feel?" Nate wobbled up from the floor.
"What
did you experience?" Kouwe asked. "You were mumbling:"
"And
drooling," Anna added, kneeling beside him.
Nate
wiped his mouth. "Hypersalivation . . . an alkaloid hallucinogen:"
"What did you see?" Kouwe asked.
Nate
shook his head. A mistake. The headache flared worse. "How long have I
been out?"
"About
ten minutes," the professor said.
"Ten
minutes?" It had felt like hours, if not days.
"What
happened?"
"I
think I was just shown the cure to the disease," Nate said.
Kouwe's
eyes widened. "What?"
Nate
explained what he saw. "From the dream, it's clear that the nuts of this
tree are vital to the health of the humans in the tribe. The animals don't need
it, but people do:"
Kouwe
nodded, his eyes narrowed as he digested what was said. "So it's the nut
pods:" The professor pondered a bit longer, then spoke slowly. "From
your father's research, we know the tree's sap is full of mutating
proteins-prions with the ability to enhance each species it encounters, making
them better protectors of the tree. But such a boon must come with a high cost.
The tree doesn't want its children to abandon it, so it built a fail-safe into
its enhancements. Animals are probably given some instinct to remain in the
area, something to do with territoriality, something that can be manipulated as
needed, like the powders used with the locusts and piranhas. But humans, with
our intellect, need firmer bonds to bind us to the tree. The humans must eat
from the fruit on a regular basis to keep the mutating prions in check. The
milk of the nut must contain some form of an antiprion, something that
suppresses the virulent form of the disease:"
Anna
looked sick. "So the Ban-ali have not stayed here out of obligation, but
enslavement"
Kouwe
rubbed his temples. "Ban-yi. Slave. The term was not an exaggeration. Once
exposed to the prions, you can't leave or you'll die. Without the fruit, the
prion reverts to its virulent form and attacks the immune system, triggering
deadly fevers or riotous cancers:"
"Jekyll
and Hyde," Nate mumbled.
Kouwe
and Anna glanced to him.
Nate
explained, "It's like what Kelly reported about the nature of prions. In
one form, they're benign, but they can also bend into a new shape and become
virulent, like mad cow disease:"
Kouwe
nodded. "The nut milk must keep the prion suppressed in the beneficial
form . . . but once you stop using the milk, it attacks, killing the host and
spreading to everyone the host encounters. This again would serve the tree's
end. Clearly the tree wants to keep its privacy. If someone flees, anyone the
escapee encounters would sicken and die, leaving a trail of death:"
"With
no one left to tell the tale," Nate said.
"Exactly"
Nate
felt well enough to try to stand. Kouwe helped him up. "But the bigger
question is why I dreamed up the answer in the first place. Was it just my own
subconscious working out the problem, unfettered by the hallucinogenic drug? Or
did the shaman communicate it to me somehow..
some
form of drug-induced telepathy?"
Kouwe's
face tightened. "No," he said firmly and pointed to the ham mock.
"It wasn't the shaman:"
The
Indian lay in his hammock, staring up at the ceiling. Blood dripped from both
his nostrils. He was not breathing. Dakii knelt beside his leader, head bowed.
"He
died immediately. A massive stroke from the look of it." Kouwe glanced to
Nate. "Whatever you experienced didn't come from the shaman:"
Nate
found it hard to think. His brain felt two sizes too big for his skull.
"Then it must have been my subconscious," he said. "When I first
saw the pods, I remember thinking that the nuts looked like the fruiting bodies
of Uncaria tomentosa. Better known as cat's claw. Indians use it against
viruses, bacteria, and sometimes tumors. But I didn't make the correlation
until now. Maybe the drug helped my subconscious make the intuitive leap:"
"You
could be right," Kouwe said.
Nate
heard the hesitation in the professor's voice. "What else could it
be?"
Kouwe
frowned. "I talked with Dakii while you were drugged out. The ali ne Yagga
powder comes from the root of this tree. Desiccated and powdered root
fiber."
So.
"So
maybe what you dreamed wasn't your subconscious. Maybe it was some type of
prerecorded message from the tree itself. An instruction manual, so to speak:
Consume the fruit of the tree and you will stay healthy. A simple message:"
"You
can't be serious."
"Considering
the setup in this valley-mutated species, regenerating limbs, humans enslaved
in service to a plant-I wouldn't put anything beyond this tree's abilities:'
Nate
shook his head.
Anna
frowned. "The professor may have a point. I can't even imagine how this
tree is able to produce prions specific to the DNA of so many different
species. That alone is miraculous. How did it learn? Where did the tree even
get genetic material to learn from?"
Kouwe
waved an arm around the room. "This tree traces its roots back to the
Paleozoic era, when the land was just plants. Its ancestors must have been
around as land animals first evolved, and rather than competing, it
incorporated these new species into its own life cycle, like the Amazon's ant
tree does today."
The
professor continued with his theories, but Nate found himself tuning him out.
He was drawn back to Anna's last question. Where did the tree even get genetic
material to learn from? It was a good question, and it nagged at Nate. How had
the Yagga learned to produce its wide variety of species-specific prions?
Nate
remembered his dream: the line of animals and people disappearing inside the
tree. Where had they gone? Was it more than just symbolic? Did they go
somewhere? Nate found his eyes on Dakii, kneeling by the hammock. Maybe it was
another intuitive leap, or a residual effect of the drug, but Nate began to get
a suspicion where that somewhere might be.
All ne
rah. Blood of the Yagga. From the root of the tree.
Nate's
gaze narrowed on Dakii. He recalled the Indian's description of his father's
fate, spoken with gladness. He's gone to feed the root.
Nate
found his feet stepping toward the tribesman.
Kouwe
stopped his discourse. "Nate . . . ?"
"There's
one piece of the puzzle we're still missing:" Nate nodded to Dakii.
"And I know who has it:"
He
crossed to the kneeling tribesman. Dakii glanced up, tears running down his
face. The loss of the leader had struck the man hard. He hauled to his feet as
Nate stopped before him.
"Wishwa,"
he said, bowing his head, acknowledging the passing of power.
"I'm
sorry for your loss;" Nate said, "but we must speak:" Kouwe came
over and assisted with the translations, but Nate was now becoming skilled at
mixing English and Yanomamo words to get his message across. Dakii pointed to
the bed, wiping an eye. "He named Dakoo:" The native touched a palm
to the dead man's chest. "He father of me:'
Nate
bit his lip. He should have guessed. Now that Dakii had mentioned it, he saw
the similarities. Nate placed a hand on the man's shoulder. He knew what it was
like to lose a father. "I'm truly sorry," he repeated, this time with
more feeling.
Dakii
nodded. "Thank you:"
"Your
father was an amazing man. He will be mourned by all of us, but right now we're
in grave danger. We need your help:"
Dakii
bowed his head. "You wishwa. You say . . . I do:"
I need
you to take me to the root of the tree, to where the tree is fed.
Dakii's
head snapped up, his face showing both fear and worry.
"Gently,"
Kouwe warned him in a whisper. "You are clearly treading on sacred
ground:"
Nate
waved away the professor's caution and placed a palm to his own chest. "I
am wishwa now. I must see the root:"
The
tribesman bobbed his head. "I go show you." He glanced to hi~ dead
father in the hammock, then turned toward the exit.
They
began to wind back down the tunnel. Anna and Kouwe whispered behind Nate, leaving
him to his own thoughts. He again remembered his comparison of the Ban-ali
symbol to the serpentine tunnel through the Yagga's trunk. But did it represent
more? Did it also symbolize the essential molecular shape of the mutating
prion, as Kelly had suggested? Was there indeed some communication between
plant and human? Some shared memory? After what Nate had experienced under the
effect of the drug, he was not so sure he could dismiss this last possibility.
Perhaps the symbol did indeed represent both. The true heart of the Yagga.
Nate
and the group continued down.
"Someone
come," Dakii said, slowing.
Then
Nate heard it, too. Footsteps, trotting or running.
From
around a corner, a familiar figure appeared.
"Private
Camera," Kouwe said.
She
nodded, hardly out of breath from the steep run up the tunnel. Nate noticed she
had recovered her weapon. "I was sent to fetch you. To see if you found
another way off this plateau. Sergeant Kostos had no luck disarming the
explosives:'
Nate
realized, in all the disturbing revelations, he had failed to ask the most
important question. Was there another way out of the valley?
"Dakii,"
Nate said. "We need to know if there is a secret path to the lower valley.
Do you know one?" This communication took much gesturing and Kouwe's help.
While
Kouwe translated, Camera glanced at Nate with an eyebrow raised. "You've
not already interrogated the man?" she whispered. "What have you been
doing?"
"Doing
drugs," Nate said, distracted and concentrating on the conversation with
the tribesman.
Dakii
finally seemed to understand. "Go away? Why? Stay here:" He pointed
to his feet.
"We
can't," Nate said with exasperation.
Anna
spoke at his shoulder, "He doesn't understand about the bombs. He doesn't
know the valley is going to be destroyed. Such a concept is beyond him:"
"We'll
have to make him understand," Nate said. He turned to Camera. "In the
meantime, I need you and the sergeant to gather as many of this tree's nuts as
you can into packs:"
"Nuts?"
"I'll
explain later. Just do it . . . please:"
She
nodded, turning away. "But remember, guys . . . tick-tock:" She
glanced significantly at them, then took off.
Note
faced Dakii. How to tell the man that his entire homeland was about to be wiped
out? It wouldn't be easy. Note sighed. "Let's keep heading to the
root:"
As
they continued down, Nate and Kouwe flanked the tribesman and slowly
communicated the danger here. Dakii's confused expression slowly twisted into
horror as he got the message. The scout's feet stumbled as he walked, as if the
knowledge were a physical burden.
By now
they had reached the tunnel exit, surrounded by a gallery of blue palm prints.
Beyond the opening, the light in the glade had taken on a dark honey color,
suggesting sunset was at hand. Time was running out.
"Is
there another way out of the valley?" Nate asked again.
Dakii
pointed to where the tunnel ended at a slightly concave wall covered with the
blue prints. "Through the root. We go through the root:"
"Yes,
I want to see the root, too, but what about the way out?"
Dakii
stared at him. "Through the root," he repeated.
Nate
nodded, finally understanding. Their two missions had just become one.
"Show us."
Dakii
crossed to the wall, glancing over the prints, then he reached out to one near
the innermost wall. He placed his palm over it and pushed with arm and
shoulder. The entire wall pivoted on a central axis, opening a new section of
passage, winding deeper underground.
Nate
glanced up, recalling that the flow channels here hadn't exactly matched. A
secret door. The answer was before him this entire time. Even the palm prints
on the walls-they were like the one on the Ban-ali symbol, guarding the double
helix that represented the root.
Anna
slipped a flashlight from her field jacket. Nate patted his own jacket, but
came up empty. He must have lost his. Anna passed him hers, indicating he
should go first.
Nate
moved to the door. Wafting out was the musk of the tree, humid and thicker,
dank like the breath from an open grave. Nate readied himself and pushed
through the opening.
CHAPTER
EIGHTEEN
The
Last Hour
7:01
PM.
AMAZON
JUNGLE
As
Louis's band took a rest break, he checked his watch. It was an hour before the
explosion would turn the upper valley into a whirling firestorm. He focused his
attention on the swamp lake ahead. The setting sun had turned the water a
tarnished silver.
They
were making good time. Skirting to the south of the swamp, where the jungle was
thickest and the river channels many, they would easily slip away through the dense
forest. He had no doubt of that.
He
sighed contentedly, but with a trace of disappointment. Everything was downhill
from here. He always felt this way after a successful mission. Some form of
postcoital depression, he imagined. He would return to French Guiana a much
richer man, but money didn't buy the excitement of the last couple of days.
"C'est
la vie," he said. There will always be other missions.
A
small ruckus drew his attention back around.
He saw
Kelly being shoved to her knees by two men. A third was on the ground a couple
of yards away, rolling, cursing, clutching between his legs.
Louis
strode over to them, but Mask was already there.
The
scarred lieutenant pulled the moaning guard to his feet.
"What
happened?" Louis asked.
Mask
thumbed at the man. "Pedro reached a hand down her shirt, and she kneed
him in the groin:"
Louis
smiled, impressed. One hand settled to the bullwhip trophy at his waist.
He
sauntered over to Kelly, now on her knees. One of her two captors had his fist
tight in her hair, pulling her head back to expose her long neck. She snarled
as the two men taunted her with the vilest innuendoes.
"Let
her up," Louis said.
The
men knew better than to disobey. Kelly was yanked to her feet.
Louis
took off his hat. "I apologize for the rudeness here. It won't happen
again, I assure you:"
Other
men gathered.
Kelly
fumed. "Next time I'll kick the asshole's balls into his belly."
"Indeed:'
Louis waved off his men. "But punishment is my department:' He tapped the
bullwhip on his side. Earlier he had struck the woman as a lesson. Now it was
time for another.
He
turned and struck out with the whip, splitting the twilight with a loud crack.
Pedro
screamed, covering his left eye. Blood spurted through his fingers.
Louis
faced the others. "No one will harm the prisoners. Is that
understood?"
There
was a general sound of agreement and many nods.
Louis
replaced his whip. "Someone see to Pedro's eye:'
He
turned back around and saw Tshui standing near Kelly, one palm raised to the woman's
cheek.
As he
watched, he noticed that Tshui had wrapped her fingers around a curl of fiery
auburn hair.
Ah,
Louis thought, the red hair. A unique trophy for Tshui's collection.
7:O5
PM.
In the
flashlight's glow, Nate noticed that the passage beyond the handprinted door
was similar to the main tunnel, but the woody surfaces were of a coarser grain.
As he walked, the musk of the tree flowed thick and fetid.
With
Dakii at his side, he led Anna and Kouwe down the tunnel. It
narrowed
rapidly, twisting tighter and tighter, causing the group to crowd together.
"We
must be in the tree's taproot," Nate mumbled.
"Heading
underground," Kouwe said.
Nate
nodded. Within a few more twisting yards, the tunnel exited the woody root, and
stone appeared underfoot, interspersed with patches of loam. The tunnel headed
steeply downward. They now ran parallel to the branching root system.
Dakii
pointed ahead and continued.
Nate
hesitated. Strange lichens grew on the walls, glowing softly. The musk was
almost overpowering, now rich with a more fecund odor. Dakii pushed on.
Nate
glanced to Kouwe, who shrugged. It was encouragement enough.
As
they continued forward, the root branch that ran overhead split and divided,
heading out into other passageways. From the ceiling, drapes of root hairs
hung, vibrating ever so gently, rhythmically swaying as if a wind blew softly
through the passage. But there was no wind.
The
top of Nate's head brushed against the ceiling as the tunnel lowered. The tiny
root fibrils tangled into his hair, clinging, pulling. Nate wrenched away with
a gasp.
He
shone his flashlight overhead, wary.
"What
is it?" Kouwe asked.
"The
root grabbed at me."
Kouwe
lifted a palm to the root branch. The smaller hairs wrapped around his fingers
in a clinging embrace. With a look of disgust, Kouwe tugged his hand away.
Nate
had seen other Amazonian plants demonstrate a response to stimulation: leaves
curling if touched, puff pods exploding if brushed, flowers closing if
disturbed. But this felt somehow more malignant.
Nate
fanned his flashlight across the path. By now, Dakii was waiting several yards
down the passage. Nate urged the others to catch up. Once abreast of Dakii,
Nate studied the splitting roots that now turned riotous, dividing and
cross-splitting in all directions. Small blind cubbyholes dotted the many
passages, each choked and clogged with a tangle of roots and waving hairs. The
little cubbies reminded Nate of nitrogen bulbs, seen among root balls of many
plants, that served as storage fertilizing sites.
Dakii
stood before one such alcove. Nate shone his light into the space. Something
was tangled deep inside the mass of twining branches and churning root fibrils.
Nate bent closer. A few wiggling hairs curled out toward him, questing, waving
like small antennae.
He
kept back.
Deep
in the root pack, wrapped and entwined like a fly in a spider's webbing, was a
large fruit bat. Nate straightened in disgust.
Kouwe
leaned in and grimaced. "Is it feeding on the bat?"
Anna
spoke behind them. "I don't think so. Come see this:"
They
both turned to her. She knelt by an even larger tubby, but one similarly
entangled. She pointed into its depths.
Nate
flashed his light inside. Entombed within was a large brown cat.
"A
puma," Kouwe said at his shoulder.
"Watch;'
Anna said.
They
stared, not knowing what to expect. Then suddenly the large cat moved,
breathed. Its lungs expanded and collapsed in a sigh. But the movement did not
look natural, more mechanical.
Anna
glanced back at them. "It's alive:"
"I
don't understand," Nate said.
Anna
held out her hand. "Can I see the flashlight?"
Nate
passed it to her. The anthropologist quickly surveyed several of the other
alcoves, moving through the neighboring, branching passages. The variety of
animals was impressive: ocelot, toucan, marmoset, tamarin, anteater, even
snakes and lizards, and oddly enough one jungle trout. And each one of them
seemed to be breathing or showing some signs of life, including the fish, its
small gill flaps twitching.
"They're
each unique," Anna said, eyes bright as she stared down the maze of
passages. "And all alive. Like some form of suspended animation:"
"What
are you getting at?"
Anna
turned to them. "We're standing in a biological storehouse. A library of
genetic code. I wager this is the source of its prion production:"
Nate
turned in a slow circle, staring at the maze of passages. The implication was
too overwhelming to contemplate. The tree was storing these animals down here,
learning from them so it could produce prions to alter and bind the species to
it. It was a living, breathing genetics lab.
Kouwe
gripped Nate's shoulder. "Your father."
Nate
glanced to him in confusion. "What about my-?" Then it hit him like a
hammer to the forehead. He gasped. His father had been fed to the root. Not as
fertilizer, Nate realized, swinging around, aghast, but to be a part of this
malignant laboratory!
"With
his white skin and strange manners, your father was unique,' Kouwe said in a
low voice. "The Ban-ali or the Yagga would not want to lose his genetic
heritage:"
Nate
turned to Dakii. He could barely speak, too choked with emotion. "My. . .
my father. Do you know where he is?"
Dakii
nodded and lifted both arms. "He with root:"
"Yes,
but where?" Nate pointed to the closest tubby, one with an enshrouded
black sloth. "Which one?"
Dakii
frowned and glanced around the maze of passages.
Nate
held his breath. There had to be hundreds of passages, countless alcoves. He
didn't have time to search them all, not with the clock running. But how could
Nate leave, knowing his father was down here somewhere?
Dakii
suddenly strode purposefully down one passage and waved for them to follow.
They
hurried, winding deeper and deeper into the subterranean maze. Nate found it
increasingly difficult to breathe, not because of the sickening musk, but
because of his own mounting anxiety. All along this journey, he had held no
real hope his father was still alive. But now . . . he teetered between hope
and despair, almost panicked with trepidation. What would he find?
Dakii
paused at an intersection, then stepped to the left passage. But after two
strides, he shook his head and returned to follow the trail to the right.
A
scream built up inside Nate's chest.
Dakii
continued down this new passage, mumbling under his breath Finally, he stopped
beside a large tubby and pointed. "Father."
Nate
grabbed the flashlight back from Anna. He dropped to his knees, shining his
light inside, oblivious to the questing root hairs that wrapped around his
wrist.
Within
the mass of roots lay a shadowy figure. Nate moved his light over its form.
Curled in a fetal position on the soft loamy floor was a gaunt naked frame, a
pale man. His face was covered by a thick beard, his hair
396
tangled
with roots. Nate focused on the face hidden beneath the beard. He was not
entirely sure it was his father.
As he
stared, the man inhaled sharply, mechanically, and exhaled, wafting root hairs
from his lips. Still alive!
Nate
turned. "I have to get him out of there:"
"Is
it your father?" Anna asked.
"I
. . . I'm not sure:" Nate pointed to the bone knife tucked in Kouwe's
belt. The professor passed it over to him.
Nate
stood and hacked into the root mass.
Dakii
cried out, reaching to stop him, but Kouwe blocked the tribesman. "Dakii,
no! Leave Nate be:"
Nate
fought through the outer cords of woody roots. It was like the husk surrounding
some nut. Beneath this layer was a mass of finer webbings and draperies of
rootlets and thready hairs.
Once
through, Nate saw the roots penetrated the man's body, growing into it as if it
were soil. It must be how the Yagga sustained its specimens, feeding them,
supporting organ systems, delivering nutrients.
Nate
hesitated. Would he harm the man, kill him, if he hacked the root's
attachments? If this was indeed some type of suspended animation, would its
interruption trigger a massive systems failure?
Shaking
his head, Nate slashed through the roots. He would take his chances. Left
alone, the man would surely die a fiery death.
Once
the body was free of the root hairs, Nate tossed the knife aside, grabbed the
man by the shoulders, and hauled him into the passage. The last clinging roots
broke away, releasing their prey.
In the
tunnel, Nate collapsed beside the man. The naked figure choked and gasped. Many
of the tiny rootlets and hairs squiggled from his body, dropping away like
leeches. Blood flowed from some spots where larger rootlets had penetrated.
Suddenly the man seized, contracting, back arching, head thrown back.
Nate
cradled the man in his arms, not knowing what to do. The thrashings continued
for a full minute. Kouwe helped to restrain the man and prevent further injury.
The
figure jerked into a final convulsion, then collapsed with a mighty gasp.
Nate
exhaled with relief when the man's chest continued to rise and fall. Then the
eyes fluttered open and stared up at him. Nate knew those eyes. They were his
own eyes.
"Nate?"
the figure asked in a dry husky voice.
Nate
fell atop the figure. "Dad!"
"Am
. . . am I dreaming?" his father asked coarsely.
Nate
was too choked to speak. He helped his father, who was light as a pillow, all
skin and bones, to sit. The tree had been sustaining him, but just barely.
Kouwe
bent down to help. "Carl, how are you feeling?"
Nate's
father squinted at the professor, then a look of recognition spread across his
face. "Kouwe? My God, what's going on?"
"It's
a long story, old friend:" He helped Nate get his father on his feet. Too
frail to move on his own, Carl Rand clung to Nate and Kouwe. "Right now,
though, we have to get you out of this damn place:'
Nate
stared at his father, tears streaming down his face. "Dad. . :'
"I
know, son," he said hoarsely and coughed.
There
was no time for a proper reunion now, but Nate wasn't going to let another
moment go by without saying the words he had regretted withholding the day his
father left for this expedition. "I love you, Dad:"
The
arm around his shoulder tightened, a small squeeze of affection and love. A
familiar gesture. Family.
"We
should fetch the others," Anna said. "And head out of here:'
"Nate,
why don't you stay with your father here?" Kouwe suggested "Rest. We
can collect you both on the way out."
Dakii
shook his head. "No. We not come back this way." He waved his arm.
"Other way to go:"
Nate
frowned. "We should stay together anyway."
"And
I can handle myself," Carl argued hoarsely. He glanced back to the
cubbyhole. "Besides, I've been resting here long enough:"
Kouwe
nodded.
With
the matter settled, they began to climb toward the surface. Kouwe gave a
thumbnail sketch of their situation. Nate's father only listened, leaning more
and more heavily upon them as they walked. The only words his father spoke
during the discourse were at the mention of Louis Favre and what he had done.
"The goddamn bastard:"
Nate
smiled, hearing a bit of the old fire in his father's voice.
When
they reached the surface, it was obvious the two Rangers had been busy. They
had all the Ban-ali gathered. Each bore packs full of nuts and weapons.
Nate
and his father remained in the entrance, while Kouwe explained about the
addition to their team and what they had found below. "Dakii says there's
an escape route through the root's tunnel:"
"Then
we'd best hurry," Sergeant Kostos said. "We have less than thirty
minutes, and we want to be as far away from here as possible:"
Camera
joined them, her weapon on her shoulder. "All set at our end. We have a
couple dozen of those nut pods and four canteens of the sap:"
"Then
let's haul ass," Kostos said.
7:32
1?M,
As
they wound through the root tunnels, Kouwe stayed with Dakii, periodically
glancing back at the trail of Indians and Americans. Watching Sergeant Kostos
help Nate with his father, Kouwe wished he had had time to rig up a stretcher,
but right now every minute was critical.
Though
Sergeant Kostos believed the subterranean tunnels would shield them from the
worst of the napalm's fiery blast, he clearly feared the maze's integrity.
"The rock here is riddled and weakened by the roots. The explosions could
bring the roof down atop our heads or trap us here. We need to be well clear of
these tunnels before those bombs go off."
So
they hurried. Not only for their own sake, but for the world. Inside their
packs, they carried the fate of thousands, if not millions-the nut pods of the
Yagga, the suppressant for the virulent human prion. The cure to the plague.
They
could not be trapped down here.
Glancing
over a shoulder, Kouwe again checked the party. The dark tunnels, the softly
glowing lichens, the dreadful cubbies with their captured specimens . . . all
made Kouwe nervous. This deep in the system, both walls and ceilings ran wild
with roots, zigzagging everywhere, crossing, dividing, fusing. Everywhere were
the mounds of ubiquitous root hairs, waving and probing toward any passerby. It
made the walls look furry, like a living thing, constantly moving and
bristling.
Behind
Kouwe, the others looked equally wary, even the Indians. The line of men and
women ran out of sight around a curve in the twisting passage. Back at the end,
pulling up the rear, was Private Camera. She kept a watch behind them-where
Tor-tor and the giant black jaguar followed. It had taken some coaxing to
encourage the two cats inside, but Nate had finally been successful in luring
Tor-tor. "I'm not going to leave Manny's cat here to die," Nate had
argued. "I owe it to my friend to save him:"
Once
Tor-tor entered, the large female jaguar had followed.
Camera
remained alert, her weapon ready, in case the wild cat decided it needed a
snack while traveling.
Dakii
paused at the intersection of trails. Sergeant Kostos grumbled, but they dared
not force a faster pace. It would be easy to get lost down here. They depended
on Dakii's memory.
The
tribesman selected a path and led the others. The tunnel descended steeply.
Kouwe stared at the low roof. They must be a hundred yards underground . . .
and going deeper still. But oddly, instead of the air growing more dank, it
seemed to freshen.
After
a few minutes, the tunnel leveled out and made a sharp turn, emptying into a
huge cavern. The tunnel opening was halfway up one wall of the chamber. A thin
trail continued along the nearest wall, a stony lip high above the bowled
floor. Dakii stepped out onto the trail.
Kouwe
followed, gaping at the room. The chamber had to be a half mile across. Through
the center of the chamber, a massive root stalk, as thick around as a giant
redwood, penetrated from the roof and continued down through the floor like a
great column.
"It's
the Yagga's taproot again," Nate said, coming up beside them. "We
must have circled back to it:"
From
the main root, thousands of branches spread like tree limbs in all directions,
toward other passages.
"There
must be miles and miles of tunnels," Kouwe said. He studied the taproot.
The giant tree above must be but a tiny fraction of the plant's true mass.
"Can you imagine the number of species encased down here? Suspended in
time?"
"The
tree must have been collecting its specimens for centuries," Nate's father
mumbled beside his son.
"Maybe
even longer," Kouwe warned. "Maybe as far back as when these lands
first formed:'
"Back
to the Paleozoic," Nate murmured. "If so, what might be out there in
that vast biological storehouse?"
"And
what might still be living?" Anna added.
Kouwe
cringed. It was both a wondrous and frightening thought. He waved Dakii onward.
The sight was too terrible to stare at any longer, and time was running down
for both them and the world.
They
wound along the lip as it circled the chamber. Dakii led them to another
opening, back into the tunnel maze again. Though they left the chamber behind,
Kouwe's mind dwelled on the mystery there. His feet slowed, and he found
himself marching near Nate and Carl. Sergeant Kostos was on the other side.
"When
I studied anthropology," Kouwe said, "I read many myths of trees. The
maternal guardian. A caretaker, a storehouse of all wisdom. It makes me wonder
about the Yagga. Has man crossed its path before?"
"What
do you mean?" Nate asked.
"Surely
this tree wasn't the only one of its kind. There must have been others in the
past. Maybe these myths are some collective memory of earlier human encounters
with this species:"
He
recognized the doubt in Nate's eyes and continued, "Take, for example, the
Tree of Knowledge from the Garden of Eden. A tree whose fruit has all the
knowledge in the world, but whose consumption curses those who eat of it. You
could draw a parallel to the Yagga. Even when I saw Carl trussed up among the
roots, it reminded me of another Biblical tale. Back in the thirteenth century,
a monk who had starved himself seeking visions from God told a tale of seeing
Seth, the son of Adam, returning to Eden. There, the young man saw the Tree of
Knowledge, now turned white. It clutched Cain in its roots, some penetrating
into his brother's flesh:"
Nate
frowned.
"The
parallels here seem particularly apt," Kouwe finished.
Noticeably
quiet for several yards, Nate was clearly digesting his words. Finally he
spoke. "You could be on to something. The tunnel through the Yagga's trunk
is not manmade, but a natural construct. The
tunnels
had to have formed as the tree grew. But why would the tree do so unless its
ancestors had encountered man before and had evolved these features in kind?"
"Like
an ant tree has adapted for its six-legged soldiers," Kouwe added.
Nate's
father roused. "And the evolution of the Ban-ali here, their genetic
enhancements," Carl rasped. "Have such improvements of the species
happened before? Could the tree have played a critical role in human evolution?
Is that why we remember it in our myths?"
Kouwe's
brow crinkled. He had not extrapolated that far. He stared behind the others to
where the giant cat stalked. If the Yagga were capable of enhancing the
jaguar's intelligence, could it have done the same to us in the distant past?
Could humans owe their own intellect to an ancestor of this tree? A chilling
thought.
A
silence fell over the others.
In his
head, Kouwe reviewed the history of this valley. The Yagga must have grown
here, collecting specimens in its hollow root system for centuries: luring them
in with its musk, offering shelter, then capturing them and storing them in its
cubbies. Eventually man entered the valley-a wandering clan of Yanomamo-and
discovered the tree's tunnels and the wonders of its healing sap. Lured in,
they were captured as surely as any other species and slowly changed into the
Ban-all, the Yagga's human servants. Since that time, the Ban-ali must have
brought other species to the tree-feeding the root to further expand its
biological database.
And
left unchecked, where would it have led? A new species of man, as Carl had
feared after the stillborn birth of Gerald Clark's baby? Or maybe something
worse-a hybrid like the piranhas and locusts?
Kouwe
squinted at the twisting passages, suddenly glad it was all going to burn.
Dakii
called from up ahead. The tribesman pointed to a side tunnel. From the passage,
a slight glow shone. A dull roar echoed back to them.
"The
way out," Kouwe said.
1 7:49
PM.
Nate
hurried as best he could with his father.
Sergeant
Kostos growled constantly under his breath on the other side, counting off the
minutes until the bombs blew.
It
would be a close call.
The
group sped toward the sheen of moonlight flowing from ahead. The roaring grew
in volume, soon thundering. Around a corner, the end of the tunnel appeared,
and the source of the noise grew clear.
A
waterfall tumbled past the entrance, the rush of water aglow with moonlight and
star shine.
"The
tunnel must open into the cliff face that leads to the lower valley,"
Kouwe said.
They
followed Dakii to the tunnel's damp exit. The rushing water rumbled past the
threshold. The tribesman pointed down. Steps. In the narrow space between the
waterfall and the cliff, a steep, wet staircase had been carved into the stone,
winding back and forth in narrow switchbacks, down to the lower valley.
"Everyone
head down!" the sergeant yelled. "Move quickly, but when I holler,
everyone drop and hold on tight:"
Dakii
remained with Sergeant Kostos to guide his own people.
Kouwe
helped Nate with his father. They scrambled as well as they could down the
stairs, balancing between haste and caution. They hurried as the others
followed.
Nate
saw Kostos wave Camera down the stairs, then followed.
Behind
them emerged the two cats. The jaguars hurried out of the opening and onto the
stair, clearly glad to be free of the confining tunnels. Nate wished he had
their claws.
"One
minute," Kouwe said, hobbling under Carl's weight.
They
hurried. The bottom was still a good four stories down. A deadly fall.
Then a
sharp call broke through the water's rush. "Now! Down! Down!"
Nate
helped his father to the steps, then dropped himself. He glanced up and saw the
entire group flattened to the stone. He lowered his face and prayed.
The
explosion, when it came, was as if hell had come to earth. The noise was
minimal-no worse than the dramatic end of a Fourth of July fireworks show-but
the effect was anything but insignificant.
Over
the top of the cliff's edge, a wall of flame shot half a mile out, and flumed
three times that distance into the sky. Currents of rising air buffeted them,
swirling eddies of fire moving with them. If it wasn't for the waterfall's
insulation, they would've been fried on the stairs. But the waterfall was a
mixed blessing. Its flow, shaken by the blast, cast vast amounts of water over
them. But everyone held tight.
Soon
bits of flaming debris began to tumble over the edge and down the fall. Luckily
the swift current cast most of the large pieces of trunk and branch beyond
their perch. But it was still terrifying to see entire trees, cracked and blown
into the stream, tumble past, on fire.
As the
heat welled up and away from them, Kostos yelled down. "Keep moving, but
watch for falling debris:"
Nate
crouched up. Everyone began to climb to their feet, dazed.
They
had made it!
As the
others started down, he reached for his father. "C'mon, Dad. Let's get out
of here:"
With
his father's hand held in his own, Nate felt the ground vibrate, a tremoring
rumble. He instinctively knew this was bad. Oh, shit . . .
He
dove atop his father, a scream on his lips. "Down! Everyone back
down!"
The
second explosion deafened them. Nate screamed from the pain. It blew with such
force that he was sure the cliff would fall atop them.
From
the mouth of the tunnel above, a jet of fire belched out, blasting into the
fall of water. Scalding steam rolled down over them.
Nate
craned upward and watched a second belch of fire blow from the tunnel, then a
third. Smaller flames shot out of tinier crevices in the cliff face all around,
like a hundred flickering fiery tongues. All of them an eerie blue.
All
the while, the ground continued to shake and rumble.
Nate
kept his father pinned under him.
Rocks
and dirt shattered outward. Entire uprooted trees shot like flaming missiles
through the sky to crash down into the lower valley.
Then
this too died down.
No one
moved as smaller rocks tumbled past. Again the waterfall protected them,
deflecting most of the debris, or reducing their speed to bruising rather than
deadly velocities.
After
several minutes, Nate raised his head enough to view the damage.
He
spotted Kouwe a step above his father. The professor looked dazed and sickened.
He stared back at Nate, face pale with shock. "Anna . . . when you yelled.
. . I was too slow . . . the explosion . . . I couldn't catch her in
time." His eyes flicked to the long tumble below. "She fell."
Nate
closed his eyes. "Oh, God."
He
heard mournful cries flow up around them. Anna had not been alone in falling to
her death. Nate pushed to his knees. His father coughed and rolled onto his
side, looking ashen.
After
a time, the group crawled down the stairs, beaten, bloody, and in shock.
They
gathered at the foot of the falls, bathed in cool spray. Three Banali tribesmen
had also met their deaths on the stair.
"What
was that second explosion?" Sergeant Kostos asked.
Nate
remembered the strange blue flame. He asked for one of the canteens with the
Yagga sap. He poured out a grape-sized drop and used Carrera's lighter to
ignite it. A tall blue flame flared up from the dollop of sap. "Like
copal," Nate said. "Combustible. The entire tree went up like a roman
candle. Roots and all, I imagine, from the way the ground shook."
A deep
mournful silence spread over the smaller camp.
Finally
Carrera spoke. "What now?"
Nate
answered, his voice fierce. "We make that bastard pay. For Manny, for
Olin, for Anna, for all the Ban-ali tribespeople"
"They
have guns," Sergeant Kostos said. "We have one Bailey. They outnumber
us more than two to one."
"To
hell with that." Nate kept his voice cold. "We have a card that
trumps all that."
"What's
that?" Kostos asked.
"They
think we're dead."
CHAPTER
NINETEEN
Midnight
Raid
1 1:48
PM.
AMAZON
JUNGLE
Kelly's
eyes still stung with tears. With her hands bound behind her back, she couldn't
even wipe them away. She was secured to a stake under a leanto of woven palm
leaves that deflected the gentle rain that now fell. The clouds had rolled in
as full night had set, which had suited her kidnappers just fine. "The
darker the better," Favre had exulted. They made good time and were now
enveloped in thick jungle cover well south of the swamp.
But
despite the darkness and the distance, the northern skies glowed a fiery red,
as if the sun were trying to rise from that direction. The explosions that had
lit up the night had been spectacular, shooting a fireball high into the sky,
followed by a scattering of flaming debris.
The
sight had burned all hope from her. The others were dead.
Favre
had set a hard pace after that, sure that the government's helicopters would be
winging to the fires posthaste. But so far the skies had remained clear. There
was no whump-whumping of military air vehicles. Favre kept a constant watch on
the skies. Nothing.
Maybe
Olin's signal had never made it out. Or maybe the helicopters were still en
route.
Either
way, Favre was taking no chances. No lights, just night-vision glasses. Kelly,
of course, was not given a pair. Her shins were bruised and thorn-scraped from falls
and missteps in the dark. Her stumblings had amused the guards. Without her
hands to break her fall, each trip bloodied her knees. Her legs ached.
Mosquitoes and gnats were attracted to the wounds, crawling and buzzing around
her. She couldn't even swat them away.
The
rain was a relief. As was the short break-a full hour. Kelly stared over at the
glowing northern skies, praying her friends hadn't suffered.
Closer
at hand, the mercenary band celebrated its victory. Flasks of alcohol passed
from hand to hand. Toasts were made, and boasts declared amid jovial whispers
of how their money would be spent-much of it involving whores. Favre circulated
through the group, allowing his men this celebration but making sure it didn't
get out of hand. They were still miles from the rendezvous point where the
motorboats were waiting.
So for
the moment, Kelly had a bit of relative privacy. Frank was under another
makeshift lean-to in the middle of the camp. Her only company here was the
single guard: Favre's disfigured lieutenant, the man named Mask. He stood
talking with another mercenary, sharing a flask.
A
figure approached through the drizzle. It was Favre's Indian woman, Tshui. She
seemed oblivious of the rain, still naked, but at least she no longer wore the
head of Corporal DeMartini around her neck.
Probably
didn't want to get the foul thing wet, Kelly thought sourly.
Mask's
companion slid away at the approach of the woman. She had that effect on most
of the mercenaries. They were clearly frightened of her. Even Mask took a few
steps from the lean-to and sheltered under a neighboring palm.
The
Indian woman bent out of the rain and knelt beside Kelly. She carried a
rucksack in one hand. She settled it to the dirt and began to rummage silently
through it, finally pulling out a tiny clay pot and freeing the lid.
Filling
the container was a thick waxy unguent. The witch-woman scooped a dab on a
finger, then reached to Kelly.
She
flinched away.
The
Indian woman grabbed her ankle. Her grip was iron. She slathered the material
on Kelly's abraded knees. Instantly the sting and burn faded. Kelly stopped
fighting and allowed the woman to treat her.
"Thank
you," Kelly said, though she was not sure the treatment was solely for her
comfort as much as to make sure she could continue to march. Either way, it
felt good.
The
Indian woman reached again to her pack and removed a rolled length of woven
linen. She carefully spread it open on the soggy ground. Meticulously lined in
tiny pouches of cloth were stainless steel tools and others made of yellowed
bone. Tshui removed a long sickle-shaped knife, one of a set of five similar
tools. She leaned toward Kelly with the knife.
Kelly
again flinched, but the woman grabbed the hair at the nape of her neck and held
her still, pulling her head back. The Indian was damn strong.
"What
are you doing?"
Tshui
never spoke. She brought the knife's curved edge to Kelly's forehead, at the
edge of her scalp. Then returned the tool to its place and took another of the
curved knives and positioned it at the crown of her scalp.
With
horror, the realization hit Kelly. She's measuring me! Tshui was determining
which tools would be best to scrape the skin off her skull. The Indian woman
continued her measuring, fingering different sharp instruments and testing them
against chin, cheek, and nose.
She
began to line up the proper instruments on the ground beside her knee. The row
of tools grew: long knives, sharp picks, corkscrewing pieces of bone.
A
noise, a throat being cleared, drew both women's attention outside the lean-to.
Kelly's
head was released. Free, Kelly twisted around, kicking, trying to get as far
away as possible from the witch. Her feet sent the line of cruel instruments
scattering in the dirt.
Favre
stood outside the door. "I see Tshui has been entertaining you,
Mademoiselle O'Brien."
He
entered the lean-to. "I've been trying to gather some information on the
CIA from your brother. Information to assist us in escaping now and planning
future missions. A valuable commodity that I don't think St. Savin will mind me
gleaning from their patient. But I can't have Frank coming to harm. That my
benefactors wouldn't appreciate. They're paying well for the delivery of a
healthy little guinea pig:"
Favre
knelt next to her. "But you, my dear, are a different story. I'm afraid
I'm going to have to give your brother a little demonstration of Tshui's
handiwork. And don't be shy. Let Frank hear your screams-please don't hold
back. When Tshui comes over afterward and hands him your ear, I'm sure he'll be
more cooperative with his answers:' He stood. "But you'll have to excuse
me. I don't care to watch myself."
Favre
made a half bow and departed into the rainy night.
Kelly's
blood iced with terror. She didn't have much time. In her fingers, Kelly
clutched a tiny knife. She had grabbed it a moment ago from among the tools she
had scattered. Kelly now worked to cut through the ropes behind her back.
Nearby,
Tshui picked through her pack and gathered bandage material-to wrap the stump
of Kelly's amputated ear. Without a doubt, they would torture her until they
had drained every bit of information from her brother. Afterward, she would be
tossed aside as unnecessary baggage.
Kelly
would not let that happen. A quick death would be better than a tortured one.
And if she could believe Favre, no harm would come to Frank-at least not until
after he was delivered safely to the scientists at St. Savin.
Kelly
sliced savagely at her bonds, covering her motions with jerky thrashings and
moans that were only half faked.
Tshui
turned back to her, a hooked knife in hand.
The
ropes still held Kelly.
The
witch leaned over her and grabbed her hair again, yanking her head back. She
lifted her knife.
Kelly
struggled with her own blade, tears flowing.
A
chilling wail split the night, high and feline, full of fury.
Tshui
froze with the knife poised at Kelly's ear. The witch cocked her head and
glanced to the dark forest.
Kelly
could not pass up this opportunity. She bunched her shoulders and ripped free
the last fibers of the rope that bound her.
As
Tshui turned back to her, Kelly swung around with her knife and planted it into
the witch woman's shoulder. Tshui screamed and fell back in surprise.
Adrenaline
racing, Kelly burst to her feet and leaped toward the forest. She ran with all
the speed in her legs but slammed into a figure who stepped around a tree.
Arms
grabbed her. She stared up into the leering and twisted face of Mask. She had
forgotten in her panic about the guard. She struggled but had no weapon. He
yanked her around, lifting her off her feet, an arm around her throat. She was
carried, kicking, back into the open.
Tshui
knelt in the dirt, wrapping her wounded shoulder with the bandages meant for
Kelly's ear. The glower the woman shot at Kelly burned with intensity.
Kelly
stopped kicking.
Then
the oddest thing happened-Mask jerked and let her go. Kelly dropped to her
knees in the dirt at the sudden release. She turned as the muscled guard fell
face forward to the ground.
Something
glittered at the back of his skull, embedded deep into it.
A
shiny silver disk.
Kelly
instantly recognized it. She stared off into the woods as screams began to
erupt from all around the camp. She saw men drop where they stood or tumble
where they sat. Feathered arrows protruded from necks and chests. Several of
the bodies convulsed. Poisoned.
Kelly
stared again at the limp form of Favre's former lieutenant . . . and the silver
disk.
Hope
surged.
Dear
God, the others must still be alive!
Kelly
turned and found Tshui gone, likely fleeing toward the center of camp, toward
Favre, toward where her brother was still held prisoner. By now, the camp was
in chaos. Shots began to ring out, orders were yelled, but so far not a single
attacker appeared.
It was
as if they were being attacked by ghosts.
Men
continued to drop.
Kelly
grabbed the pistol from Mask's dead body. She could not gamble that the others
would reach her brother in time. She darted toward the roiling center of camp.
Nate
saw Kelly lunge with a gun in hand. Going after her brother, he knew with
certainty. They could wait no longer. He signaled to Private Camera. A sharp
whistle blew and an ululating wail arose from the score of Indian throats all
around the camp. It was a chilling sound.
Nate
was already on his feet.
They
had painted themselves all in black.
As a
group, they lunged into the jungle camp, armed only with arrows, blowguns, and
bone knives. Those who knew how to use modern weapons confiscated them from the
dead.
Kostos
opened fire with an AK-47 on the left. Off to the right, Carrera switched her
Bailey to automatic fire and laid down a swath of death. She emptied her
weapon, tossed it aside, then grabbed up a discarded M-16, probably one
originally taken from the Rangers.
Nate
grabbed up a pistol from dead fingers and ran headlong into the main camp. The
mercenaries were still in disarray, only now beginning to fall back into a
defensive line. Nate raced through the wet shadows, meaning to get behind their
lines before they tightened.
As
Nate ran, he was spotted by one frightened man, hiding under a bush, clearly
unarmed. The man dropped to his knees at the sight of Nate's gun, hands on his
head, in a clearly submissive posture.
Nate
ran right past him. He had only one goal in mind: to find Kelly and her brother
before they came to harm.
On the
other side of camp, Kouwe ran with Dakii, flanked by other Indians. He paused
to collect a machete from a dead body and toss it to the tribesman. Kouwe
confiscated the rifle for himself.
They
hurried forward. The line of fighting had fallen toward the camp's center.
But
Kouwe suddenly slowed, an instinctual warning tingling through him. He twisted
around and spotted an Indian woman slinking from behind a bush. Her skin was
dabbed in black like theirs.
Kouwe,
having been raised among the tribes of the Amazon, was not so easily fooled.
Though she might paint herself to look like them, her Shuar features were
distinctive to the educated eye.
He
lifted his rifle and pointed it at the woman. "Don't move, witch!"
Favre's woman had been trying to slip past their lines and escape into the
woods. Kouwe would not let that happen. He remembered the fate of Corporal
DeMartini.
The
woman froze, turning slowly in his direction. Dakii held back, but Kouwe waved
him forward. There was fighting still to be done.
Dakii
took off with his men.
Kouwe
was now alone with the woman, surrounded by the dead. He stepped toward her
with caution. He knew he should shoot her where she stood-the witch was surely
as deadly as she was beautiful. But Kouwe balked.
"On
your knees," he ordered in Spanish instead. "Hands high!"
She
obeyed, lowering herself with subtle grace, slow and fluid like a snake. She
stared up at him from under heavily lidded eyes. Smoldering, seductive . . .
When
she attacked, Kouwe was a moment too slow in reacting. He pulled the trigger,
but the gun just clicked. The magazine was empty.
The
woman leaped at him, knives in both hands, poisoned for sure.
Kelly
stared at the two mini-Uzis held by Favre. One was pointed at her brother's
head, one at her chest. "Drop the pistol, mademoiselle. Or you both die
now!"
Frank
mouthed to her. "Run, Kelly."
Favre
crouched under the lean-to, using her brother's body as a shield.
She
had no choice. She would not leave her brother with the madman. She lowered her
pistol and tossed it aside.
Favre
quickly crossed to her. He dropped one of the Uzis and pressed the other
against Kelly's back. "We're going to get out of here," he hissed at
her. He snatched up a pack. "I've got a backup supply of tree sap,
prepared for just such an emergency."
He
shouldered the pack, then grabbed Kelly by the back of her shirt.
A
shout barked behind them. "Let her go!"
They
both turned. Favre twisted around behind her.
Nate
stood, bare-chested, in his boxers, painted all in black.
"Gone
native, have we, Monsieur Rand?"
Nate
pointed a pistol at them. "You can't escape. Drop your weapon and you'll
live:"
Kelly
stared at Nate. His eyes were hard.
Gunfire
sounded all around them. Shouts and screams echoed.
"You'll
let me live?" Favre scoffed. "What? In prison? I don't like that
proposition. I like freedom better:"
The
single gunshot, at close range, startled her-more the crack than the pain. She
saw Nate fly backward, hit in the hip, his weapon spinning away. Then she felt
herself fall to the ground, to her knees, pain registering more as shock. She
stared at her stomach. Blood soaked her shirt, welling through the smoking
hole.
Favre
had shot her through her belly, striking Nate.
The
pure brutality of the act horrified her more than being shot, more than the
blood.
Kelly
looked at Nate. Their eyes met for a brief instant. Neither had the strength to
speak. Then she was falling-slumping toward the ground as darkness stole the
world away.
Kouwe
butted the first knife away with his rifle, but the witch was fast. He fell
backward under her weight as she leaped on him.
He hit
the ground hard, slamming his head, but managing to catch her other wrist. The
second knife jabbed at his face. He tried to throw her off, but she clung to
him, legs wrapped around him like a passionate lover.
Her
free hand scratched gouges in his cheek, going for his eyes. He twisted his
face to the side. The knife lowered toward his throat as she leaned her
shoulder into its plunge. She was strong, young.
But
Kouwe knew the Shuar. He knew about their secret arsenal of weapons: braided in
the hair, hidden in loincloths, worn as decoration. He also knew women warriors
of the tribe carried an extra sheath as a defense against rape-a common attack
between the Shuar tribes during their wars.
Kouwe
used his free hand to snatch between her legs as she straddled him. His fingers
reached and found the tiny knobbed hilt hidden there, warm from her body heat.
He pulled the blade free of its secret leather scabbard.
A
scream rose from her lips as she realized this most private theft. Teeth were
bared.
She
tried to roll away, but Kouwe still had her wrist in his grasp. As she spun, he
followed, holding her tight and using her strength to pull himself to his feet.
They
crouched at arms' length, Kouwe keeping an iron grip on her wrist.
She
met his eyes. He saw the fear. "Mercy," she whispered.
"Please:"
Kouwe
imagined the number of victims who had pleaded with herbut he was no monster.
"I'll grant you mercy"
She
relaxed ever so slightly.
Using
this moment, he yanked her to him and plunged the knife to its hilt between her
breasts.
She
gasped in pain and surprise.
"The
mercy of a quick death," he hissed at her.
The
poison struck her immediately. She shuddered and stiffened as if an electric
shock had passed through her from head to toe. He pushed her away as a
strangled scream flowed from her lips. She was dead before she hit the ground.
Kouwe
turned away, tossing aside the poisoned blade. "And that's more than you
deserve:"
The
gunfire had already died around the camp to sporadic shots, and Louis needed to
be gone with his treasure before his defenses completely fell.
Gathering
up the second Uzi from the ground, he watched Nate struggle to his elbows, a
fierce grimace on his face.
Louis
saluted him and swung around-then froze in midstep.
Standing
a few yards away was a sight that made no sense. A pale, frail figure leaned
against a tree. "Louis . . :"
He
stumbled back in fright. A ghost . . .
"Dad,
get back!" Nate called in a pained voice.
Louis
collected himself with a shudder of surprise. Of course it wasn't a ghost. Carl
Rand! Alive! What miracle was this? And what luck?
He
pointed an Uzi at the wraith.
The
weak figure lifted an arm and pointed to the left.
Louis's
gaze flicked to the side.
Hiding
under a bush, a jaguar crouched, spotted and golden, muscles bunched. It leaped
at him.
He
swung his weapon up, firing, chewing up dirt and leaves as he slashed toward the
flying cat.
Then
he was struck from the other side, blindsided, sacked, carried several yards,
and slammed into the ground, facefirst. With the wind knocked out of him, he
snorted and choked dirt. A large weight pinned him.
Who .
. . what . . . ? He twisted his neck around.
A
black feline face snarled down at him. Claws dug into his back, spears of
agony.
Oh,
God!
The
first jaguar stepped into view, padding with menace. Louis struggled to bring
his Uzi around, lifting his arm. Before he could fire, his limb exploded with
agony. Teeth clamped to bone and ripped backward, tearing off his arm at the
shoulder with a crunch of bone.
Louis
screamed.
"Bon
appetit," Nate mumbled to the two cats.
He
ignored the rest of the attack. He had once watched a documentary of killer
whales playing with a seal pup before eating it: tossing it through the air,
catching it, ripping it, and tossing it again. Savage and heartless. Pure
nature. The same happened here. The two cats showed a pure feline pleasure in
killing Louis Favre, not just feeding, but enacting revenge upon the man.
Nate
turned his attention to more pressing concerns. He dragged himself toward
Kelly, crawling with his hands, pushing with his one good leg. His hip flared
with agony. His vision blurred. But he had to reach her.
Kelly
lay crumpled on the ground, blood pooling.
At
last, he fell beside her. "Kelly. . :"
She
shifted at the sound of his voice.
He
moved closer, cradling against her.
"We
did it . . . right?" Her voice was a whisper. "The cure?"
"We'll
get it to the world ... to Jessie."
His
father stumbled over to them and knelt beside the pair. "Help's coming.
Hang on . . . both of you:"
Nate
was surprised to see Private Camera standing behind his father. "Sergeant
Kostos found the mercenary camp's radio," she said. "The helicopters
are a half hour out:"
Nate
nodded, holding Kelly to him. Her eyes had closed. His own vision darkened as
he held her. Somewhere in the distance, he heard Frank call. "Kelly! Is
Kelly all right?"
Eight
Months Latter
4:45
!?M.
LANGLEY
VIRGINIA
Nate
knocked on the door to the O'Brien residence. Frank was due back from the
hospital today. Nate carried a present under his arm. A new Boston Red Sox cap,
signed by the entire team. He waited on the stoop, staring across the manicured
lawn.
Dark
clouds stacked the southern skies, promising a storm to come.
Nate
knocked again. He had visited Frank last week at the Instar Institute. His new
legs were pale and weak, but he had been up on crutches, managing pretty well.
"Physical therapy's a bitch," Frank had complained. "Plus I'm a
goddamn pincushion to these white-smocked vampires:"
Nate
had smiled. Over the past months, the researchers and doctors had been
carefully monitoring the regeneration. Frank's mother, Lauren, had said that so
far the exact mechanism for her son's prion-induced regeneration remained a
mystery. What was known was that while the prions triggered a fatal hemorrhagic
fever in children and the elderly-those individuals with immature or compromised
immune systems-the opposite was seen in healthy adults. Here, the prions seemed
capable of temporarily altering the human immune system, allowing for the
proliferative growth necessary for regeneration and rapid healing.
This
miraculous effect was observed in Frank, but not without danger to the man. He
had to be maintained on a diluted mix of nut milk to keep the process from
running rampant and triggering the devastating cancers that had struck Agent
Clark. And now that the regeneration was complete, Frank was under a more
concentrated treatment with the milk to rid his body of the prions and return
his immune system back to normal. Still, despite Frank's status as guinea pig,
much about the prions and their method of action remained a mystery.
"We're
a long way from an answer and even longer from replicating the tree's
abilities," Lauren had said sadly. "If the tree's history dates back
to the Paleozoic era, then it's had a hundred million years' head start on us.
One day we might understand, but not today. As much as we might vaunt our
scientific skills, we're just children playing in one of the most advanced
biological experiments:'
"Children
who came damn close to burning down their own house this time," Nate had
added.
Luckily,
the nut pods had indeed proved to be the cure to the contagion. The
"antiprion" compound in the fruit, a type of alkaloid, was found to
be easy to replicate and manufacture. The cure was quickly dispatched via a
multinational effort throughout the Americas and the world. It was discovered
that a month's treatment with the alkaloid totally eradicated the disease from
the body, leaving no trace of the infectious prion. This simple fact, unknown
to the Ban-ali, had left them enslaved for generations. But luckily, the
manufactured nut milk was the immediate cure the world had needed. The plague
was all but over.
Contrarily,
the prion itself had proved beyond current scientific capability to cultivate
or duplicate. All samples of the prion-rich sap were considered a Level 4
biohazard and confined to a few select labs. Out in the field, the original
source of the sap, the Ban-ali valley, was found to be a blasted ruin. All that
was left of the great Yagga were ashes and entombed skeletons.
And
that's just fine with me, Nate thought as he waited on the stoop and stared at
the setting March sun and the brewing storm.
Back
in South America, Kouwe and Dakii were still helping the remaining dozen
Ban-ali tribesmen acclimate to their new lives. They were the richest Indians
in the Amazon. Nate's father had successfully sued St. Savin Pharmaceuticals
for the destruction of the tribe's homelands and the slaughter of its people.
It seemed Louis Favre had left a clear paper trail back to the French drug
company. Though appeals would surely drag on for several more years, the
company was all but bankrupt. In addition, its entire executive board faced
criminal charges.
Meanwhile,
his father remained in South America, helping resettle the Ban-ali tribe. Nate
would be rejoining his father in a few more weeks, but he was not the only one
heading south. In addition, geneticists were flocking to study the tribe, to
investigate the alterations to their DNA, both to understand how it had been
achieved and perhaps to discover a way to reverse the species-altering effects
of the Yagga. Nate imagined that if any answers ever came, they would be
generations away.
His
father was also assisted by the two Rangers, Kostos and Camera, newly promoted
and decorated. The pair of soldiers had also overseen the recovery of the
bodies. Difficult and heartbreaking work.
Nate
sighed. So many lives lost . . . but so many others saved by the cure their
blood had bought. Still, the price was too high.
The
sound of approaching footsteps drew Nate's attention back around. The door
opened.
Nate
found his smile. "What took you so long? I've been waiting here like five
minutes:"
Kelly
frowned at him, holding a palm to her lower back. "You try lugging this
belly around:"
Nate
placed a palm on his fiancee's bulging stomach. She was due in another couple
of weeks with their child. The pregnancy had been discovered while Kelly
recuperated from the gunshot wound. It seemed Kelly had been infected with the
prions during her examination of Gerald Clark's body back in Manaus. Over the
two-week Amazon journey-unbeknownst to her-the prions had healed Kelly's
postparturient infertility, regenerating what had been damaged. It was a timely
discovery. If the prions had been left unchecked for even a couple more weeks,
the ravaging cancers would have started, but as with her brother, the nut milk
was administered in time, and the prions were eradicated before they could do
harm.
As a
result of this joyous gift, Nate and Kelly had been blessed. During their
treetop lovemaking on the eve of Louis's attack, Nate and Kelly had unwittingly
conceived a baby-a brother for Jessie.
They
had already chosen a name: Manny.
Nate
leaned over and kissed his fiancee.
Distant
thunder rolled from the skies.
"The
others are waiting," she mumbled between his lips. "Let 'em
wait," he whispered, lingering. Thick raindrops began to fall, tapping at
the pavement and rooftop. Thunder rumbled again, and the sprinkle blew into a
downpour. "But shouldn't we-" Nate pulled her closer, bringing her
lips back to his. "Hush:"
Epilogue
Deep
in the Amazon rain forest, nature takes its own course, unseen and undisturbed.
The
spotted jaguar nudges its litter of cubs, mewling and whining in the den. His
black-coated mate has been gone a long time. He sniffs the air. A whiff of
musk. He paces anxiously.
From
the jungle shadows, a silhouette breaks free and pads over to him. He huffs his
greeting to his larger mate. They busily rub and brush against each other. He
smells the bad scent on her. Flames, burning, screaming. It triggers warnings
along his spine, bristling his nape. He growls.
His
mate crosses to the far side of the glade and digs deep into the soft loam. She
drops a knobby seed into the pit, then kicks dirt back over it with her hind
legs.
Once
done, she crosses to the litter of cubs-some black, some spotted. She sniffs at
them. The cubs cry for milk, rolling over one another.
She
rubs her mate again and turns her back on the freshly dug hole, the planted
seed already forgotten. It is no longer her concern. It is time to move on. She
gathers her litter and her mate, and the group heads deeper into the trackless
depths of the forest.
Behind,
freshly turned soil dries in the afternoon sun.
Unseen and undisturbed.
Forgotten.